Two essays in analytical psychology by carl jung

Page 1



FIRST PUBLISHED IN ENGLAND IN 1953 BY ROUTLEDGE & KEGAN PAUL, LTD.

~econd edition, revised and augmented, 1966 :/\

Reprinted 1977 and 1981 Reprinted 19 90 BY ROUTLEDGE 11 NEW FETTER LANE LONDON EC4P 4EE

ISBN 0-415-05111-8

THIS EDITION IS BEING P UBLISHED IN GREAT BRITAIN B Y ROUTLEDGE AND IN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA BY PRINCETON UNIVERSITY PRESS, UNDER THE SPONSORSHIP OF BOLLlNGEN FOUNDATION. THE PRESENT VOLUME IS NUMBER 7 OF THE COLLECTED WORKS AND WAS THE SECOND TO AP PEAR.

The two p rincipal w orks in t his vol ume a re translated from UbeT die Psychologie des Unbewussten (1943) and Die Beziehungen zwischen dem Ich und dem Unbewussten (1928; 2nd edn., 1935), published by Rascher Verlag, Zurich.

© Bollingen Foundation, New York, 1966

PRINTED IN GREAT BRITAIN BY UNWIN BROTHERS LIMITED THE GRESHAM PRESS, OLD WOKING, SURREY



FIRST PUBLISHED IN ENGLAND IN 1953 BY

EDITORIAL NOTE TO THE FIRST EDITION

ROUTLEDGE & KEGAN PAUL, LTD.

~econd edition, revised and augmented, 1966 :/\

Reprinted 1977 and 1981 Reprinted 19 90 BY ROUTLEDGE 11 NEW FETTER LANE LONDON EC4P 4EE

ISBN 0-415-05111-8

THIS EDITION IS BEING P UBLISHED IN GREAT BRITAIN B Y ROUTLEDGE AND IN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA BY PRINCETON UNIVERSITY PRESS, UNDER THE SPONSORSHIP OF BOLLlNGEN FOUNDATION. THE PRESENT VOLUME IS NUMBER 7 OF THE COLLECTED WORKS AND WAS THE SECOND TO AP PEAR.

The two p rincipal w orks in t his vol ume a re translated from UbeT die Psychologie des Unbewussten (1943) and Die Beziehungen zwischen dem Ich und dem Unbewussten (1928; 2nd edn., 1935), published by Rascher Verlag, Zurich.

Š Bollingen Foundation, New York, 1966

PRINTED IN GREAT BRITAIN BY UNWIN BROTHERS LIMITED THE GRESHAM PRESS, OLD WOKING, SURREY

"The S tructure of the Unconscious" a nd "New Paths in Psychology" together marked a turning point in the history of analytical psychology, for they r evealed the f oundations u pon which t he greater pa rt of Professor lung's later work was built. Both these essays were considerably revised and expanded for the successive editions mentioned in the Prefaces to the present volume. These Prefaces indicate the extent of the changes which were made on each occasion. As C. F . and H. G. Baynes say in the introduction to their E nglish translation of an i ntermediate version, w here th e title Two Essays on Analytical Psychology was used for the first time: "Of the first essay only the framework of its earlier form can be recognized, and so m uch ne w m aterial has been a dded to the s econd e ssay t hat both w orks s tart a fresh, s o t o s peak, f ull of the a mazing vitality of lung's m ind." T he e ssays a re indeed r emarkable f or t he num ber of revisions to which t hey have b een s ubjected, each r eflecting a n ew development of t hought ba sed upon increasingly f ruitful r esearches into the unconscious. However interesting the intermediate versions may be in themselves, the or iginal dr afts of t hese e ssays a re undoubtedly f ar more significant to the student of analytical psychology. They contain the first tentative formulations of lung's concept of archetypes and the collective unc onscious, as well as hi s ge rminating theory of t ypes. This theory was put forward, partially at least, as an attempt to explain the conflicts within the psychoanalytic school, of which he had been so prominent a member and from which he had so recently seceded. With these considerations in m ind the Editors decided to include the original drafts of these two essays in separate Appendices. It was felt that t heir historical i nterest f ully justified t he d uplication of reading matter which comparison of the texts would involve. Acknowledgment is gratefully made of the kindness of Faber and Faber, Ltd., London, and the Oxford University Press, New York, in permitting quotation from the Louis MacNeice translation of Goethe's Faust.

v



FIRST PUBLISHED IN ENGLAND IN 1953 BY ROUTLEDGE & KEGAN PAUL, LTD.

~econd edition, revised and augmented, 1966 :/\

Reprinted 1977 and 1981 Reprinted 19 90 BY ROUTLEDGE 11 NEW FETTER LANE LONDON EC4P 4EE

ISBN 0-415-05111-8

THIS EDITION IS BEING P UBLISHED IN GREAT BRITAIN B Y ROUTLEDGE AND IN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA BY PRINCETON UNIVERSITY PRESS, UNDER THE SPONSORSHIP OF BOLLlNGEN FOUNDATION. THE PRESENT VOLUME IS NUMBER 7 OF THE COLLECTED WORKS AND WAS THE SECOND TO AP PEAR.

The two p rincipal w orks in t his vol ume a re translated from UbeT die Psychologie des Unbewussten (1943) and Die Beziehungen zwischen dem Ich und dem Unbewussten (1928; 2nd edn., 1935), published by Rascher Verlag, Zurich.

© Bollingen Foundation, New York, 1966

PRINTED IN GREAT BRITAIN BY UNWIN BROTHERS LIMITED THE GRESHAM PRESS, OLD WOKING, SURREY


EDITORIAL NOTE TO THE SECOND EDITION When the s tock of the f irst e dition of t his v olume was e xhausted, twelve years a fter its f irst p ublication, t he publishers un dertook a complete resetting of type rather than a corrected reprint, as the result of research among Professor Jung's posthumous papers. The text of Appendix 1, "New Paths in Psychology," was found to be an incomplete version of what the author published in 1912, and it was decided t o p ublish t he c omplete version, with t he ear liest deletions i ndicated. F or Appendix 2, "The Structure of the Unconscious," it had been necessary in the first edition to retranslate a French translation i n the a bsence of t he original G erman. Subsequently the author's holograph manuscript was discovered in his archives, and this furthermore contained several unpublished passages and variants of historical interest. Both a ppendices have a ccordingly been r e-edited an d l argely retranslated to take the new findings into account. (For details, see the editorial note at the beginning of each appendix.) Similar though not identical presentations were published in Volume 7 of the Gesammelte Werke) i.e., the Swiss edition, in 1964. Also on the model of the Swiss edition, the complete texts of the various forewords have been added. The title of the first essay has been modified to "On the Psychology of the Unconscious." The t exts of the two m ain e ssays have a lso been r evised, f or consistency, t he r eference a pparatus ha s been br ought up t o date, a bibliography has been added, and a new index has been supplied.

vu



TABLE OF CONTENTS

EDITORIAL NOTE TO THE FIRST EDITION EDITORIAL NOTE TO THE SECOND EDITION

v vii

I ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OFT HE UN CONS Cl 0 US 3 4 6

PREFACE TO THE FIRST EDITION PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION PREFACE TO THE THIRD EDITION

7 7

PREFACE TO THE FOURTH EDITION PREFACE TO THE FIFTH EDITION

I. Psychoanalysis

9

II. The Eros Theory

19

Ill. The Other Point of View: The Will to Power

30

IV. The Problem of the Attitude-Type

41

V.

The Personal and the Collective (or Transpersonal) Unconscious

VI. The Synthetic or Constructive Method VII. The Archetypes of the Collective Unconscious VIII. General Remarks on the Therapeutic Approach to the Unconscious Conclusion ix

64 80 90 114 11 9


II

APPENDICES

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS 12

PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION PREFACE TO THE THIRD EDITION

3

I. New Paths in Psychology

n.

245

The Structure of the Unconscious

125

I.

THE DISTINCTION BETWEEN THE PERSONAL AND THE IMPERSONAL UNCONSCIOUS

2.

PHENOMENA RESULTING FROM THE ASSIMILATION

3.

THE PERSONA AS A SEGMENT OF THE COLLECTIVE

OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

Part One THE EFFECTS OF THE UNCONSCIOUS UPON CONSCIOUSNESS I. The Personal and the Collective Unconscious p.

Phenomena Resulting from the Assimilation of the Unconscious

PSYCHE 4. 12

7

139

5.

FUNDAMENTAL PRINCIPLES IN THE TREATMENT OF COLLECTIVE IDENTITY

[Addendum]

n.

Anima and Animus

300

16

305

BIBLIOGRAPHY

INDEX

173 188

Ill. The Technique of Differentiation between the Ego and the Figures of the Unconscious IV. The Mana-Personality

212

<J.27

x

288 295 302

INDIVIDUATION I. The Function of the Unconscious

283 286

SUMMARY

[First Version] [Second Version]

16

Part Two

280

COLLECTIVE PSYCHE

6.

3 9

273

ATTEMPTS TO FREE THE INDIVIDUALITY FROM THE

a.The Regressive Restoration of the Persona b. Identification with the Collective Psyche

6 Ill. The Persona as a Segment of the Collective Psyche 15 IV. Negative

Attempts to Free the Individuality from the Collective Psyche a.Regressive Restoration of the Persona b.Identification with the Collective Psyche

269

v;


II

APPENDICES

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS 12

PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION PREFACE TO THE THIRD EDITION

3

I. New Paths in Psychology

n.

245

The Structure of the Unconscious

125

I.

THE DISTINCTION BETWEEN THE PERSONAL AND THE IMPERSONAL UNCONSCIOUS

2.

PHENOMENA RESULTING FROM THE ASSIMILATION

3.

THE PERSONA AS A SEGMENT OF THE COLLECTIVE

OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

Part One THE EFFECTS OF THE UNCONSCIOUS UPON CONSCIOUSNESS I. The Personal and the Collective Unconscious p.

Phenomena Resulting from the Assimilation of the Unconscious

PSYCHE 4. 12

7

139

5.

FUNDAMENTAL PRINCIPLES IN THE TREATMENT OF COLLECTIVE IDENTITY

[Addendum]

n.

Anima and Animus

300

16

305

BIBLIOGRAPHY

INDEX

173 188

Ill. The Technique of Differentiation between the Ego and the Figures of the Unconscious IV. The Mana-Personality

212

<J.27

x

288 295 302

INDIVIDUATION I. The Function of the Unconscious

283 286

SUMMARY

[First Version] [Second Version]

16

Part Two

280

COLLECTIVE PSYCHE

6.

3 9

273

ATTEMPTS TO FREE THE INDIVIDUALITY FROM THE

a.The Regressive Restoration of the Persona b. Identification with the Collective Psyche

6 Ill. The Persona as a Segment of the Collective Psyche 15 IV. Negative

Attempts to Free the Individuality from the Collective Psyche a.Regressive Restoration of the Persona b.Identification with the Collective Psyche

269

v;




PREFACE TO THE FIRST EDITION (1917) This essay* i s th e r esult of my att empt t o r evise, at t he publisher's request, t he paper which a ppeared i n t he Rascher Yearbook fo r 1912 under the title "Neue Bahnen der Psychologie." The present work thus reproduces that earlier essay, though in altered and enlarged form. In my earlier paper I confined myself to the exposition of one essential aspect of t he psychological views i naugurated by Freud. T he m anifold a nd important changes which recent years have brought in the psychology of the u nconscious have c ompelled m e to b roaden c onsiderably the framework of m y earlier paper. On the one hand a number of passages on Freud were shortened, while on the other hand, Adler's p sychology was taken into account; and, so far as was possible within the limits of this essay, a general survey of my own .. VIews was gIven. I m ust warn th e reader at the outset that he will be d ealing with a study w hich, o n account of its rather c omplicated s ubjectmatter, w ill make c onsiderable d emands o n his patience and a ttention. N or c an I associate th is work with th e i dea th at it i s in any s ense c onclusive o r adequately c onvincing. T his requirement c ould be m et o nly b y comprehensive s cientific t reatises o n e ach s eparate problem touched upon in the essay. The reader who wishes to probe more deeply into the questions at issue must therefore be referred to the specialist literature. My intention is simply to give a broad survey of the most recent views on the nature and psychology of the unconscious. I regard the problem of the unconscious a s so i mportant and so t opical that it would, in my opinion, be a great loss if this question, which touches each one of us so closely, were t o disappear from the orbit of the educated lay public b y being banished t o some i naccessible t echnical journal, t here t o l ead a shadowy paperexistence on the shelves of libraries.

t

• [Die Psychologie der unbewussten Prozesse (Zurich, 1917). Trans. by Dora Hecht as "The Psychology o f the U nconscious Processes" i n Collected Papers on Analytical Psychology (2nd edn., London, 19'7; New'york, 1920).-EDlTORS.]

t [Cf. below, pars. 407fÂŁ.: "New Paths in Psychology."] 3


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

The psychological concomitants of the present war-above all the incredible brutalization of public opinion, the mutual slanderings, the unprecedented fury of de struction, t he monstrous f lood of l ies, a nd man's incapacity to call a halt to the bloody demon-are uniquely fitted to force upon the attention of every thinking person the problem of the chaotic u nconscious w hich slumbers u neasily be neath t he o rdered world of consciousness. This war ha s pitilessly revealed to civilized man that he is still a barbarian, and has at the same time shown what an iron scourge lies in store for him if ever again he should be tempted to m ake his neighbour r esponsible f or hi s own e vil qu alities. The psychology of t he i ndividual is r eflected in t he ps ychology o f t he nation. What the nation does is done also by each individual, and so long as the individual continues to do i t, the nation will do likewise. Only a change in the attitude of the individual can initiate a change in the ps ychology of the na tion. The gr eat problems of h umanity were never yet solved by general laws, but only through regeneration of the attitudes of individuals. If ever there was a time when self-reflection was t he absolutely ne cessary and only r ight thing, it is now, in our present cat astrophic epoch. Y et w hoever reflects u pon h imself is bound to strike upon the frontiers of the unconscious, which contains what above all else he needs to know.

Kusnacht, Zurich, December I9I6

C. G. JUNG

PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION (1918) I am g lad t hat it ha s be en t he l ot of this little b ook to pa ss into a second edition in so short a time, despite the difficulties it must have presented t o m any readers. I am l etting the second e dition appear unaltered e xcept f or a f ew m inor m odifications and improvements, although I am aware that the last chapters in particular, owing to the extraordinary difficulty and the novelty of the material, really needed discussion on a m uch br oader basis i n order t o be generally understood. B ut a m ore d etailed treatment o f t he f undamental principles t here o utlined w ould far exceed the b ounds of a m ore or less popular presentation, so that I 4


PREFACES

preferred to treat these questions with due circumstantiality in a separate work which is now in preparation. '" From the m any c ommunications I r eceived a fter t he p ublication of t he f irst edition I have discovered t hat, e ven a mong the wider public, i nterest i n t he pr oblems of the human psyche i s ve ry m uch keener than I expected. This interest may be due in no small measure to the profound shock which our consciousness sustained through the World War. The spectacle of this catastrophe threw m an back upon himself b y making h im feel h is complete im potence; it t urned his gaze inwards, and, with everything rocking about him, he must needs seek s omething t hat guarantees h im a h old. T oo many s till look outwards, some be lieving in the illusion of victory and of victorious power, others in treaties and laws, and others again in the overthrow of the e xisting order. B ut still t oo f ew l ook i nwards, to their ow n selves, a nd still f ewer a sk t hemselves whether the e nds of human society might not best be served if each man tried to abolish the old order i n hi mself, and to practise i n hi s o wn pe rson a nd i n hi s o wn inward s tate th ose p recepts, t hose victories w hich he p reaches at every s treet-corner, i nstead of always expecting t hese t hings of his fellow m en. E very individual needs r evolution, i nner di vision, overthrow of the existing order, and renewal, but not by forcing them upon his neighbours under the hypocritical cloak of Christian love or the sense of social r esponsibility o r a ny o f the other be autiful euphemisms f or unc onscious ur ges to personal power. I ndividual self-reflection, return of the individual to the ground of human nature, to his own deepest being with its individual and social destiny-here is the beginning of a cure for that blindness which reigns at the present hour. Interest in the problem of the human psyche is a symptom of this instinctive return to oneself. It is to serve this interest that the present book was written.

C. G.].

Kusnacht, Zurich, October I9IB • Psychological Types.

5


PREFACE TO THE THIRD EDITION '*' (1926) This book was written du ring t he World W ar, a nd i t ow es i ts existence pr imarily t o the ps ychological repercussions of t hat gr eat event. Now that the war is over, the waves are be ginning to subside again. B ut t he great ps ychological problems that t he war t hrew u p still occupy the mind and heart of every thinking and feeling person. It i s p robably t hanks to this t hat m y l ittle b ook has s urvived the postwar period and now appears in a third edition. In view o f the f act that s even years ha ve e lapsed since t he publication o f t he f irst e dition, I h ave de emed it necessary t o undertake fairly extensive alterations and improvements, particularly in the chapters on types and on the unconscious. The chapter on "The Development of Types i n t he A nalytical Process" I ha ve om itted entirely, as this question has since received comprehensive treatment in my book Psychological Types, to which I must refer the interested reader. Anyone who has tried to popularize highly complicated material that is still in the process of scientific development will agree with me that this is no easy task. It is even more difficult when many of the psychological processes and problems I have to discuss here are quite unknown t o m ost pe ople. M uch of what I s ay m ay a rouse their prejudices or may appear arbitrary; but they should bear in mind that the purpose of such a book can be, at most, to give them a rough idea of i ts s ubject and t o p rovoke t hought, b ut not t o enter into all t he details of the argument. I shall be quite satisfied if my book fulfils this purpose.

t

C.G.].

Kilsnacht, Zurich, APril I925

• [ Zurich, 192 6; t itle c hanged t o Das Unbewusste im normalen und kranken Seelenleben. Trans. by H. G . a nd C . F . B aynes a s " The Unconscious i n t he Normal and P athological Mind" in Two Essays on Analytical Psychology (London and New York, 1928).] t [Collected Papers on Analytical Psychology (2nd edn.), pp. 437-41.]

6


PREFACE TO THE FOURTH EDITION (1936) Aside from a few improvements the fourth edition appears unchanged From numerous reactions of the public I have seen that the idea of the collective un conscious, t o w hich I ha ve devoted one chapter in this book, ha s aroused particular interest. I c annot therefore om it calling the a ttention of my readers t o t he latest i ssues of t he Eranos-]ahrbuch,'*' which c ontain important w orks b y various authors on this subject. The present book makes no attempt to give a comprehensive account of t he f ull r ange of a nalytical p sychology; consequently, m uch is m erely h inted a t a nd some t hings a re n ot mentioned a t a ll. I hope, how ever, t hat i t will c ontinue t o f ulfil i ts modest purpose.

C. G.].

Kilsnacht) Zurich, APril I936

PREFACE TO THE FIFTH EDITION

(1943)

Since t he l ast, u nchanged edition, s ix years h ave g one by; h ence i t seemed to me advisable to submit the present, new edition of the book to a t horough revision. On t his occasion a number o f i nadequacies could be eliminated or improved, and superfluous material deleted. A difficult and complicated matter like t he ps ychology of the unconscious gives rise not only to many new insights but to errors as well. It is still a boundless expanse of virgin territory into which we make experimental incursions, and only by going the long way round do w e s trike t he d irect road. A lthough I h ave t ried to introduce as many new viewpoints as possible into the text, my reader should not expect • [For t ranslations o f several p apers from t he f irst t hree issues o f the Eranos]ahrbuch (1933-35), see SPiritual Disciplines (Papers from the Eranos Yearbooks, 4)¡ Those issues also first published Jung's "A Study in the Process of lndividuation," "Archetypes of the Collective Unconscious," and "Dream Symbols of the lndividuation Process."]

t [Zurich, 1943; title changed to Ueber die Psychologie des Unbewussten. It is this edition which is translated in the present volume.]

7


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

anything like a c omplete s urvey of the f undamentals of o ur c ontemporary ps ychological k nowledge in t his dom ain. I n t his po pular account I am presenting o nly a few of the most es sential as pects of medical psychology and also of my own researches, and this only by way of an introduction. A solid knowledge cannot be acquired except through the s tudy of t he literature on t he o ne hand a nd t hrough practical ex perience on the other. I n p articular I would l ike to recommend t o t hose r eaders who ar e desirous of gaining d etailed knowledge of these matters that they should not only study the basic works of medical ps ychology and ps ychopathology, bu t also thoroughly d igest t he psychological te xt-books. S o doing, t hey w ill acquire t he requisite kn owledge of t he po sition and ge neral significance of medical psychology in the most direct way. From such a c omparative study t he r eader will be a ble to judge how f ar F reud's c omplaint a bout t he "unpopularity" of hi s psychoanalysis, and my own feeling that I occupy an isolated outpost, are justified. Although there have been a few notable exceptions, I do not think I e xaggerate when I say that the views of modern medical psychology have still not penetrated far enough into the strongholds of academic science. New i deas, if they are not just a f lash in the pan, generally r equire at l east a generation to t ake r oot. P sychological innovations probably take much longer, since in this field more than in any other practically everybody sets himself up as an authority.

C. G.].

Kusnacht) Zurich) APril I942

8


I PSYCHOANAL YSIS

2

If he w ants t o help h is patient, the doctor a nd a bove a ll the "specialist for nervous diseases" must have psychological knowledge; for ne rvous disorders a nd a ll that is e mbraced b y t he t erms "nervousness," hy steria, , etc. a re of p sychic or igin and t herefore logically r equire p sychic tr eatment. C old w ater, l ight, f resh a ir, electricity, and so forth have at best a transitory effect and sometimes none at all. T he pa tient i s s ick i n mind, i n the hi ghest and most complex of the mind's functions, and these can hardly be said to belong any more to the province of medicine. Here the doctor must also be a psychologist, which means that he must have knowledge of the human psyche. In t he past, that is t o say up t o f ifty years a go, the doc tor's psychological t raining was still very ba d. H is ps ychiatric t extbooks were wholly confined to clinical descriptions and the systematization of mental diseases, and the psychology taught in the universities was either p hilosophy or the s o-called " experimental ps ychology" inaugurated by Wundt.1 The first moves towards a psychotherapy of the neuroses came from the Charcot school, at the Salpetriere in Paris; Pierre Janet2 began his epoch-making researches into the psychology of neurotic states, and Bernheim 3 in Nancy took up with great success Liebeault's4 old a nd f orgotten i dea of treating t he ne uroses by suggestion. S igmund F reud translated B ernheim's book a nd a lso derived valuable inspiration from it. At that time there was still no psychology of the neuroses and psychoses. To Freud belongs the 1 PrinciPles of Physiological Psychology (orig. 1893). 2 L'Automatisme psychologique (188g); Nevroses et idees fixes (18g8). 8 De la suggestion et de ses aPPlications la thirapeutique (1886); trans. by S. Freud as Die

a

Suggestion und ihre Heilwirkung. 4 Liebeault, Du sommeil et des hats analogues considires au point de vue de l'action du moral sur le physique (1866).

9


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

undying m erit of ha ving l aid t he f oundations of a ps ychology of t he neuroses. H is t eachings s prang f rom h is ex perience i n t he p ractical treatment of t he ne uroses, that i s, f rom the a pplication of a m ethod which he called psychoanalysis. 3 Before we enter upon a closer presentation of our subject, something must be said about its relation to science as known hitherto. Here we encounter a curious spectacle which proves yet again the truth of Anatole France's remark: "Les savants ne sont pas curieux." The first work of any magnitude5 in this field awakened only the faintest echo, in spite of th e f act that i t i ntroduced a n e ntirely ne w c onception of t he neuroses. A few writers spoke of it appreciatively and then, on the next page, proceeded to explain their hysterical cases in the same old way. They behaved very much like a man who, having eulogized the idea or fact that the earth was a sphere, calmly continues to represent it as flat. Freud's next publications remained absolutely unnoticed, although they put f orward obs ervations w hich w ere of i ncalculable i mportance f or psychiatry. W hen, i n t he ye ar 1900, Freud w rote t he f irst r eal psychology of dreams6 (a proper Stygian darkness had hitherto reigned over this field), people began to laugh, and when he actually started to throw light on the psychology of sexuality in 1905,7 laughter turned to insult. A nd t his s torm of l earned indignation w as not b ehindhand i n giving F reudian psychology a n unw anted publicity, a notoriety that extended far beyond the confines of scientific interest. 4 Accordingly we must look more closely into this new psychology. A lready i n C harcot's t ime i t w as know n t hat t he ne urotic symptom i s " psychogenic," i .e., or iginates i n t he ps yche. I t w as a lso known, t hanks m ainly t o t he w ork of t he Nancy s chool, t hat a ll hysterical s ymptoms can be pr oduced t hrough s uggestion. E qually, something w as know n, t hanks t o t he r esearches of J anet, a bout t he psychological mechanisms that produce such hysterical phenomena as anaesthesia, paresia, paralysis, and amnesia. But it was not known how an hys terical s ymptom or iginates in the p syche; the p sychic cau sal connections were completely unknown. In the early eighties Dr. Breuer, an old Viennese practitioner, made a discovery which became the real starting-point 5 Breuer and Freud, Studies on Hysteria (orig. 1895). 6 The Interpretation of Dreams.

7 "Three Essays on the Theory of Sexuality." 10


PSYCHOANALYSIS

for t he ne w ps ychology. H e ha d a young , ve ry i ntelligent w oman patient s uffering fro m h ysteria, w ho m anifested t he f ollowing symptoms a mong ot hers: s he ha d a s pastic ( rigid) paralysis " of t he right arm, and occasional f its of absentmindedness or twilight states; she ha d a lso lost t he pO"lNer of s peech inasmuch a s she c ould n o longer command her mother tongue but could only express herself in English ( systematic a phasia). T hey t ried a t that t ime t o a ccount f or these disorders with a natomical theories, although t he cortical centre for the arm function was as little disturbed here as with a normal person. The symptomatology of hysteria is full of anatomical impossibilities. One lady, who had completely lost her hearing because of an hysterical affection, often used to sing. Once, when she was singing, her doctor seated himself unobserved at the piano and softly accompanied her. In passing from one stanza to the next he made a sudden change of key, whereupon t he pa tient, w ithout no ticing i t, w ent o n s inging in t he changed key. Thus she hears-and does not hear. The various forms of systematic blindness of fer s imilar phe nomena: a m an suffering f rom total hysterical blindness recovered his power of sight in the course of treatment, but it was only partial at first and remained so for a long time. He could see everything with the exception of people's heads. He saw all the people round him without heads. Thus he sees-and does not see. From a l arge num ber of l ike e xperiences i t ha d be en c oncluded t hat only the conscious mind of the patient does not see and hear, but that the sense function is otherwise in working or der. This state of affairs directly c ontradicts t he nature of a n or ganic di sorder, which a lways affects the actual function as well. 5 After this digression, let us come back to the Breuer case. There were no organic causes for the disorder, so it had to be regarded as hysterical, i.e., psychogenic. Breuer had observed that if, during her twilight states (whether spontaneous or artificially induced), he got the patient to tell him ,of the reminiscences and fantasies that thronged in upon he r, he r c ondition was e ased f or s everal hour s a fterwards. H e made systematic use of this discovery for further treatment. The patient devised t he na me " talking c ure" f or i t or , j okingly, "chimney-sweeping." 6 The patient had become ill when nursing her father in his fatal illness. Naturally her fantasies were chiefly concerned with 11


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

these disturbing days. R eminiscences of this pe riod came t o t he surface during her twilight states with photographic fidelity; so vivid were t hey, down to t he l ast detail, t hat we c an hardly a ssume t he waking m emory t o ha ve been c apable of such plastic a nd e xact reproduction. (The name "hypermnesia" has be en g iven t o this intensification of the powers of memory which not infrequently occurs in restricted states of consciousness.) Remarkable things now came to light. One of the many stories told ran somewhat as follows: One night, watching by the sick man, who had a high f ever, she was tense with anxiety because a surgeon was expected from Vienna to perform an operation. Her mother had left the room for a while, and Anna, the patient, sat by the sick-bed with her right arm hanging over the back of the chair. She fell into a sort of waking dream in which she saw a black snake coming, apparently out of the wall, towards the sick man a s t hough t o b ite him. ( It is quite likely t hat there r eally were snakes in the m eadow a t t he ba ck of t he h ouse, which ha d a lready given the girl a fright and which now provided the material for the hallucination.) She wanted to drive the creature away, but felt paralysed; her right arm, hanging over the back of the chair, had "gone to sleep": it had be come a naesthetic a nd pa retic, a nd, a s she l ooked a t it, t he fingers c hanged i nto l ittle serpents w ith de ath's-heads. P robably s he made efforts to drive away the snake with her paralysed right hand, so that t he an aesthesia an d p aralysis b ecame a ssociated with t he s nake hallucination. When the snake had disappeared, she was so frightened that she wanted to pray; but all speech failed her, she could not utter a word until finally she remembered an English nursery rhyme, and then she was able to go on thinking and praying in English.8 7 Such was the scene in which the paralysis and the speech disturbance originated, a nd w ith t he narration of this s cene t he d isturbance itself was removed. In this manner the case is said to have been finally cured. 8 I must content myself with this one example. In the book I have m entioned by B reuer an d Fr eud t here i s a w ealth o f s imilar examples. It can readily be understood that scenes of this kind make a powerful i mpression, a nd pe ople a re therefore i nclined to i mpute causal s ignificance to them in t he ge nesis of t he s ymp8 [Cf. B reuer a nd Freud, pp. 38f.]

12


PSYCHOANALYSIS

tom. The view of hysteria then current, which derived from the English theory of t he " nervous s hock" e nergetically c hampioned b y C harcot, was well qualified to explain Breuer's discovery. Hence there arose the so-called trauma theory, which says that the hysterical symptom, and, in s o f ar a s the s ymptoms c onstitute the i llness, h ysteria in g eneral, derive f rom ps ychic i njuries or traumata w hose i mprint pe rsists unconsciously f or ye ars. F reud, now c ollaborating with B reuer, was able to furnish a bundant c onfirmation of this discovery. It turned out that none of the hundreds of hysterical symptoms arose by chance-they were always caused by psychic occurrences. So far the new conception opened up an extensive field for empirical work. But Freud's inquiring mind could not remain long on this superficial level, for already deeper and m ore d ifficult pr oblems were be ginning to e merge. I t is o bvious enough t hat m oments of e xtreme a nxiety such a s B reuer's patient experienced may leave an abiding impression. But how did she come to e xperience t hem at al l, s ince they a lready cl early b ear a m orbid stamp? Could the strain of nursing bring this about? If so, there ought to be many more occurrences of the kind, f or there are unfortunately very m any e xhausting c ases t o n urse, a nd t he ne rvous he alth of t he nurse i s not a lways of t he best. To t his problem m edicine gives a n excellent a nswer: " The x in the c alculation i s pr edisposition." O ne i s just " predisposed" t hat w ay. B ut f or F reud t he problem w as: w hat constitutes t he pr edisposition? This q uestion l eads l ogically to a n examination of the previous history of the psychic trauma. It is a matter of c ommon o bservation that e xciting scenes ha ve quite different effects on the va rious pe rsons i nvolved, o r th at th ings which are indifferent or even agreeable to one person arouse the greatest horror in others-witness frogs, snakes, mice, cats, ete. There are cases of women who will assist at bloody operations without turning a hair, while they tremble all over with fear and loathing at the touch of a cat. I remember a young woman who suffered from acute hysteria following a sudden fright.9 She had been to a n e vening party a nd was o n h er way h ome about midnight in the company of several acquaintances, when a cab came up behind them at full trot. The others got out of the way, but she, as though spellbound with terror, 1} [For another presentation of this case, see "The Theory of P sychoanalysis," pars. ln8ff., 297ff., and 355ff.-EDITORS.]

13


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

kept to the middle of the road and ran along in front of the horses. The cab man cracked his whip and swore; it was no good, she ran down the whole length of the road, which led across a bridge. There her strength deserted her, and to avoid being trampled on by the horses she would in he r desperation ha ve l eapt i nto t he r iver ha d n ot the pa ssers-by prevented her. Now, t his s ame l ady ha d happened t o be i n St. Petersburg on the bloody twenty-second of January [1905J, in the very street which was cleared by the volleys of the soldiers. All round her people w ere f alling to the ground dead or w ounded; s he, h owever, quite calm and clear-headed, espied a gate leading into a yard through which s he m ade her e scape into a nother street. T hese d readful moments c aused her n o f urther a gitation. S he f elt perfectly w ell afterwards-indeed, rather better than usual. 9 This failure to react to an apparent shock can frequently be observed. Hence it necessarily f ollows t hat the i ntensity of a trauma has ve ry little pa thogenic s ignificance in i tself, but i t must ha ve a special significance for the patient. That is to say, it is not the shock as such that has a pathogenic effect under all circumstances, but, in order to have a n ef fect, it m ust i mpinge on a s pecial p sychic di sposition, which may, in certain c ircumstances, c onsist i n the patient's unconsciously attributing a specific significance to the shock. Here we have a possible key to the "predisposition." We have therefore to ask ourselves: what are the particular circumstances of the scene with the cab? The patient's fear began with the sound of the trotting horses; for an instant it seemed to her that this portended some terrible doom-her death, or something as dreadful; the next moment she lost all sense of what she was doing. 10 The real shock evidently came from the horses. The patient's predisposition to react in so unaccountable a way to this unremarkable incident m ight t herefore c onsist i n the f act that horses ha ve some special significance for her. We might conjecture, for instance, that she once had a dangerous accident with horses. This was actually found to be the case. As a child of about seven she was out for a drive with her coachman, when suddenly the horses took fright and at a wild gallop made f or t he precipitous ba nk of a deep r iver-gorge. T he c oachman jumped down and shouted to her to do likewise, but she was in such deadly fear that she could hardly make up her mind. Nevertheless she 14,


PSYCHOAN AL YSIS

1 1

jumped in the nick of time, while the horses crashed with the carriage into the de pths be low. That such a n e vent w ould l eave a ve ry deep impression scarcely needs proof. Yet it does not explain why at a later date such an insensate reaction should f ollow th e p erfectly harmless hint of a similar situation. So far we know only that the later symptom had a pr elude i n c hildhood, b ut t he pa thological a spect of i t still remains in the da rk. I n order to penetrate t his m ystery, f urther knowledge is needed. F or it ha d become c lear w ith increasing experience t hat i n al l t he cas es a nalysed s o f ar, there existed, ap art from the traumatic experiences, another, special class of disturbances which lie in t he province of love. Admittedly " love" i s a n e lastic concept that stretches from heaven to hell and combines in itself good and evil, high and low. With this discovery Freud's views underwent a considerable change. If, more or less under the spell of Breuer's trauma theory, he ha d f ormerly s ought t he c ause of neurosis i n traumatic experiences, now t he c entre of gr avity of t he pr oblem s hifted to a n entirely d ifferent p oint. T his i s best i llustrated by our case: we c an understand well e nough why horses should play a special part in the life o f the p atient, but w e d o n ot u nderstand the later r eaction, s o exaggerated and uncalled for. The pathological peculiarity of this story lies in t he f act t hat s he is f rightened of q uite harmless horses. Remembering t he d iscovery t hat besides the traumatic e xperience there. is often a disturbance in the province of love, we might inquire whether perhaps there is something peculiar in this connection. The lady k nows a y oung m an to w hom she t hinks of becoming engaged; s he loves h im a nd h opes t o be happy w ith him. A t f irst nothing m ore i s d iscoverable. B ut it would never do to be de terred from investigation by t he negative results of the preliminary questioning. T here a re i ndirect w ays of r eaching the goal w hen the direct way fails. We therefore return to that singular moment when the lady r an he adlong in f ront of the h orses. We inquire a bout he r companions and what sort of festive occasion it was in which she had just taken part. It had been a farewell party for her best friend, who was going abroad to a health resort on account of her nerves. This friend is married and, we are told, happily; she is also the mother of a child. We may take leave to doubt the statement that she is happy; for, were she really so, she would presumably have no reason to be 15


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

"nervous" a nd i n need of a c ure. S hifting m y a ngle of a pproach, I learned that after her friends had rescued her they brought the patient back to the house of her host-her best friend's husband -as this was the nearest s helter at t hat l ate h our o f n ight. T here s he was h ospitably received in her exhausted state. At this point the patient broke off her narrative, became em barrassed, f idgeted, a nd t ried to c hange t he subject. E vidently s ome di sagreeable r eminiscence had s uddenly bobbed up. After the most obstinate resistance had been overcome, it appeared that yet another very remarkable incident ha d occurred that night: the amiable host had made her a fiery declaration of love, thus precipitating a situation which, in the absence of the lady of the house, might well be considered both difficult and distressing. Ostensibly this declaration of l ove c ame to he r like a bo lt f rom t he bl ue, b ut t hese things usually have their history. It was now the task of the next few weeks to dig out bit by bit a long love story, until at last a complete picture emerged which I attempt to outline somewhat as follows: As a child the patient had been a regular tomboy, caring only for wild bo ys' ga mes, scorning he r own s ex, a nd a voiding a ll f eminine ways and occupations. After puberty, when the erotic problem might have come too close, she began to shun all society, hated and despised everything that even remotely reminded her of the biological de stiny of woman, a nd lived i n a world of f antasies which h ad n othing i n common w ith r ude r eality. T hus, un til a bout he r twenty-fourth ye ar, she e vaded all those little a dventures, hopes, and expectations which ordinarily m ove a girl's he art a t this a ge. Then she g ot to know two men who were de stined t o break t hrough t he thorny h edge t hat ha d grown up around her. Mr. A was her best friend's husband, and Mr. B was his ba chelor f riend. S he liked t hem b oth. Nevertheless it soon began to look as though she liked Mr. B a vast deal better. An intimacy quickly sprang up between them a nd before long there was talk of a possible e ngagement. T hrough he r r elations w ith M r. B a nd t hrough her f riend s he often c ame i nto c ontact w ith M r. A, w hose presence sometimes disturbed her in the most unaccountable way and made her nervous. About this time the patient went to a large party. Her friends were also there. She became lost in thought and was dreamily playing with her ring when it suddenly slipped off her finger and rolled under the 16


PSYCHOAN AL YSIS

12

table. Both gentlemen looked for it and Mr. B succeeded in finding it. He placed the ring on her finger with an arch smile and said, "You know what that means!" Overcome by a strange and irresistible feeling, she tore the ring from her finger and flung it through the open window. A painful moment ensued, as may be imagined, and soon she left the party in deep dejection. Not long after this, so-called chance brought it about that she should spend her summer holidays at a health resort where Mr. and Mrs. A were also staying. Mrs. A then began to grow visibly nervous, and frequently stayed indoors because she felt out of sorts. The patient was thus in a position to go out for walks alone with Mr. A. On one occasion they went boating. So boisterous was she in her merriment that she suddenly fell overboard. She could not swim, and it was only with great difficulty that Mr. A pulled her half-unconscious into the boat. And then it was that he kissed her. With this romantic episode the bonds were tied fast. But the pa~ient would not allow the depths of this passion to come to consciousness, evidently because she had long habituated herself to pass over such things or, better, to run away from them. To excuse herself in her own eyes she pursued her engagement to Mr. B all the more energetically, telling herself every day that it was Mr. B whom she loved. Naturally this curious little game had not escaped the keen glances of wifely jealousy. Mrs. A, her friend, had guessed the secret and fretted accordingly, so that her nerves only got worse. Hence it became necessary for Mrs. A to go abroad for a cure. At the farewell party the evil spirit stepped up to our patient and whispered in her ear, "Tonight he is alone. Something must happen to you so that you can go to his house." And so indeed it happened: through her own strange behaviour she came back to his house, and thus she attained her desire. After t his e xplanation e veryone w ill pr obably be i nclined t o assume that o nly a de vilish subtlety c ould de vise s uch a c hain of circumstances and set it to work. There is no doubt about the subtlety, but its m oral e valuation r emains a d oubtful m atter, because I m ust emphasize that the motives leading to this dramatic denouement were in n o s ense conscious. To t he pa tient, t he w hole story s eemed to happen of itself, without her being c onscious of any m otive. But the previous history m akes it perfectly c lear that everything was unconsciously di rected t o this e nd, w hile t he c onscious m ind was struggling to bring about the

17


13

14

15

engagement to Mr. B. The unconscious drive in the other direction was stronger. So once more we return to our original question, namely, whence comes t he pa thological ( i.e., p eculiar o r ex aggerated) n ature o f t he reaction t o t he trauma? O n t he b asis o f a co nclusion dr awn f rom analogous experiences, we conjectured that in this case too there must be, in addition to the trauma, a disturbance in the erotic sphere. This conjecture ha s be en e ntirely c onfirmed, a nd w e ha ve learnt t hat t he trauma, the ostensible cause of the illness, is no more than an occasion for s omething previously n ot c onscious to m anifest itself, i.e., a n important e rotic c onflict. A ccordingly the tr auma lo ses its e xclusive significance, and is replaced by a much deeper and more comprehensive conception which sees the pathogenic agent as an erotic conflict. One often hears the question: why should the erotic conflict be the cause of the neurosis rather than any other conflict? To this we can only answer: n o o ne a sserts th at it m ust b e s o, b ut in p oint o f f act it frequently is so. In spite of all indignant protestations to the contrary, the f act r emains t hat 10ve,1째 i ts pr oblems a nd i ts c onflicts, i s of fundamental importance in human life a nd, a s c areful i nquiry consistently s hows, i s of f ar gr eater s ignificance t han t he i ndividual suspects. The trauma theory has therefore been abandoned as antiquated; for with the discovery that not the trauma but a hidden erotic conflict is the root of the neurosis, the trauma loses its causal significance.ll 10 Using the word in the wider sense which belongs to it by right and embraces more than sexuality. This is not to say that love and its disturbances are the only source of neurosis. Such di sturbances may b e of s econdary na ture a nd conditioned by de eper-lying c auses. There are other ways of becoming neurotic. 11 Genuine shock-neuroses like shell-shock, "railway spine," etc. form an exception.

18


II THE ER OS THEORY 1 6

17

In the light of this discovery, the question of the trauma was answered in a most unexpected manner; but in its place the investigator was faced with the problem of the erotic conflict, which, as our example shows, contains a wealth of abnormal elements and cannot at first sight be compared with an ordinary erotic conflict. What is peculiarly striking and almost incredible is that only the pretence should be conscious, while the patient's re'al passion remained hidden from her. In this case certainly, it is beyond dispute that the real relationship was shrouded in darkness, while the pretended one dominated the field of consciousness. If we formulate these facts theoretically, we arrive at the following result: there are in a neurosis two tendencies standing in strict opposition to one another, one of which is unconscious. This proposition is formulated in very general terms on purpose, because I want to stress that although the pathogenic conflict is a personal matter it is also a broadly human conflict manifesting itself in the individual, for disunity with oneself is the hall-mark of civilized man. The neurotic is only a special instance of the disunited man who ought to harmonize nature and culture within himself. The gr owth of c ulture c onsists, a s w e know , i n a pr ogressive subjugation of the animal in man. It is a process of domestication which cannot be a ccomplished w ithout r ebellion o n t he pa rt of t he a nimal nature that thirsts for freedom. From time to time there passes as it were a wave of frenzy through the ranks of men too long constrained within the l imitations of t heir c ulture. A ntiquity e xperienced it i n the Dionysian o rgies th at surged o ver f rom t he E ast an d b ecame an essential and characteristic ingredient of classical culture. The spirit of these orgies contributed not a little towards the development of the stoic ideal of asceticism in the innumerable sects and philosophical schools 19


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

18

of the last century before Christ, which produced from the polytheistic chaos of t hat e poch the t win a scetic r eligions of Mithraism a nd Christianity. A s econd w ave of Dionysian l icentiousness s wept o ver the West at the Renaissance. It is difficult to gauge the spirit of one's own time; but in the succession of revolutionary questions to which the last half century gave birth, there was the "sexual question," a nd this has fathered a whole new species of literature. In this "movement" are rooted the beginnings of psychoanalysis, on whose theories it exerted a very o ne-sided in fluence. A fter al l, n obody can b e co mpletely independent of the currents of his age. Since then the "sexual question" has largely be en thrust i nto t he ba ckground b y po litical a nd s piritual problems. T hat, h owever, d oes nothing to a lter the f undamental f act that m an's instinctual na ture is a lways c oming up a gainst t he c hecks imposed by civilization. The names alter, but the facts remain the same. We also know today that it is by no means the animal nature alone that is a t odds with civilized constraints; very often it is new ideas which are thrusting upwards from the unconscious and are just as much out of harmony with the dominating culture as the instincts. For instance, we could easily construct a political theory of neurosis, in so far as the man of today is c hiefly e xcited by p olitical passions to which the "sexual question" was o nly a n i nsignificant prelude. I t m ay turn out that politics ar e but t he f orerunner o f a f ar deeper r eligious co nvulsion. Without being aware of i t, the ne urotic pa rticipates i n t he dom inant currents of his age and reflects them in his own conflict. Neurosis is intimately bound up with the problem of our time a nd really represents a n unsuccessful attempt on the part of the individual to solve the general problem in his own person. Neurosis is self-division. I n m ost p eople the c ause of the division i s that t he conscious mind w ants t o ha ng on t o i ts moral i deal, while the unconscious strives after its-in the contemporary sense-unmoral ideal which the conscious m ind tries to deny. Men of this type want to be more respectable than they really are. But the conflict can easily be the other way a bout: t here ar e m en w ho ar e t o al l ap pearances v ery disreputable and do not put the least restraint upon themselves. This is at bottom only a pose of wickedness, for in the background they have their moral side which has fallen into the unconscious just as surely as 20


THE EROS THEORY

19

20

21

the immoral s ide in t he cas e of t he m oral m an. ( Extremes s hould therefore b e a voided as f ar as p ossible, b ecause t hey a lways ar ouse suspicion of their opposite.) This general discussion was necessary in order to clarify the idea of an "erotic c onflict." Thence we can pr oceed to discuss f irstly the technique of psychoanalysis and secondly the question of therapy. Obviously the great question for this technique is: How are we to a rrive b y t he s hortest a nd best pa th a t a knowledge of w hat is happening in the unconscious of the patient? The original method was hypnotism: either interrogation in a state of hypnotic concentration or else the spontaneous production of fantasies by the patient while in this state. This method is still occasionally employed, but c ompared with the present technique it is primitive and often unsatisfactory. A second method was evolved by the Psychiatric Clinic, in Zurich, the so-called association m ethod.1 It d emonstrates v ery accurately t he presence o f conflicts in the form of "complexes" of feeling-toned ideas, as they are called, which betray themselves through characteristic disturbances in the c ourse of t he e xperiment.2 But th e most im portant m ethod of getting a t the pa thogenic c onflicts is, a s Freud was the first to show, through the analysis of dreams. Of the dream it can indeed be said that "the stone which the builders rejected, the same is become the the head of the corner." It is only in m odern t imes that t he dr eam, t his fleeting a nd insignificant-looking pr oduct of the ps yche, has m et w ith such profound contempt. Formerly it was esteemed as a harbinger of fate, a portent and comforter, a messenger of the gods. Now we see it as the emissary of the unconscious, whose task it is to reveal the secrets that are hidden from the conscious mind, and this it does with astounding completeness. The "manifest" dream, i.e., the dream as we remember it, is in Freud's view only a fac;:ade which gives us no idea of the interior of the house, but, on the contrary, carefully conceals it with the help of the " dream cen sor." I f, h owever, w hile o bserving cer tain t echnical rules, we induce the dreamer to talk about the details of his dream, it soon becomes evident that his associations tend in a particular direc1Jung and others, Studies in Word Association, trans. by M. D. Eder. [In the Call. Works, Vo!. 2.] 2

Jung, "A Review of the Complex Theory." 21

.


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

tion and group themselves round particular topics. These are of personal significance and yi eld a meaning w hich c ould n ever ha ve be en conjectured to lie behind the dream, but which, as careful comparison has s hown, s tands i n a n extremely d elicate and meticulously e xact relationship to th e d ream f a<,;ade. T his p articular complex of i deas wherein are united all the threads of the dream is the conflict we are looking f or, or r ather a va riation of i t c onditioned by c ircumstances. According t o F reud, t he pa inful a nd incompatible e lements i n t he conflict a re in this way so c overed up or obliterated that we we m ay speak of a " wishfulfilment." H owever, i t i s onl y ve ry s eldom t hat dreams f ulfil obvi ous wishes, a s f or i nstance i n t he s o-called body-stimulus dreams, e.g., the sensation of hunger during sleep, when the de sire fo r fo od i s s atisfied by dr eaming a bout de licious m eals. Likewise the pressing idea that one ought to get up, conflicting with the desire to go on sleeping, leads to the wish-fulfilling dream-idea that one has al ready g ot u p, et e. I n Fr eud's v iew t here a re al so unconscious wishes whose nature is incompatible with the ideas of the waking mind, painful wishes which one prefers not to admit, and these are precisely the wishes that F reud r egards as the real architects of the dream. For instance, a daughter loves her mother tenderly, but dreams to her great distress that he r m other is de ad. Freud argues that there e xists in this daughter, unbeknown to herself, the exceedingly painful wish to see her mother removed from this world with all speed, because she has secret resistances t o he r. E ven i n t he m ost bl ameless da ughter s uch m oods may occur, but they would be met with the most violent denial if one tried to saddle her with them. To all appearances the manifest dream contains no t race of wish-fulfilment, r ather of apprehension or a larm, consequently the direct opposite of the supposed unconscious impulse. But we know well enough that exaggerated alarm can often and rightly be suspected of the contrary. (Here the critical reader may justifiably ask: When is the alarm in a dream exaggerated?) Such dreams, in which there i s a pparently no t race of w ish-fulfilment, are in numerable: th e conflict worked out in the dream is unconscious, and so is the attempted solution. Actually, there does exist in our dreamer the tendency to be rid of her mother; expressed in the language of the unconscious, she wants her ~other to die. But the dreamer should certainly not be saddled 22


Itll': l'.KU:) Ttll':UKY

with this tendency because, strictly speaking, it was not she who fabricated the dream, but the unconscious. The unconscious has this tendency, most unexpected from the dreamer's point of view, to get rid of the mother. The very fact that she can dream such a thing proves that she does not consciously think it. She has no notion why her mother should be got rid of. Now we know that a certain layer of the unconscious contains everything that has passed beyond the recall of memory, including all those infantile instinctual impulses which could find no outlet in adult life. We can say that the bulk of what comes out of the unconscious has an infantile character at first, as for instance this wish, which is simplicity itself: "When Mummy dies you will marry me, won't you, Daddy?" This expression of an infantile wish is the substitute for a recent desire to marry, a desire in this case painful to the dreamer, for reasons still to be discovered. The idea of marriage, or rather the seriousness of the corresponding impulse, is, as they say, "repressed into the unconscious" and from there must necessarily express itself in an infantile fashion, because the material at the disposal of the unconscious consists largely of infantile reminiscences. Our dream is apparently concerned with a twinge of infantile jealousy. The dreamer is more or less in love with her father, and for that reason she wants to get rid of her mother. But her real conflict lies in the fact 22 that on the one hand she wants to marry, and on the other hand is unable to make up her mind: for one never knows what it will be like, whether he will make a suitable husband, etc. Again, it is so nice at home, and what will happen when she has to part from darling Mummy and be all independent and grown up? She fails to notice that the marriage question is now a serious matter for her and has her in its grip, so that she can no longer creep home to father and mother without bringing the fateful question into the bosom of the family. She is no longer the child she once was; she is the woman who wants to get married. As such she comes back, complete with her wish for a husband. But in the family the father is the husband and, without her being aware of it, it is on him that the daughter's desire for a husband falls. But that is incest! In this way there arises a secondary incest-intrigue. Freud assumes that the tendency to incest is primary and the real reason why the dreamer cannot make up her mind to marry. Compared with that, the

23


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

23

24

25

26

other reasons we have cited count for little. With regard to this view I have l ong a dopted t he standpoint that t he oc casional oc currence o f incest is no proof of a universal tendency to incest, any more than the fact of m urder pr oves the e xistence of a u niversal homicidal m ania productive of conflict. I would not go so far as to say that the germs of every kind of criminality are not present in each of us. But there is a world of difference between the presence of such a germ and an actual conflict with its resulting cleavage of the personality, such as exists in a neurosis. If we follow the history of a neurosis with attention, we regularly f ind a c ritical m oment when s ome pr oblem e merged t hat was evaded. This evasion is just as natural and just as common a reaction as the laziness, s lackness, c owardice, an xiety, i gnorance, an d unconsciousness w hich a re a t t he ba ck of i t. W henever t hings a re unpleasant, difficult, and dangerous, we mostly hesitate and if possible give t hem a w ide be rth. I r egard t hese r easons a s e ntirely sufficient. The symptomatology of incest, which is undoubtedly there and which Freud r ightly saw, i s to m y m ind a secondary p henomenon, a lready pathological. The dream is often occupied with apparently very silly details, t hus pr oducing a n i mpression of a bsurdity, or e lse i t is on t he surface so unintelligible as to leave us thoroughly bewildered. Hence we al ways h ave t o o vercome a cer tain r esistance b efore w e can seriously set a bout disentangling the intricate w eb t hrough pa tient work. B ut w hen a t last we penetrate t o its r eal m eaning, w e f ind ourselves deep in the dreamer's secrets and discover with astonishment that an ap parently quite s enseless dream is i n the h ighest de gree significant, and that in reality it speaks only of important and serious matters. This discovery compels rather more respect for the so-called superstition t hat dreams have a m eaning, t o w hich t he r ationalistic temper of our age has hitherto given short shrift. As Freud says, dream-analysis is the via regia to the unconscious. It leads straight to the deepest personal secrets, and is, therefore, an invaluable instrument in the hand of the physician and educator of the soul. The analytical method in general, and not only the specifically F reudian p sychoanalysis, c onsists in the m ain of n umerous dream-analyses. I n t he c ourse of treatment, the d reams s uccessively throw up the contents of the unconscious in order to ex24


THE EROS THEORY

pose them to the disinfecting power of daylight, and in this way much that is va luable a nd believed lost i s f ound a gain. I t i s only t o be expected that for many people who have false ideas about themselves the treatment i s a v eritable t orture. F or, in a ccordance w ith t he old mystical s aying, "Give u p what t hou ha st, then s halt t hou r eceive!" they are called upon to a bandon a ll their cherished illusions in order that something deeper, fairer, an d m ore em bracing may ar ise w ithin them. I t is a g enuine o ld wisdom t hat comes to l ight again i n t he treatment, an d i t i s es pecially c urious that t his ki nd of p sychic education should prove necessary in the heyday of our culture. In more than one respect it may be compared with the Socratic method, though it must be said that analysis penetrates to far greater depths. 27 The Freudian mode of investigation sought to prove that an overwhelming importance a ttaches t o the e rotic or sexual f actor a s regards the origin of the pathogenic conflict. According to this theory there is a c ollision between t he trend of t he c onscious mind a nd the unmoral, incompatible, unconscious wish. T he u nconscious w ish i s infantile, i.e., it is a wish from the childish past that will no longer fit the present, and is therefore repressed on moral grounds. The neurotic has the soul of a child who bears ill with arbitrary restrictions whose meaning he doe s not see; he tries to make this morality his own, but falls into disunity with himself: one side of him wants to suppress, the other longs to be free-and this struggle goes by the name of neurosis. Were the conflict clearly conscious in all its parts, presumably it would never give r ise t o neurotic symptoms; t hese oc cur only w hen w e cannot see the other side of our nature and the urgency of its problems. Only under these conditions does the symptom appear, and it helps to give expression to the unrecognized side of the psyche. The symptom is t herefore, in F reud's v iew, the f ulfilment of u nrecognized d esires which, w hen c onscious, c ome i nto violent c onflict w ith o ur m oral convictions. A s a lready observed, t his s hadow-side o f t he ps yche, being withdrawn from conscious scrutiny, cannot be dealt with by the patient. H e can not c orrect it, c annot c ome t o terms w ith it, nor yet disregard it; f or in r eality he d oes not " possess" t he unc onscious impulses at all. Thrust out from the hierarchy of the conscious psyche, they have become autonomous complexes which it is the task of analysis, not without great resistances, to bring under control again.

25


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

There are patients w ho boa st t hat f or t hem t he s hadow-side doe s not exist; they assure us that they have no conflict, but they do not see that other t hings of unkn own or igin c umber t heir pa thhysterical m oods, underhand tricks which they play on themselves and their neighbours, a nervous catarrh of the stomach, pains in various places, irritability for no reason, and a whole host of nervous symptoms. 28 Freudian psychoanalysis has been accused of liberating man's ( fortunately) r epressed animal i nstincts a nd thus c ausing incalculable harm. This apprehension shows how little trust we place in the e fficacy of our moral pr inciples. P eople pr etend that onl y t he morality pr eached f rom t he pul pit hol ds m en ba ck f rom unbridled licence; b ut a much more ef fective regulator i s n ecessity, w hich s ets bounds far more real and persuasive than any moral precepts. It is true that psychoanalysis makes the animal instincts conscious, though not, as many would have it, with a view to giving them boundless freedom, but rather t o i ncorporating t hem i n a pur poseful w hole. I t i s unde r a ll circumstances an advantage to be in full possession of one's personality, dtherwise t he r epressed e lements w ill onl y c rop up a s a hi ndrance elsewhere, not just at some unimportant point, but at the very spot where we are most sensitive. If people can be educated to see the shadow-side of t heir na ture c learly, i t m ay b e hope d t hat t hey w ill a lso l earn t o understand and love their fellow men better. A little less hypocrisy and a little more self-knowledge can only have good results in respect for our neighbour; f or w e a re. a ll t oo pr one t o t ransfer t o our f ellows t he injustice and violence we inflict upon our own natures. 29 The Freudian theory of repression certainly does seem to say that t here a re, a s i t w ere, onl y hype rmoral pe ople w ho r epress t heir unmoral, instinctive natures. Accordingly the unmoral man, who lives a life of unr estrained i nstinct, s hould be i mmune t o ne urosis. T his is obviously not the case, as experience shows. Such a man can be just as neurotic a s any ot her. If w e a nalyse hi m, we s imply f ind t hat hi s morality is repressed. The neurotic immoralist presents, in N ietzsche's striking phrase, the picture of the "pale felon" who does not live up to his acts. 3째 We can of course take the view that the repressed remnants of decency are in this case only a traditional hang-over from in26


THE EROS THEORY

31

fancy, which imposes an unnecessary check on i nstinctual nature and should therefore be eradicated. The principle of ecrasez l'infd.me would end in a theory of absolute libertinism. Naturally, that would be quite fantastic a nd nonsew;~~l T. should ne ver be f orgotten-and of this the Freudian se he be reminded-that morality was not brought down on t ~ stone from Sinai and imposed on the people, but is a fun the human soul, as old as humanity itse1f(Morality is not imposed from outside; we have it in ourselves from the start-not the law, but our moral nature w ithout w hich t he c ollective l ife of hum an s ociety w ould be impossible. That is why morality is found at all levels of society. It is the instinctive regulator of action which also governs the collective life of t he he rd. But m oral l aws a re v alid onl y w ithin a c ompact hu man group. Beyond that, they cease. There the old truth runs: Homo homini lupus. With the growth of civilization we have succeeded in subjecting ever l arger hum an gr oups t o t he r ule of t he s ame m orality, w ithout, however, h aving ye t br ought t he moral code t o pr evail be yond t he social frontiers, that is, in the free space between mutually independent societies. T here, a s of ol d, r eign l awlessness an d l icence an d mad immorality-thoug, of course it is only the enemy who dares to say it out loud. The Freudian school is so convinced of the fundamental, indeed exclusive, importance of sexuality in neurosis that it has drawn the logical conclusion and valiantly attacked the sexual morality of our day. This was be yond a doubt u seful a nd ne cessary, f or in t his f ield there prevailed a nd s till p revail id eas w hich i n vi ew of t he e xtremely complicated state of affairs are too undifferentiated. Just as in the early Middle Ages finance was held in contempt because there was as yet no differentiated f inancial m orality t o s uit each cas e, b ut o nly a m ass morality, so today there is only a mass sexual morality. A girl who has an illegitimate baby is condemned and nobody asks whether she is a decent hum an be ing or not. Any f orm of love not sanctioned by l aw is considered immoral, whether between worth-while people or bounders. We are still so hypnotized by what happens that we forget how and to whom it happens, just as for the Middle Ages finance was nothing but glittering gold, fiercely coveted and therefore the devil.

27


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

32

Yet things are not quite so simple as that. Eros is a questionable fellow and will always remain so, whatever the legislation of the future may have to say about it. He belongs on one side to man's primordial animal nature which will endure as long as man has an animal lYoltr-Ofitne-ofher side he is related to the highest forms of the spirit. But he thrives only when spirit and instinct are in right narmony. If one or the other aspect is lacking to him, the result is injury or at least a lopsidedness that may easily veer towards the pathological. Too much of the animal distorts the civilized man, too much civilization makes sick animals. This dilemma reveals the vast uncertainty that Eros I holds for man. For, at bottom, Eras is a superhuman power \ which, like nature herself, allows itself to be conquered and ex- ) ploited as though it were impotent. But triumph over nature is dearly paid for. Nature requires no explanations of principle, I but asks only for tolerance and wise measure. ' "Eros is a mighty daemon," as the wise Diotima said to Socrates. We shall never get the better of him, or only to our own hurt. He is not the whole of our inward nature, though he is at least one of its essential aspects. Thus Freud's sexual theory of neurosis is grounded on a true a nd f actual principle. B ut i t m akes t he m istake of be ing one-sided and e xclusive; also it c ommits the imprudence of trying to lay ho ld of unc onfinable E ros w ith the crude t erminology of s ex. In this r espect Fr eud i s a t ypical r epresentative o f the m aterialistic epoch,3 whose hope i t w as t o s olve t he w orld r iddle i n a t est-tube. Freud himself, with advancing years, admitted this lack of balance in his theory, a nd he o pposed t o E ros, w hom he c alled l ibido, the destructive or death instinct.4 In his posthumous writings he says:

1

I

33

After long hesitancies and vacillations we have decided to assume the the e xistence of o nly t wo ba sic instincts, Eras and the destructive instinct .... The aim of the first of these basic instincts is to establish ever greater unities and to preserve them thus-in short, to bind together; the aim of the second is, on the contrary, to undo connec3 Cf. Jung, "Sigmund Freud in His Historical Setting." 4 This .idea came originally from my pupil S. Spielrein: cf. "Die D estruktion als Ursache des W erdens" (1912). This w ork i s m entioned by Freud, who i ntroduces t he de structive instinct in "Beyond the Pleasure Principle" (orig. 1920), Ch. V. [More fully in Ch. VI, which contains the Spielrein reference: Standard Edn., XVIII, p. 55.-EDITORS.]

28


THE EROS THEORY

tions and so to destroy things .... For this reason we also call it the death instinct.5 34

I must content myself with this passing reference, without entering more closely into the questionable nature of the conception. It is sufficiently obvious that life, like any other process, has a beginning and an end and that every beginning is also the beginning of the end. What Freud probably means is the essential fact that every process is a phenomenon of energy, and that all energy can proceed only from the tension of opposites. 5 ["An Outline of Psycho-Analysis" (orig. 1940), Standard Edn., XXIII, p. 148 .]

29


III THE OTHER POINT OF VIEW: THE WILL TO POWER 35

So far we have considered the problem of this new psychology essentially from the Freudian point of view. Undoubtedly it has shown us a very real truth to which our pride, our civilized consciousness, may say no, though something else in us says yes. Many people find this fact extremely ir ritating; it a rouses their h ostility o r e ven t heir f ear, an d consequently they are unwilling to recognize the conflict. And indeed it is a f rightening t hought t hat m an a lso ha s a s hadow-side to him, consisting not just of little weaknesses and foibles, but of a positively demonic dynamism. The individual seldom knows anything of this; to him, a s a n i ndividual, i t is i ncredible t hat he s hould e ver i n a ny circumstances g o b eyond h imself. B ut let t hese h armless cr eatures form a mass, and there emerges a raging monster; and each individual is only one tiny cell in the monster's body, so that for better or worse he must a ccompany i t on i ts bloody r ampages a nd e ven a ssist i t t o the utmost. Having a dark suspicion of these grim possibilities, man turns a blind e ye t o the s hadow-side of hum an na ture. B lindly h e s trives against the salutary dogma of original sin, which is yet so prodigiously true. Y es, he e ven he sitates t o a dmit t he c onflict of w hich he i s s o painfully aw are. I t can r eadily be un derstood t hat a s chool of psychology-even i f it b e b iased an d ex aggerated in th is or th at respect-which insists on the seamy s ide, i s u nwelcome, not t o s ay frightening, because it f orces u s t o ga ze into t he bot tomless a byss of this pr oblem. A dim pr emonition tells u s t hat w e c annot be w hole without this negative side, that we have a body which, like all bodies, casts a s hadow, an d t hat if w e d eny t his b ody we ceas e t o b e t hreedimensional and become flat and without substance. Yet this body is a beast w ith a be ast's soul, a n or ganism that gives unquestioning obedience to instinct. To unite oneself with this 3째


THE OTHER POINT OF VIEW: THE WILL TO POWER

36

37

shadow is to say yes to instinct, to that formidable dynamism lurking in the background. From this the ascetic morality of Christianity wishes to free us , but a t t he r isk of di sorganizing m an's a nimal na ture a t t he deepest level. Has anyone made clear to himself what that means-a yeasaying to instinct? That was what N ietzsche desired and taught, and he was i n d eadly ear nest. With a r are p assion h e s acrificed h imself, his whole l ife, t o t he idea o f t he Su perman-to t he idea of the m an w ho through obe dience t o i nstinct transcends hi mself. A nd what wa s t he course o f t hat l ife? I t w as a s N ie tzsche h imself prophesied in Zarathustra) in that foreboding vision of the fatal fall of the rope-dancer, the m an w ho w ould no t be " surpassed." T o t he dying r ope-dancer Zarathustra says: "Thy soul w ill s ooner be de ad than thy bo dy!" a nd later th e dwarf s ays t o Z arathustra, " 0 Z arathustra, s tone of w isdom! High th ou f lingest thyself, but e very s tone t hat i s f lung m ust f all! Condemned t o t hyself a nd t o t hine ow n s toning: 0 Z arathustra, f ar indeed thou flingest the stone-but upon thyself will it fall." And when he cried his "Ecce Homo" over himself, again it was too late, as once before w hen t his saying w as ut tered, a nd t he c rucifixion of t he s oul began before the body was dead. We must look very critically at the life of one who taught such a yea-saying, in order to examine the effects of this teaching on the teacher's own life. When we scrutinize his life with this aim in view we are bound t o a dmit t hat N ietzsche l ived be yond instinct, i n t he l ofty heights of heroic sublimity-heights that he could maintain only with the help of the most meticulous diet, a carefully selected climate, and many aids to sleep-until th e te nsion s hattered hi s brain. He t alked of yea-saying a nd lived the na y. His loathing f or m an, f or t he hum an animal that liv ed b y instinct, was t oo gr eat. D espite e verything, he could not swallow the toad he so often dreamed of and which he feared had to be swallowed. The roaring of the Zarathustrian lion drove back into the c avern of t he unc onscious a ll t he " higher" m en w ho w ere clamouring to live. Hence his life does not convince us of hi.s teaching. For the "higher" man wants to be able to sleep wIthout chloral, to live in Naumburg and Basel despite "fogs and shadows." He desires wife and offspring, standing a nd e steem am ong t he he rd, i nnumerable commonplace realities, and pot least those of the Philistine. Nietzsche failed to live this in31


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

stinct, the animal urge to life. For all his greatness and importance, Nietzsche's was a pathological personality. 38 But what was it that he lived, if not the life of instinct? Can Nietzsche really be accused of having denied his instincts in practice? He would scarcely ha ve agreed to that. He c ould e ven show without much difficulty that he lived his in stinctual lif e in the highest sense. But h ow i s it p ossible, we m ay a sk i n a stonishment, f or m an's instinctual na ture to dr ive him i nto s eparation f rom his k ind, into absolute i solation f rom hum anity, i nto a n a loofness f rom t he he rd upheld by loathing? We think of instinct as uniting man, causing him to mate, to beget, to seek pleasure and good living, the satisfaction of all sensuous de sires. We f orget t hat this i s o nly one of t he p ossible directions of in stinct. T here e xists n ot o nly t he i nstinct f or t he preservation of the species, but also the instinct of se It-preservation. 39 It is of this last instinct, the will to power) that Nietzsche obviously speaks. Whatever else is instinctual only follows, for him, in the train of the will to power. From the standpoint of F reud's sexual psychology, this is an error of the most glaring kind, a misconception of biology, the bungling of a decadent neurotic. For it is a very simple matter for any adherent of sexual psychology to prove that everything lofty and heroic in N ietzsche's view of life and the world is nothing but a c onsequence of the r epression a nd m isunderstanding of that other instinct which this psychology regards as fundamental. 40 The case of N ietzsche shows, on the one hand, the consequences of neurotic one-sidedness, and, on the other hand, the dangers that lurk in this leap beyond Christianity. Nietzsche undoubtedly felt the Christian denial of animal nature very deeply indeed, and therefore he s ought a higher human wholeness be yond good a nd e vil. B ut he who seriously criticizes the basic attitudes of Christianity also forfeits the protection which these be stow upon him. He delivers himself up unresistingly to the animal psyche. That is the moment of Dionysian frenzy, the overwhelming manifestation of the "blond beast," 1 which seizes the unsuspecting soul with nameless shudderings. The seizure transforms him into a hero or into a godlike being, a super1 [Cf.

Jung, "The Role of the Unconscious," par. 17.-EDlTORS.]

32


THE OTHER POINT OF VIEW: THE WILL TO POWER

41

human entity. He rightly feels himself "six thousand feet beyond good and evil." The psychological observer knows this state as "identification with the shadow," a phenomenon which occurs with great regularity at such moments of collision with the unconscious. The only thing that helps here is cautious self-criticism. Firstly and before all else, it is exceedingly unlikely that one has just discovered a world-shattering truth, for such things happen extremely seldom in the world's history. Secondly, one must carefully inquire whether something similar might not have happened elsewhere-for instance N ietzsche, as a philologist, could have adduced a few obvious classical parallels which would certainly have calmed his mind. Thirdly, one must reflect that a Dionysian experience may well be nothing more than a relapse into a pagan form of religion, so that in reality nothing new is discovered !,md the same story only repeats itself from the beginning. Fourthly, one cannot avoid foreseeing that this joyful intensification of mood to heroic and godlike heights is dead certain to be followed by an equally deep plunge into the abyss. These considerations would put one in a position of advantage: the whole extravaganza could then be reduced to the proportions of a somewhat exhausting mountaineering expedition, to which succeed the eternal commonplaces of day. Just as every stream seeks the valley and the broad river that hastens towards the flatlands, so life not only flows along in commonplaces, but makes everything else commonplace. The uncommon, if it is not to end in catastrophe, may steal in alongside the commonplace, but not often. If heroism becomes chronic, it ends in a cramp, and the cramp leads to catastrophe or to neurosis or both. N ietzsche got stuck in a state of high tension. But with this ecstasy he could just as well have borne up under Christianity. Not that this answers the question of the animal psyche in the least-for an ecstatic animal is a monstrosity. An animal fulfils the law of its own life, neither more nor less. We can call it obedient and "good." But the ecstatic by-passes the law of his own life and behaves, from the point of view of nature, improperly. This impropriety is the exclusive prerogative of man, whose consciousness and free will can occasionally loose themselves contra naturam from their roots in animal nature. It is the indispensable 33


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS foundation of all culture, but also of spiritual sickness if exaggerated. Man can suffer only a certain amount of culture without injury. The endless dilemma of culture and nature is always a question of too much or too little, never of either-or. 42 The case of Nietzsche faces us with the question: What did the collision with the shadow, namely the will to power, reveal to him? Is it to be regarded as something bogus, a symptom of r epression? Is the will to power genuine or merely secondary? If the conflict with the shadow had let loose a flood of sexual fantasies, the matter would be perfectly clear; but it happened otherwise. The "Kern des Pudels" was not Eras but the power of the ego. From this we would have to conclude that what was repressed was not Eros but the will to power. There is in my opinion no ground for the assumption that Eras is genuine and the will t o pow er bogus. T he w ill to power i s s urely just a s m ighty a daemon as Eros, and just as old and original. 43 A life like Nietzsche's, lived to its fatal end with rare consistency i n acco rdance w ith the underlying i nstinct f or p ower, c annot simply be e xplained a way a s bo gus. O therwise o ne w ould m ake oneself guilty of the same unfair judgment that N ietzsche passed on his p olar opp osite, W agner: " Everything a bout him i s f alse. W hat i s genuine is hidden or decorated. He is an actor, in every good a nd bad sense of t he w ord." W hy this prejudice? B ecause W agner em bodies that other elemental urge which Nietzsche overlooked, and upon which Freud's psychology is built. If we inquire whether Freud knew of that other instinct, the urge to power, we find that he conceived it under the name of "ego-instinct." But these "ego-instincts" occupy a rather pokey little corner in his psychology compared with the broad, all too broad, development of t he sexual f actor. I n r eality h uman na ture be ars t he burden of a terrible and unending conflict between the principle of the ego a nd the pr inciple of i nstinct: t he e go a ll ba rriers and r estraint, instinct limitless, and both principles of equal might. In a certain sense man may count himself happy that he is "conscious only of the single urge," and therefore it is only prudent to guard against ever knowing the other. But if he does learn to know the other, it is all up with him: he then enters upon the Faustian conflict. In the first part of Faust Goethe has shown us what it means to accept instinct a nd in the second part what it means to accept the ego and its weird uncon34


THE OTHER POINT OF VIEw: THE WILL TO POWER

44

45

scious world. All that is insignificant, paltry, and cowardly in u cowers and shrinks from this acceptance-and there is an excel lent pretext for this: we discover that the "other" in us is indeec "another," a real man, who a ctually t hinks, doe s, f eels, a nd de s ires a ll t he t hings that a re despicable and odious. In this wa; we can seize hold of the bogey and declare w ar on hi m t o om satisfaction. Hence those c hronic idiosyncrasies of which the his tory of morals has preserved some fine examples. A particularl) transparent example is that already cited-"N ietzsche contn Wagner, contra Paul," etc. But daily life abounds in such cases By this ingenious device a man may save himself from the Faus tian catastrophe, before which his courage and his strength mighl well fail him. A whole man, however, knows that his bitteresl foe, or indeed a host of enemies, does not equal that one worS1 adversary, the "other self" who dwells in his bosom. N ietzsch( had Wagner in himself) and that is why he envied him Parsifal; but, what was worse, he, Saul, also had Paul in him. TherefoH Nietzsche became one stigmatized by the spirit; like Saul he hac to experience Christification, when the "other" whispered th( "Ecce Homo" in h is e ar. Which of them "brake down befon the cross"-Wagner or Nietzsche? Fate willed it that one of Freud's earliest disciples, Alfrec Adler, should formulate a view of neurosis2 based exclusively on the power principle. It is of no little interest, indeed singularl) fascinating, to s ee how utterly d ifferent t he same t hings 1001 when vi ewed in a contrary light. To take the main contrast first: with Freud everything follows f rom a ntecedent c ircumstance1 a ccording t o a r igorous causality, with Adler everything is a teleological "arrangement." Here is a simple example: A young woman begins to have attacks of anxiety. At night she wakes uF from a nightmare with a blood-curdling cry, is scarcely able tc calm herself, clings to her husband and implores him not t c leave h er, d emanding as surance t hat h e r eally loves h er, et c. Gradually a ne rvous a sthma de velops, the a ttacks a lso c oming on during the day. The Freudian method at once begins burrowing into the inner c ausality of t he sickness a nd i ts s ymptoms. W hat were t he f irst anxiety dreams about? Ferocious bulls, lions, tigers, and evil men were attacking h er. W hat ar e t he p atient's as sociations? A 2 The Neurotic Constitution.

35


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

story of something that happened to her before she was married. She was staying at a health resort in the mountains. She played a good deal of tennis and the usual acquaintances were made. There was a young Italian who played particularly well and also knew how to handle a guitar in the evening. An innocent flirtation developed, leading once to a moonlight stroll. On this occasion the Italian temperament "unexpectedly" broke loose, much to the alarm of the unsuspecting girl. He gave her "such a look" that she could never forget it. This look follows her even in her dreams: the wild animals that pursue her look at her just like that. But does this look in fact come only from the Italian? Another reminscence is instructive. The patient had lost her father through an accident when she was about fourteen years old. Her father was a man of the world and travelled a good deal. Not long before his death he took her with him to Paris, where they visited, among other places, the Folies Bergeres. There something happened that made an indelible impression on her. On leaving the theatre, a painted hussy jostled her father in an incredibly brazen way. Looking in alarm to see what he would do, she saw this same look, this animal glare, in his eyes. This inexplicable something followed her day and night. From then on her relations with her father changed. Sometimes she was irritable and subject to venomous moods, sometimes she loved him extravagantly. Then came sudden fits of weeping for no reason, and for a time, whenever her father was at home, she suffered at table from a horrible gulping accompanied by what looked like choking-fits, generaIly followed by loss of voice for one or two days. When the news of the sudden death of her father reached her, she was seized by uncontrollable grief, which gave way to fits of hysterical laughter. However, she soon calmed down; her condition quickly improved, and the neurotic symptoms practicaIly vanished. A veil of forgetfulness was drawn over the past. Only the episode with the Italian stirred something in her of which she was afraid. She then abruptly broke off all connection with the young man. A few years later she married. The first appearance of her present neurosis was after the birth of her second child, just when she made the discovery that her husband had a certain tender interest in another woman. 46 This history gives rise to many questions: for example, what 36


THE OTHER POINT OF VIEW: THE WILL TO POWER

about the mother? Concerning the mother the relevant facts an that she was very nervous and spent her time trying every kind of sanatorium and m ethod or c ure. S he t oo s uffered f rom ne rv路 ous a sthma a nd anxiety symptoms. The marriage had been of a very distant kind as far back as the patient could remember. Her mother did not understand the father properly; the patient always had the feeling that she understood him m uch b etter. Sh e w as h er f ather's co nfessed darling an d w as correspondingly cool at heart towards her mother. These hints may suffice to give us an over-all picture of the illness. Behind t he p resent s ymptoms l ie f antasies w hich ar e i mmediately 47 related to the experience with the Italian, but which clearly point back to the father, whose unhappy marriage gave the little daughter an early opportunity t o secure f or he rself t he pl ace t hat s hould properly ha ve been fiIled by the mother. Behind this conquest there lies, of course, the fantasy of being the reaIly suitable wife for the father. The first attack of neurosis broke out at a moment when this fantasy received a severe shock, pr obably t he s ame s hock t hat t he m other ha d a lso r eceived, though this would be unknown to the child. The symptoms are easily understandable as an expression of disappointed and slighted love. The choking is due to that feeling of constriction in the throat, a weIl-known concomitant o f v iolent af fects w hich can not b e q uite " swaIlowed down." ( The m etaphors of c ommon s peech, a s w e know , f requently relate t o s uch ph ysiological phe nomena.) W hen t he f ather di ed, he r conscious mind was grieved to death, but her shadow laughed, after the manner of T iIl E ulenspiegel, w ho w as d oleful w hen t hings w ent downhill, but fuIl of merry pranks on the weary way up, always on the look-out f or what lay ah ead. W hen h er f ather w as at h ome, s he w as dejected and ill; when he was away, she always felt much better, like the i nnumerable hu sbands a nd w ives w ho hi de f rom e ach ot her t he sweet secret that neither is altogether indispensable to the other. That t he unc onscious ha d a t t his juncture s ome j ustification f or laughing i s s hown by t he s upervening period of goo d he alth. S he succeeded in letting her whole past sink into oblivion. Only the episode with the Italian threatened to resurrect the underworld. But with a quick 8 gesture she flung the door to and remained healthy until the dragon of 4 neurosis came creeping

37


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

49

50

back, just when she imagined herself safely over the mountain, in the perfect state, so to speak, of wife and mother. Sexual psychology says: the cause of the neurosis lies in the patient's fundamental inability to free herself from her father. That is why that ex perience ca me u p a gain w hen s he d iscovered in th e Italian th e mysterious "something" which had previously made such an overwhelming impression o n her in c onnection w ith her f ather. T hese memories w ere naturally r evived by t he analogous e xperience w ith her husband, the immediate cause of the neurosis. We could therefore say that the content of and reason f or the neurosis was t he c onflict b etween t he i nfantile-erotic relation to her father and her love for her husband. If, however, we look at the same clinical picture from the point of view of the "other" instinct, the will to power, it assumes quite a different aspect. Her parents' unhappy marriage afforded an excellent opportunity for the childish urge to power. The power-instinct wants the ego to be "on top" under all circumstances, by fair means or fouL The "integrity of the personality" must be preserved at all costs. Every attempt, be it only an apparent attempt, of the environment to obtain the slightest ascendency over the subject is met, to use Adler's expression, by the "masculine protest." The disillusionment of the mother and her withdrawal into neurosis created the desired opportunity for a display of power and for gaining the ascendency. Love and good behaviour are, from the standpoint of the powerinstinct, known to be a choice means to this end. Virtuousness often serves to compel recognition from others. Already as a child the patient knew how to secure a privileged position with her father through especially ingratiating and affectionate behaviour, and to get the better of her mother-not out of love for her father, but because love was a good method of gaining the upper hand. The laughing-fit at the time of her father's death is striking proof of this. We are inclined to regard such an explanation as a horrible depreciation of love, not to say a malicious insinuation, until we reflect for a moment and look at the world as it is. Have we not seen countless people who love and believe in their love, and then, when their purpose is accomplished, turn away as though they had never loved? And finally, is not this the way of nature herself? Is "disinterested" love at all pos38


THE OTHER POINT OF VIEW: THE WILL TO POWER

sible? If so, it belongs to the highest virtues, which in point fact are exceedingly rare. Perhaps there is in general a tenden to think as little as possible about the purpose of love; otherwi we might make discoveries which would show the worth of 0 love in a less favourable light. 5! The patient, then, had a laughing-fit at the death of her ther-she had finally arrived on top. It was an hysterical laug ter, a psychogenic symptom, something that sprang from uncc scious motives and not from those of the conscious ego. That i: difference not to be made light of, and one that also tells whence and how certain human virtues arise. Their OPPOsi1 went down to hell-or, in modern parlance, into the unce scious-where the counterparts of our conscious virtues ha long been accumulating. Hence for very virtue we wish to knc nothing of the unconscious; indeed it is the acme of virtuo sagacity to declare that there is no such thing as the unconsciOl But alas! it fares with us all as with Brother Medardus in He mann's tale The Devil's Elixir: somewhere we have a sinis1 and frightful brother, our own flesh-and-blood counterpart, w holds and maliciously hoards everything that we would so wi ingly hide under the table. 52 The first outbreak of neurosis in our patient occurred t moment she realized that there was something in her fatn which she could not dominate. And then a great light dawne she now knew what was the purpose of her mother's neuros namely that when you encounter an obstacle which cannot overcome by rational methods and charm, there is still anotn method, hitherto unknown to her, which her mother had ready discovered beforehand, i.e., neurosis. So from now on s imitates her mother's neurosis. But what, we may ask in aste ishment, is the good of a neurosis? What can it do? Anyone w has in his neighbourhood a definite case of neurosis knows w enough what it can "do." There is no better method of t路 annizing over the entire household. Heart-attacks, choking-fi spasms of all kinds, produce an enormous effect that can hare be surpassed. Oceans of sympathy are let loose, there is the ;; guish of worried parents, the running to and fro of servan telephone bells, hurrying doctors, difficult diagnoses, elabof< examinations, lengthy treatments, heavy expenses, and there 39


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

the midst of all the hubbub lies the innocent sufferer, with everybody overflowing w ith gr atitude w hen a t last s he r ecovers f rom he r "spasms." 53 This unsurpassable "arrangement"-to use Adler's expression-was discovered by t he l ittle o ne a nd a pplied with s uccess whenever her father was there. It became superfluous when the father died, f or now s he w as f inally o n t op. T he I talian w as dropped overboard when he l aid too m uch e mphasis on her f emininity by a n appropriate r eminder of h is vi rility. B ut w hen a suitable c hance of marriage presented itself, she l oved, a nd r esigned h erself w ithout a murmur t o t he f ate of w ife a nd m other. S o long a s he r r evered superiority w as m aintained, e verything w ent s wimmingly. B ut once her h usband had a l ittle b it of i nterest ou tside, s he ha d recourse as before to t hat e xceedingly ef fective " arrangement" f or t he i ndirect exercise o f her power, because s he had a gain en countered t he obstacle-this time in her husband-which previously in her father's case had escaped her mastery. 54 This is how things look from the point of view of power psychology. I fear the reader must feel like the cadi who, having heard the counsel for the one party, said, "Thou hast well spoken. I perceive that thou a rt r ight." Then c ame t he other pa rty, a nd when he ha d finished, the cadi scratched himself behind the ear and said, "Thou hast well spoken. I pe rceive t hat t hou a lso a rt r ight." I t i s u nquestionable that t he ur ge to power plays a n e xtraordinarily i mportant part. I t i s correct t hat n eurotic s ymptoms a nd c omplexes a re also e laborate "arrangements" which i nexorably p ursue their a ims, w ith incredible obstinacy a nd c unning. Neurosis is teleologically or iented. I n establishing this Adler has won for himself no small credit. 55 Which of the two points of view is right? That is a question that might lead to much brain-racking. One simply cannot lay the two explanations side by side, for they contradict each other absolutely. In the one, the chief and decisive fact is Eros and its destiny; in the other, it is the power of the ego. In the first case, the ego is merely a sort of appendage to Eros; in the second, love is just a means to the end, which is ascendency. Those who have the power of the ego most at heart will revolt against the first conception, but those who care most for love will never be reconciled to the second.

40


IV THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE 1

The incompatibility of the two theories discussed in the preceding chapters requires a standpoint superordinate to both, in which they c ould c ome together in un ison. ,Ne are c ertainly not e ntitled to discard one in favour of the other, however convenient this expedient might be. For, if we examine the two theories without prejudice, we cannot deny that both contain significant truths, and, contradictory as these a re, t hey should no t be r egarded a s m utually e xclusive. The Freudian theory is attractively simple, so much so that it almost pains one i f a nybody dr ives i n t he wedge of a c ontrary a ssertion. B ut t he same is true of Adler's theory. It too is of illuminating simplicity and explains just as much as the Freudian theory. No wonder, then, that the adherents of both s chools obstinately c ling t o t heir o nesided truths. For humanly understandable reasons they are unwilling to give up a beautiful, r ounded t heory i n e xchange f or a pa radox, o r, worse s till, lose themselves in the confusion of contradictory points of view. 57 Now, since both theories are in a large measure correct-that is t o s ay, s ince they b oth a ppear to e xplain t heir m aterial-it f ollows that a neurosis m ust have t wo opposite a spects, one of w hich i s grasped by t he F reudian, the o ther by t he A dlerian t heory. B ut h ow comes it that each investigator sees only one side, and why does each maintain that he has the only valid view? It must come from the fact that, ow ing to hi s ps ychological pe culiarity, e ach i nvestigator m ost readily sees that f actor i n the ne urosis which c orresponds to h is peculiarity. I t c annot be a ssumed t hat the c ases of neurosis s een b y Adler a re totally different f rom t hose seen by F reud. B oth a re obviously w orking with t he same m aterial; b ut be cause of pe rsonal peculiarities they each see 56

41


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

things f rom a di fferent a ngle, a nd t hus t hey e volve f undamentally different v iews an d theories. A dler s ees h ow a subject w ho f eels suppressed and inferior tries to secure an illusory superiority by means of "protests," "arrangements," a nd o ther a ppropriate devices d irected equally ag ainst p arents, teachers, r egulations, a uthorities, s ituations, institutions, and such. Even sexuality may figure among these devices. This vi ew l ays u ndue e mphasis upo n the s ubject, be fore w hich the idiosyncrasy an d s ignificance o f o bjects en tirely v anish. O bjects ar e regarded at best as vehicles of suppressive tendencies. I shall probably not be w rong in a ssuming that t he love r elation a nd other de sires directed upon objects exist equally in Adler as essential factors; yet in his t heory of ne urosis t hey do no t play the pr incipal r ole assigned t o them by Freud. 58 Freud sees hi s pa tient i n pe rpetual dependence o n, a nd i n r elation t o, significant objects. Father and mother play a large part here; whatever other s ignificant influences or c onditions e nter into t he l ife of t he patient go back in a direct line of causality to these prime factors. The Piece de resistance of his theory is the concept of transference, i.e., the patient's relation to the doctor. Always a specifically qualified object is either desired or met with resistance, and this reaction always follows the pattern established in earliest childhood through the relation to father a nd m other. W hat c omes f rom t he s ubject is e ssentially a bl ind striving after pleasure; but this striving always acquires its quality from specific objects. With Freud objects are of the greatest significance and possess a lmost e xclusively the de termining p ower, w hile the subject remains remarkably insignificant and is really not hing m ore than the source of desire for pleasure and a "seat of anxiety." As already pointed out, F reud r ecognizes e go-instincts, but t his term a lone is e nough to show that his conception of the subject differs toto coelo from Adler's, where the subject figures as the determining factor. 59 Certainly both investigators see the subject in relation to the object; but how di fferently t his r elation i s s een! W ith A dler t he emphasis is placed on a subject who, no matter what the object, seeks his ow n s ecurity a nd supremacy; with F reud t he e mphasis is pl aced wholly upon ob jects, w hich, acco rding to their specific ch aracter, either promote or hinder the subject's desire for pleasure.

42


THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE

This difference c an ha rdly he a nyrh;ng e h' om a , l;ffrrf'nce o f temperament, a co ntrast between two tYpeS of human mental路 ity, one of which f inds the de termining a gency pre-eminently i n t he subject, the other in the object. A middle view, it may be that of common sense, would s uppose that human be haviour i s c onditioned a s m uch by t he subject as by the object. The two investigators would probably assert, on the other hand, that their theory does not envisage a psychological explanation of the normal man, but is a theory of neurosis. But in that case Freud would have to explain and treat some of his patients along Adlerian lines, and Adler condescend to give earnest consideration in certain instances to his former teacher's point of view-which has occurred neither on the one side nor on the other. The spectacle of this dilemma made me ponder the question: are there 61 at least two different human types, one of them more interested in the object, the other more interested in himself? And does that explain why the one sees only the one and the other only the other, and thus each arrives at totally different conclusions? As we have said, it was hardly to be s upposed t hat f ate selected the pa tients s o m eticulously t hat a definite gr oup invariably r eached a de finite doc tor. F or s ome t ime i t had struck me, in connection both with myself and with my colleagues, that th ere are some cases which make a distinct a nneal, while o thers somehow refuse to "click." It is of crucial importance for the treatment whether a good r elationship between doc tor and patient is possible or not. If some measure of natural confidence does not develop within a short period, then the patient will do better to choose another doctor. I myself have never shrunk from recommending to a colleague a patient whose peculiarities were not in my line or were unsympathetic to me, and in deed th is is in the patient's own in terests. I a m p ositive that in such a c ase I w ould not do g ood work. Everyone ha s hi s personal limitations, and the psychotherapist in particular is well advised never to disregard them. Excessive personal differences and incompatibilities cause resistances that are disproportionate and out of place, though they are not altogether unjustified. The Freud-Adler controversy is simply a paradigm and one single instance among many possible attitude-types. 62 I have long busied myself with this question and have finally, on the basis of numerous observations and experiences, come to 43 6 0


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

63

64

65

postulate two f undamental attitudes, namely introversion and extraversion. The first attitude is normally characterized by a hesitant, reflective, retiring nature that keeps itself to itself, shrinks from objects, is a lways s lightly o n t he de fensive a nd pr efers t o hi de behind mistrustful s crutiny. The second i s n ormally ch aracterized b y an outgoing, c andid, a nd a ccommodating na ture t hat a dapts e asily t o a given s ituation, qui ckly f orms a ttachments, a nd, setting a side a ny possible misgivings, will often venture forth with careless confidence into unknown situations. In th,= first case obviously the subject, and in the second the object, is all-important. Naturally these remarks sketch the two types only in the roughest outlines.! As a m atter of empirical fact the two attitudes, to which I shall come back shortly, can seldom be observed in their pure state. They are infinitely varied and compensated, so that often the type is n ot a t a ll e asy to e stablish. T he r eason f or v ariation-apart fro m individual f luctuations-is t he pr edominance of one of the c onscious functions, s uch a s t hinking or f eeling, w hich t hen gi ves t he ba sic attitude a special character. The numerous compensations of the basic type are generally due to experiences which teach a man, perhaps in a very painful way, that he cannot give free rein to his na ture. In other cases, f or i nstance w ith neurotics, one f requently does not k now whether one is dealing w ith a c onscious or a n unc onscious a ttitude because, owing to the dissociation of the personality, sometimes one half o f it a nd s ometimes t he o ther ha lf oc cupies t he f oreground a nd confuses one's judgment. This is what makes it so excessively trying to live with neurotic persons. The actual existence of far-reaching type-differences, of which I ha ve de scribed e ight gr oups2 i n t he a bove-mentioned bo ok, has enabled me to conceive the two controversial theories of neurosis as manifestations of a type-antagonism. This discovery brought with it the need to rise above the opposition and to create a theory which should do justice not A complete study of the type problem is to be found in my Psychological Types. Naturally this does not include all the existing types. Further points of difference are age. sex, activity. e motionality, a nd l evel of d evelopment. M y t yp:>psychology i s ba sed on t he f our orienting f unctions of c onsciousness: thinking, f eeling, s ensation, a nd i ntuition. S ee ibid. (1923 edn., pp, 428ft.). !

2

44


THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE

merely to one or the other side, but to both equally. For this purpose a critique of b oth t he a forementioned t heories is e ssential. B oth a re painfully inclined to reduce high-flown ideals, heroic attitudes, nobility of f eeling, deep c onvictions, to some ba nal r eality, if a pplied to such things a s t hese. O n n o a ccount should they be s o a pplied, f or bo th theories are pr operly therapeutic instruments from the a rmoury of the doctor, whose kni fe m ust be s harp a nd pitiless f or e xcising w hat i s diseased a nd injurious. T his w as w hat N ie tzsche w anted w ith h is destructive criticism of ideals, which he held to be morbid overgrowths in the soul of humanity (as indeed they sometimes are). In the hand of a good doctor, of one w ho r eally kn ows the human s oul -who, t o us e Nietzsche's p hrase, has a " finger f or n uances"both theories, w hen applied to the really sick part of a soul, are wholesome caustics, of great help i n do sages m easured t o t he individual c ase, but ha rmful a nd dangerous in the hand that knows not how to measure and weigh. They are cr itical m ethods, ha ving, l ike a ll c riticism, t he power t o d o go od when there is something that must be destroyed, dissolved, or reduced, but capable only of harm when there is something to be built. 66 Both theories may therefore be allowed to pass with no ill consequences provided that, like medical poisons, they are entrusted to tl;1e s ure ha nd of t he p hysician, f or i t r equires a n un common knowledge of the human psyche to apply these caustics with advantage. One must be capable of distinguishing the pathological and the useless from what is valuable and worth preserving, and that is one of the most difficult things. Anyone who wishes to get a vivid impression of how irresponsibly a ps ychologizing doc tor c an f alsify hi s s ubject t hrough narrow, ps eudo-scientific p rejudice, s hould turn t o t he w ritings of Mabius on N ietzsche, or , better s till, t o t he va rious " psychiatric" writings on the "case" of Christ. He will not hesitate to cry a "threefold lamentation" over the patient who meets with such "understanding. " 67 The two theories of neurosis are not universal theories: they are cau stic r emedies to be ap plied, as it w ere, l ocally. T hey ar e destructive a nd r eductive. T hey say t o e verything, " You a re not hing but. ... " They explain to the sufferer that his symptoms come from here and f rom there a nd a re nothing bu t this or t hat. I t w ould be unjust to assert that this reduction is wrong in 45


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

68

a given case; but, exalted to the status of a general explanation of the healthy psyche a s w ell a s t he s ick, a r eductive t heory by itself i s impossible. F or t he hum an ps yche, be i t s ick or he althy, c annot be explained solely by reduction. Eros is certainly always and everywhere present, the urge to power certainly pervades the heights and depths of the psyche, but the psyche is not just the one or the other, nor for that matter both together. It is also what it has made and will make out of them. A man is only half understood when we know how everything in him came into being. If that were all, he could just as well have been dead years ago. As a living being he is not understood, for life does not have only a yesterday, nor is it explained by r educing today to yesterday. Life has also a tomorrow, and today is understood only when we can a dd t o our know ledge of w hat w as ye sterday t he beginnings of tomorrow. This is true of all life's psychological expressions, even of pathological symptoms. The symptoms of a neurosis are not simply the effects of long-past causes, whether "infantile sexuality" or the infantile urge t o p ower; t hey a re a lso a ttempts a t a ne w s ynthesis of life-unsuccessful at tempts, let i t b e ad ded i n the s ame b reath, y et attempts nevertheless, w ith a c ore of va lue a nd m eaning. T hey a re seeds that fail to sprout owing to the inclement conditions of inner and outer nature. The reader will doubtless ask: What in the world is the value and meaning of a neurosis, this most useless and pestilent curse of hum anity? To be ne urotic-what good c an that do? A s m uch good, possibly, as flies and other pests, which the good Lord created so that man might exercise the useful virtue of patience. However stupid this thought is f rom t he p oint of v iew of na tural s cience, i t m ay ye t be sensible e nough f rom t he po int of vi ew of ps ychology, if w e put "nervous symptoms" instead of "pests." Even N ietzsche, a rare one for scorning stupid and banal thoughts, more than once acknowledged how much he ow ed t o hi s m alady. I m yself ha ve kn own more t han one person w ho o wed hi s e ntire us efulness a nd r eason f or existence t o a neurosis, which prevented all the worst follies in his life and forced him to a m ode of l iving t hat de veloped his va luable po tentialities. T hese might have been stifled had not the neurosis, with iron grip, held him to the place where he belonged. There are actually people who have the whole meaning of their life, their true significance, in the unconscious, while in the conscious mind is 46


THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE

nothing bu t inveiglement a nd e rror. With ot hers t he c ase is r eversed, and here neurosis has a different meaning. In these cases, but not in the former, a thoroughgoing reduction is indicated. 69 At this point the reader may be inclined to grant the possibility t hat the ne urosis has such a m eaning i n c ertain c ases, while denying it so far-reaching a purposiveness in ordinary everyday cases. What, f or i nstance, c ould be the va lue of a ne urosis in t he above-mentioned cas e o f as thma w ith i ts h ysterical anxiety-states? I admit that the value is not so obvious here, especially when the case is considered from the theoretical reductive standpoint, that is, from the shadow-side of individual development. 7째 The two theories we have been discussing evidently have this much i n c ommon: t hey p itilessly unveil e verything t hat be longs to man's s hadow-side. T hey a re t heories or , m ore c orrectly, hy potheses which e xplain i n w hat the pa thogenic f actor c onsists. T hey a re accordingly c oncerned not w ith a m an's po sitive v alues, b ut w ith h is negative values which make themselves so disturbingly conspicuous. 1 7 A "value" is a possibility for the display of energy. But in so far a s a ne gative value i s l ikewise a po ssibility f or t he di splay of energy-which can be seen most clearly in the notable manifestations of neurotic energy-it too is properly a "value," but one that brings about useless and harmful manifestations of energy. Energy in itself is neither good nor bad, neither useful nor harmful, but neutral, since everything depends on t he form into w hich e nergy pa sses. F orm gi ves e nergy i ts quality. On the other hand, mere form without energy is equally neutral. For t he cr eation of a r eal va lue, t herefore, bot h e nergy a nd va luable form are needed. In neurosis psychic energy3 is present, but undoubtedly it is there in an inferior and unserviceable form. The two reductive theories act as solvents of this inferior form. They are approved caustic remedies, by means of which we obtain free but neutral energy. Now, it has hitherto been supposed that this newly disengaged energy is at the conscious disposal of the patient, so that he can apply it at his pleasure. Since it was thought that the energy is nothing but the instinctual power of s ex, pe ople talked o f a " sublimated" application of it, on t he assumption that the patient could, with the help of analysis, canalize the 3 Cf. my essay "On Psychic Energy."

47


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

sexual e nergy i nto a " sublimation," i n ot her w ords, could a pply i t non-sexually, in the practice of an art, perhaps, or in some other good or useful a ctivity. A ccording t o this vi ew, i t i s pos sible f or th e p atient, from f ree c hoice or i nclination, t o a chieve t he s ublimation of hi s instinctual forces. 72 We may allow that this view has a certain justification in so far as man is at all capable of marking out a definite line along which his life has to go. But we know that there is no human foresight or wisdom that can prescribe direction to our life, except for small stretches of the way. This is of course true only of the "ordinary" type of life, not of the "heroic" type. The latter kind also exists, though it is much rarer. Here we are certainly not entitled to say that no marked direction can be given to life, or only for short distances. The heroic style of life is absolutethat is, it is oriented by fateful decisions, and the decision to go in a certain direction holds, sometimes, to the bitter end. Admittedly the doctor has to do, in the m ain, onl y w ith h uman be ings, s eldom with vol untary heroes, and then they are mostly of a type whose surface heroism is an infantile defiance of a fate greater than they, or else a pomposity meant to cover up s ome touchy inferiority. In this overpoweringly humdrum existence, alas, there is little out of the ordinary that is healthy, and not much room for conspicuous heroism. Not that heroic demands are never put t o u s: on the c ontrary-and th is is j ust w hat is s o irritating a nd irksome-the ba nal e veryday makes ba nal demands upon our pa tience, our de votion, pe rseverance, s elfsacrifice; a nd f or u s t o f ulfil th ese demands (as we must) humbly and without courting applause through heroic g estures, a h eroism i s ne eded t hat c annot be s een f rom t he outside. I t doe s not gl itter, i s not belauded, a nd i t always s eeks concealment in everyday attire. T hese a re t he de mands w hich, i f not fulfilled, are the cause of neurosis. In order to evade them, many a man has dared the great decision of his life and carried it through, even if in the common human estimation it was a great error. Before a fate such as this one can only bow one's head. But, as I say, such cases are rare; the others are in the vast majority. For them the direction of their life is not a simple, straight line; fate confronts them like an intricate labyrinth, all too rich in possibilities, and yet of these many possibilities only one is their own right way. Who would presume-even though armed with the completest 48


THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE

knowledge of hi s ow n c haracter-to de signate i n a dvance t hat s ingle possibility? Much indeed can be attained by the will, but, in view of the fate of certain markedly strong-willed personalities, it is a fundamental error to try to subject our own fate at all costs to our will. Our will is a function regulated by reflection; hence it is dependent on the quality of that reflection. This, if it really is reflection, is supposed to be rational, i.e., in accord with reason. But has it ever been shown, or will it ever be, that life and fate are in accord with reason, that they too are rational? We have on the contrary good grounds for supposing that they are irrational, or rather that in the last resort they are grounded beyond human reason. The irrationality of events is shown in what we call chance, which we are obviously compelled to deny because we cannot in principle think of any process that is not causal a nd necessary, whence it follows that it cannot ha ppen by c hance.4 In p ractice, h owever, ch ance r eigns everywhere, and s o obt rusively t hat w e might a s w ell put our c ausal philosophy in our pocket. The plenitude of life is governed by law and yet not governed by l aw, rational and yet irrational. Hence reason and the w ill t hat,is gr ounded i n r eason a re va lid onl y up t o a poi nt. T he further we go i n the direction selected by r eason, the surer we may be that we are excluding the irrational possibilities of life which have just as m uch r ight t o be l ived. I t w as i ndeed hi ghly e xpedient f or m an t o become somewhat more capable of directing his life. I t m ay justly be maintained that the acquisition of reason is the greatest achievement of humanity; but that is not to say that things must or will always continue in that direction. The frightful catastrophe of the first World War drew a very t hick l ine t hrough t he c alculations of e ven t he m ost opt imistic rationalizers of culture. In 1913, Wilhelm Ostwald wrote: The whole w orld i s ag reed t hat t he p resent s tate o f ar med p eace i s untenable a nd is gr adually be coming impossible. I t de mands tremendous sacrifices from each single nation, far exceeding the expenditure for c ultural pur poses, ye t without s ecuring a ny pos itive values. I f mankind could discover ways and means for doing away with 4 Modern phy sics ha s pu t a n _ e nd to this strict c ausality. N ow t here is only " statistical probability." A s far ba ck a s '9,6, I h ad p ointed o ut th e limitations o f the c ausal v iew in psychology, for w hich I w as he avily c ensured a t the t ime. S ee m y pr eface to the second edition of Collected Papers on Analytical Psychology, in Freud and Psychoanalysis, pp. 293ff.

49


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

these p reparations f or wars which never take place, together w ith t he immobilization of a large pa rt of the na tion's m anhood, a t the a ge of maximum strength and efficiency, for the furtherance of warlike aims, and a ll the ot her innumerable e vils which the pr esent state of a ffairs creates, such an immense economy of e nergy would be e ffected that from this moment onwards we could look forward to a blossoming of culture hitherto undreamed of. For war, like personal combat, although the oldest of all possible means of settling contests of will, is on that very account t he m ost i nept, a nd e ntails t he m ost gr ievous w aste of energy. Hence the complete abolition of warfare, potential no less than actual, i s t he cat egorical imperative o f ef ficiency an d o ne o f t he supremely important cultural tasks of our day.5 The irrationality of fate, however, did not concur with the rationality of w ell-meaning t hinkers; i t or dained n ot on ly the destruction of the accumulated arms and armies, but, far beyond that, a mad and monstrous devastation, a mass murder without parallel-from which humanity may possibly draw the conclusion that only one side of fate can be mastered with rational intentions. 74 What is true of humanity in general is also true of each individual, f or hum anity c onsists o nly of i ndividuals. A nd a s i s the psychology of h umanity s o a lso i s t he psychology of t he i ndividual. The W orld W ar br ought a terrible r eckoning w ith t he r ational intentions of c ivilization. W hat is c alled " will" i n the in dividual i s called "imperialism" in nations; for all will is a demonstration of power over f ate, i .e., t he ex clusion o f ch ance. C ivilization i s t he r ational, "purposeful" sublimation of f ree e nergies, brought a bout by will a nd intention. I t is t he same with the i ndividual; a nd j ust a s the idea of a world civilization received a fearful correction at the hands of war, so the indi· vidual must often learn in his life that so-called "disposable" energies are not his to dispose. 75 Once, in America, I was consulted by a business man of about forty-five, whose case is a good illustration of what has been said. He was a typical American self-made man who had worked his way up from t he bot tom. H e had be en ve ry s uccessful a nd had f ounded a n immense bus iness. He ha d a lso s ucceeded i n or ganizing i t in such a way that he was able to think of 73

5

Ostwald, Die PhilosoPhie der Werte, pp. 312£. 5°


THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE

retiring. Two years before I saw him he had in fact taken his farewell. Until then he had lived entirely for his business and concentrated all his energies on it with the incredible intensity and one-sidedness peculiar to successful American business men. He had purchased a splendid estate where he thought of "living," by which he meant horses, automobiles, golf, tennis, parties and what not. But he had reckoned without his host. The energy which should have been at his disposal would not enter into these alluring prospects, but went capering off in quite another direction. A few weeks after the initiation of the longedfor life of bliss, he began brooding over peculiar, vague sensations in his body, and a few weeks more sufficed to plunge him into a state of extreme hypochondria. He had a complete nervous collapse. From a healthy man, of uncommon physical strength and abounding energy, he became a peevish child. That was the end of all his glories. He fell from one state of anxiety to the next and worried himself almost to death with hypochondriacal mopings. He then consulted a famous specialist, who reeognized at once that there was nothing wrong with the man but lack of work. The patient saw the sense of this, and returned to his former position. But, to his immense disappointment, no interest in the business could be aroused. Neither patience nor resolution was of any use. His energy could not by any means be forced back into the business. His condition naturally became worse than before. All that had formerly been living, creative energy in him now turned against him with terrible destroying force. His creative genius rose up, as it were, in revolt against him; and just as before he had built up great organizations in the world, so now his daemon spun equally subtle systems of hypochondriacal delusion that completely annihilated him. When I saw him he was already a hopeless moral ruin. Nevertheless I tried to make clear to him that though such colossal energy might be withdrawn from the business, the question remained, where should it go? The finest horses, the fastest cars, and the most amusing parties may very likely fail to allure the energy, although it would be rational enough to think that a man who had devoted his whole life to serious work had a Sort of natural right to enjoy himself. Yes, if fate behaved in a humanly rational way, it would certainly be so: first work, then well-earned rest. But fate behaves irrationally, and the energy 51


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

of life inconveniently demands a gradient agreeable to itself; otherwise it simply gets dammed up and turns destructive. It regresses to former situations-in the case of this man, to the memory of a syphilitic infection contracted twenty-five years before. Yet even this was only a stage on the way to the resuscitation of infantile reminiscences which had all but vanished in the meantime. It was the original relation to his mother that mapped the course of his symptoms: they were an "arrangement" whose purpose it was to compel the attention and interest of his long-dead mother. N or was this stage the last; for the ultimate goal was to drive him back, as it were, into his own body, after he had lived since his youth only in his head. He had differentiated one side of his being; the other side remained in an inert physical state. He would have needed this other side in order to "live." The hypochondriacal "depression" pushed him down into the body he had always overlooked. Had he been able to follow the direction indicated by his depression and hypochondriacal illusion, and make himself conscious of the fantasies which proceed from such a condition, that would have been the road to salvation. My arguments naturally met with no response, as was to be expected. A case so far advanced can only be cared for until death; it can hardly be cured. 76 This example clearly shows that it does not lie in our power to transfer "disposable" energy at will to a rationally chosen object. The same i s t rue in g eneral of the a pparently disposable e nergy w hich is disengaged w hen w e ha ve de stroyed i ts un serviceable f orms t hrough the corrosive of reductive analysis. This energy, as we have said, can at best be applied voluntarily for only a short time. But in most cases it refuses t o s eize hol d, f or a ny l ength of t ime, of t he pos sibilities rationally pr esented t o i t. P sychic e nergy i s a ve ry f astidious t hing which in sists o n f ulfilment of its o wn c onditions. H owever m uch energy may be present, we cannot make it serviceable until we ha ve succeeded in finding the right gradient. 77 This question of the gradient is an eminently practical problem w hich c rops up i n m ost a nalyses. F or instance, w hen i n a favourable case the disposable energy, the so-called libido,6 does 6 From the foregoing it will have become clear to the reader that the term "libido," coined by Freud and very suitable for practical usage, is used by me in a much wider sense. Libido for me means psychic energy, which is equivalent

52


THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE

seize hold of a rational object, we think we have brought about the transformation through conscious exertion of the will. But in that we are deluded, because even the most strenuous exertions would not have sufficed had there not been present at the same time a gradient in that direction. How important the gradient is can be seen in cases when, despite the most desperate exertions, and despite the fact that the object chosen or the form desired impresses everybody with its reasonableness, the transformation still refuses to take place, and all that happens is a new repression. 78 It has become abundantly clear to me that life can flow forward only along the path of the gradient. But there is no energy unless there is a tension of opposites; hence it is necessary to discover the opposite to the attitude of the conscious mind. It is interesting to see how this compensation by opposites also plays its part in the historical theories of neurosis: Freud's theory espoused Eros, Adler's the will to power. Logically, the opposite of love is hate, and of Eros, Phobos (fear); but psychologically it is the will to power. Where love reigns, there is no will to power; and where the will to power is paramount, love is lacking. The one is but the shadow of the other: the man who adopts the standpoint of Eros finds his compensatory opposite in the will to power, and that of the man who puts the accent on power is ,Eras. Seen from the one-sided point of view of the conscious attitude, the shadow is an inferior component of the personality and is consequently repressed through intensive resistance. But the repressed content must be made conscious so as to produce a tension of opposites, without which no forward movement is posto the intensity with which psychic contents are charged. Freud, in accordance with his theoretical assumptions, identifies libido with Eros and tries to distinguish it from psychic energy in general. Thus he says ("Three Essays on the Theory of Sexuality" [orig. Ig08], p. 217): "We have defined the concept of libido as a quantitatively variable force which could serve as a measure of processes and transformations occurring in the field of sexual excitation. We distinguish this libido in respect of its special origin from the energy which must be supposed to underlie mental processes in general." Elsewhere Freud remarks that in respect of the destructive instinct he lacks "a term analogous to libido." Since the so-called destructive instinct is also a phenomenon of energy, it seems to me simpler to define libido as an inclusive' term for psychic intensities, and consequently as sheer psychic energy. CL my Symbols of Transformation, pars. 19off.; also "On Psychic Energy," pars. 4ff.

53


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

sible. The conscious mind is on top, the shadow underneath, and just as high a lways l ongs f or l ow a nd hot f or c old, so a ll c onsciousness, perhaps w ithout be ing a ware of it, s eeks i ts u nconscious oppo site, lacking which it is doomed to stagnation, congestion, and ossification. Life is born only of the spark of opposites. 79 It was a concession to intellectual logic on the one hand and to psychological prejudice on the other that impelled Freud to name the opposite of Eros the destructive or death instinct. For in the first place, Eros is not e quivalent to life; bu t f or a nyone w ho thinks it i s, the opposite of Eros will naturally appear to be death. And in the second place, we all feel that the opposite of our own highest principle must be purely de structive, de adly, a nd e vil. W e r efuse t o e ndow i t w ith a ny positive life-force; hence we avoid and fear it. 80 As I have already indicated, there are many highest principles bo th of life a nd of p hilosophy, a nd a ccordingly t here a re just a s many di fferent f orms of c ompensation by o pposites. E arlier on I singled out the two-as it seems to me-main opposite types, which I have called i ntroverted an d ex traverted. W illiam J ames7 had al ready been struck by the e xistence of b oth t hese t ypes a mong t hinkers. H e distinguished them as "tenderminded" and "tough-minded." Similarly Ostwald 8 found a n a nalogous division into " classic" a nd " romantic" types among men of learning. So I am not alone in my idea of types, to mention only t hese t wo w ell-known na mes a mong m any ot hers. I nquiries into history have shown me that not a few of the great spiritual controversies r est up on the opposition of t he two t ypes. T he m ost significant c ase of t his kind w as the opp osition be tween nom inalism and realism which, beginning with the difference between the Platonic and Megarian schools, became the heritage of scholastic philosophy, and it was Abelard's great merit to have hazarded at least the attempt to unite the t wo op posed s tandpoints i n hi s " conceptualism." 9 This controversy has continued right into our own da y, as is shown in the opposition between idealism and materialism. And again, not only the human mind in general, but each individual has a share in this 7 Pragmatism. 8 Grosse Manner. 9 Psychological Types

(1923 edn., pp. 62ff.).

54


THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE

opposition of types. It has come to light on closer investigation that either type has a predilection to marry its opposite, each being unconsciously complementary to the other. The reflective nature of the introvert causes him always to think and consider before acting. This naturally makes him slow to act. His shyness and distrust of things induce hesitation, and so he always has difficulty in adapting to the external world. Conversely the extravert has a positive relation to things. He is, so to speak, attracted to them. New, unknown situations fascinate him. In order to make closer acquaintance with the unknown he will jump into it with both feet. As a rule he acts first and thinks afterwards. Thus his action is swift, subject to no misgivings and hesitations. The two types therefore seem created for a symbiosis. The one takes care of reflection and the other sees to the initiative and practical action. When the two types marry they may effect an ideal union. So long as they are fully occupied with their adaptation to the manifold external needs of life they fit together admirably. But when the man has made enough money, or if a fine legacy should drop from the skies and external necessity no longer presses, then they have time to occupy themselves with one another. Hitherto they stood back to back and defended themselves against necessity. But now they turn face to face and look for understanding-only to discover that they have never understood one another. Each speaks a different language. Then the conflict between the two types begins. This struggle is envenomed, brutal, full of mutual depreciation, even when conducted quietly and in the greatest intimacy. For the value of the one is the negation of value for the other. It might reasonably be supposed that each, conscious of his own value, could peaceably recognize the other's value, and that in this way any conflict would be superfluous. I have seen a good number of cases where this line of argument was adopted, without, however, arriving at a satisfactory goal. Where it is a question of normal people, such critical periods of transition will be overcome fairly smoothly. By "normal" I mean a person who can somehow exist under all circumstances which afford him the minimum needs of life. But many people cannot do this; therefore not so very many people are normal. What we commonly mean by a "normal person" is actually an ideal person whose happy blend of character is a rare occurrence. By far the greater 55


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

81

number of more or less differentiated persons demand conditions of life which offer considerably more than the certainty of food and sleep. For these the ending of a symbiotic relationship comes as a severe shock. It is not easy to understand why this should be so. Yet if we consider that no man is simply introverted or simply extraverted, but has both attitudes potentially in him-although he has developed only one of them as a function of adaptation-we shall immediately conjecture that with th e in trovert e xtraversion l ies dor mant a nd unde veloped somewhere i n t he ba ckground, a nd t hat i ntroversion l eads a s imilar shadowy e xistence i n t he e xtravert. A nd t his i s i ndeed t he c ase. T he introvert doe s pos sess a n e xtraverted a ttitude, but i t i s unc onscious, because his conscious gaze is always turned to the subject. He sees the object, of c ourse, but ha s f alse or inhibiting i deas a bout it, so that he keeps hi s di stance a s much as pos sible, a s t hough t he obj ect w ere something formidable and dangerous. I will make my meaning clear by a simple illustration: Let us suppose two youths rambling in the country. They come to a fine c astle; b oth w ant to s ee in side it. T he in trovert s ays, ' 'I'd lik e to know what it's like inside." The extravert answers, "Right, let's go in," and m akes f or t he g ateway. T he i ntrovert dr aws ba ck-"Perhaps w e aren't allowed in," says he, with visions of policemen, fines, and fierce dogs in the background. Whereupon the extravert answers, "Well, we can ask. They'll let us in all right"-with visions of kindly old watchmen, hospitable seigneurs, and the possibility of romantic adventures. On the strength of extraverted optimism they at length find themselves in the castle. B ut now c omes t he de nouement. T he c astle h as b een r ebuilt inside, and contains nothing but a couple of rooms with a collection of old manuscripts. As it happens, old manuscripts are the chief joy of the introverted youth. Hardly has he caught sight of them than he becomes as one transformed. He loses himself in contemplation of the treasures, uttering cries of enthusiasm. He engages the caretaker in conversation so as to extract from him as much information as possible, and when the result is disappointing he asks to see the curator in order to propound his questions to hi m. H is s hyness ha s vanished, obj ects have t aken on a seductive glamour, and the world wears a new face. But meanwhile the spirits of the extraverted

56


THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE

82

youth are ebbing lower and lower. His face grows longer and] begins to yawn. No kindly watchmen are forthcoming here, I knightly hospitality, not a trace of romantic adventure-only castle made over into a museum. There are manuscripts enoui to be seen at home. While the enthusiasm of the one rises, tl spirits of the other fall, the castle bores him, the manuscriF remind him of a library, library is associated with universit university with studies and menacing examinations. Graduall)' veil of 'gloom descends over the once so interesting and enticir castle. The object becomes negative. "Isn't it marvellous," cri the introvert, "to have stumbled on this wonderful collection "The place bores me to extinction," replies the other with u disguised ill humour. This annoys the introvert, who secret vows never again to go rambling with an extravert. The latter annoyed with the other's annoyance, and he thinks to himsE that he always knew the fellow was an inconsiderate egotist wl would, in his own selfish interest, waste all the lovely spring d, that could be enjoyed so much better out of doors. What has happened? Both were wandering together j happy symbiosis until they discovered the fatal castle. Then tl forethinking, or Promethean, introvert said it might be seE from the inside, and the after-thinking, or Epimethean, extr vert opened the door.10 At this point the types invert themselve the introvert, who at first resisted the idea of going in, cann< now be induced to go out, and the extravert curses the momer when he set foot inside the castle. The former is now fascinatE by the object, the latter by his negative thoughts. When the i! trovert spotted the manuscripts, it was all up with him. His sh ness vanished, the object took possession of him, and he yieldE himself willingly. The extravert, however, felt a growing resis ance to the object and was eventually made the prisoner of h own ill-humoured subjectivity. The introvert became extr verted, the extravert introverted. But the extraversion of the it trovert is different from the extraversion of the extravert, an vice versa. So long as both were wandering along in joyous ha mony, neither fell foul of the other, because each was in h natural character. Each was positive to the other, because the attitudes were complementary. They were complementary, ho~ my discussion of Carl Spitteler's Prometheus und EPimetheus in Psych logical Types (1923 edn., pp. 207ft'.). 10 Cf.

57


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

83

84

85

86

ever, only because the attitude of the one included the other. We can see t his f rom t he s hort c onversation a t t he ga teway. B oth wanted to enter the castle. The doubt of the introvert as to whether an entry were possible a lso held good f or the o ther. The i nitiative o f th e extravert likewise held good for the other. Thus the attitude of the one includes the other, and this is always in some degree true if a person happens to be in the attitude natural to him, f or this attitude has some degree of collective a daptation. The same i s tr ue o f the introvert's a ttitude, although this a lways starts f rom t he s ubject. I t s imply goe s f rom subject to o bject, w hile th e extravert's attitude g oes from object to subject. But t he m oment w hen, i n t he c ase of t he i ntrovert, t he ob ject overpowers a nd a ttracts t he subject, h is a ttitude loses its social character. He forgets the presence of his friend, he no longer includes him, he becomes absorbed into the object and does not see how very bored hi s friend i s. In t he same w ay t he e xtravert lo ses a ll consideration for the other as soon as his expectations are disappointed and he withdraws into subjectivity and moodiness. We can therefore f ormulate t he occurrence a s f ollows: i n the introvert the influence of the object produces an inferior extraversion, while in the e xtravert a n i nferior i ntroversion takes t he pl ace of h is social a ttitude. And so we come back to the pr oposition from which we s tarted: " The va lue of t he o ne i s the ne gation of value f or t he other." Positive a s w ell as negative o ccurrences can co nstellate t he inferior c ounter-function. W hen this ha ppens, sensitiveness a ppears. Sensitiveness i s a sure s ign of t he presenc~ of i nferiority. This provides t he psychological ba sis f or discord a nd m isunderstanding, not only as between two people, but also in ourselves. The essence of the inferior f unctionll is a utonomy: it i s independent, i t a ttacks, i t fascinates a nd s o s pins us a bout t hat we a re n o l onger m asters of ourselves and can no longer rightly distinguish between ourselves and others. And ye t it is necessary for the development of c haracter that we should allow the other side, the inferior function, to find expression. We cannot in the long run allow one part of our personality to be cared for s ymbiotically by a nother; f or t he m oment when w e m ight ha ve need of the other function may come 11 Psychological Types, DeL 30. 58


THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE

87

8 8

at any time and find us unprepared, as the above example shows. And the consequences may be bad: the extravert loses his indispensable relation to the object, and the introvert loses his to the subject. Conversely, it is equally indispensable for the introvert to arrive at some form of action not constantly bedevilled by doubts and hesitations, and for the extravert to reflect upon himself, yet without endangering his relationships. In extraversion and introversion it is clearly a matter of two antithetical, natural attitudes or trends, which Goethe once referred to as diastole and systole. They ought, in their harmonious alternation, to give life a rhythm, but it seems to require a high degree of art to achieve such a rhythm. Either one must do it quite unconsciously, so that the natural law is not disturbed by any conscious act, or one must be conscious in a much higher sense, to be capable of willing and carrying out the antithetical movements. Since we cannot develop backwards into animal unconsciousness, there remains only the more strenuous way forwards into higher consciousness. Certainly that consciousness, which would enable us to live the great Yea and Nay of our own free will and purpose, is an altogether superhuman ideal. Still, it is a goal. Perhaps our present mentality only allows us consciously to will the Yea and to bear with the Nay. When that is the case, much is already achieved. The problem of opposites, as an inherent principle of human nature, forms a further stage in our process of realization. As a rule it is one of the problems of maturity. The practical treatment of a patient will hardly ever begin ""lilth this problem, especially not in the case of young people. The neuroses of the young generally come from a collision between the forces of reality and an inadequate, infantile attitude, which from the causal point of view is characterized by an abnormal dependence on the real or imaginary parents, and from the teleological point of view by unrealizable fictions, plans, and aspirations. Here the reductive methods of Freud and Adler are entirely in place. But there are many neuroses which either appear only at maturity or else deteriorate to such a degree that the patients become incapable of work. Naturally one can point out in these cases that an unusual dependence on the parents existed even in youth, and that all kinds of infantile illusions were present; but all that did not prevent them from taking up a profession, from practising it 59


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

89

90

successfully, from keeping up a marriage of sorts until that moment in riper years when the previous attitude suddenly failed. In such cases it is of little help to m ake them conscious o f t heir ch ildhood fantasies, dependence on the parents, ete., although this is a necessary part of the procedure and often has a n ot unfavourable result. B ut the real therapy o nly be gins when t he patient sees that it is no longer father and mother who are standing in his way, but himself-i.e., an un conscious part of h is personality which carries on the role of father and mother. Even this realization, helpful as it is, is still negative; it simply says, "I realize that it is not father and mother who are against me, but I myself." But who is it/in him that is against him? What is this mysterious p art o f h is p ersonality th at hides u nder t he f atherand mother-imagos, making him believe for years that the cause of his trouble must somehow have got into him from outside? This part is the counterpart of his conscious attitude, and it will leave him no peace and will continue to plague him until it has been accepted. For young people a liberation from the past may be enough: a beckoning future lies ahead, rich in possibilities. It is sufficient to break a few bonds; the life-urge will do the rest. But we are faced with another task in the case of people who have left a large part of their life b ehind them, f or w hom the f uture no l onger beckons w ith marvellous possibilities, and nothing is to be expected but the endless round of familiar duties and the doubtful pleasures of old age. If ever we succeed in liberating young people from the past, we see that they always transfer the imagos of their parents to more suitable substitute f igures. F or i nstance, the f eeling t hat cl ung to t he m other now passes to the wife, and the father's authority passes to respected teachers and superiors or to institutions. Although this is not a fundamental solution, it is yet a p ractical road w hich the no rmal man t reads u nconsciously a nd therefore with no notable inhibitions and resistances. The problem for the adult is very different. He has put this part of the road behind him with or without difficulty. He has cut loose from his parents, long since dead perhaps, and has sought and found the mother in the wife, or, in the case of a woman, the father in the husband. He has duly honoured his fathers and their institutions, has himself become a father, and, with all this in the past, has possibly come to realize that what 6(;'


THE PROBLEM OF THE ATTITUDE-TYPE

91

92

originally meant advancement and satisfaction has now becom a boring mistake, part of the illusion of youth, upon which h looks back with mingled regret and envy, because nothing no> awaits him but old age and the end of all illusions. Here ther are no more fathers and mothers; all the illusions he projectee upon the world and upon things gradually come home to him jaded and way-worn. The energy streaming back from thes manifold relationships falls into the unconscious and activate all the things he had neglected to develop. In a young man, the instinctual forces tied up in the neurosi give him, when released, buoyancy and hope and the chance tl extend the scope of his life. To the man in the second half of lif, the development of the function of opposites lying dormant il the unconscious means a renewal; but this development nl longer proceeds via the dissolution of infantile ties, the destruc tion of infantile illusions and the transference of old imagos te new figures: it proceeds via the problem of opposites. The principle of opposition is, of course, fundamental eve I in adolescence, and a psychological theory of the adolescen psyche is bound to recognize this fact. Hence the Freudian ani Adlerian viewpoints contradict each other only when they clain to be generally applicable theories. But so long as they are con tent to be technical, auxiliary concepts, they do not contradic or exclude one another. A psychological theory, if it is to h more than a technical makeshift, must base itself on the prin ciple of opposition; for without this it could only re-establish; neurotically unbalanced psyche. There is no balance, no systen of self-regulation, without opposition. The psyche is just such: self-regulating system. 2

93

If at this point we take up the thread we let fall earlier, WI shall now see clearly why it is that the values which the individ uallacks are to be found in the neurosis itself. At this point, too we can return to the case of the young woman and apply thl insight we have gained. Let us suppose that this patient is "ana lysed," i.e., she has, through the treatment, come to understan< the nature of the unconscious thoughts lurking behind he symptoms, and has thus regained possession of the unconsciou energy which constituted the strength of those symptoms. Thl 61


hat to do w ith the so-called disposable energy? In accordance with the psychological type of the patient, it would be rational to transfer this energy to an object-to philanthropic work, for example, or some useful act ivity. W ith ex ceptionally en ergetic n atures that ar e n ot afraid of wearing themselves to the bone, if need be, or with people who delight in t he toil a nd m oil o f such a ctivities, this w ay is possible, but mostly it is impossible. For-do not forget-the libido, as this psychic energy is technically called, already possesses its object unconsciously, in the form of the young Italian or some equally real human s ubstitute. I n t hese ci rcumstances a sublimation is a s impossible as it is desirable, because the real object generally offers the energy a much better gradient than do the most admirable ethical activities. Unfortunately far too many of us talk about a man only as it would be desirable for him to be, never about the man as he really is. But the doctor has always to do with the real man, who remains obstinately himself until all sides of his reality are recognized. True education c an only s tart f rom na ked r eality, no t f rom a de lusive ideal. 94 It is unhappily the case that no man can direct the so-called disposable energy at will. It follows its own gradient. Indeed, it had already found that gradient even before we set the energy free from the unserviceable form to which it was linked. For we discover that the patient's fantasies, previously occupied with the young Italian, have now t ransferred t hemselves to t he doctor.12 The doc tor ha s q himself become the object of the unconscious libido. If the patient u altogether refuses to recognize the fact of the transference,13 or if e the doctor fails to understand it, s t 12 Freud introduced the concept of transference as a designation for the projection of i unconscious contents. o 13 Contrary to certain views I am not of the opllllOn that the "transference to the doctor" is a regular phenomenon indispensable to the success of the treatment. Transference is n projection, and projection is either there or not there. But it is not necessary. In no sense t h e n a r i s e s : w

can it be "made," for by definition it springs from unconscious motivations. The doctor may be a suitable object for the projection, or he may not. There is absolutely no saying that he will in all circumstances correspond to the natural gradient of the patient's libido; for it is quite on the cards that the libido is envisaging a much more important object for its p rojections. T he a bsence of p rojections t o the doc tor m ay i n fact c onsiderably facilitate the treatment, because the real personal values can then come more clearly to the forefront.

62


vigorous resistances supervene, direct( towards making the relation with the doctor completely impc sible. Then the patient goes away and looks for another doctc or for someone who understands; or, if he gives up the searc he gets stuck in his problem. 95 If, however, the transference to the doctor takes place, and accepted, a natural form is found which supplants the earli one and at the same time provides the energy with an outl relatively free from conflict. Hence if the libido is allowed run its natural course, it will find its own way to the destin( object. Where this does not happen, it is always a question wilful defiance of the laws of nature, or of some disturbing infl ence. 96 In the tra~sference all kinds of infantile fantasies are pr jected. They must be cauterized, i.e., resolved by reductive an< ysis, and this is generally known as "resolving the transference Thereby the energy is again released from an unserviceab form, and again we are faced with the problem of its disposab ity. Once more we shall put our trust in nature, hoping the even before it is sought, an object will have been chosen whit will provide a favourable gradient.

o r i n t e r p r e t s i t

63 f a l s e l y ,


97

v THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE (OR TRANSPERSONAL) UNCONSCIOUS 98

9 9

At this point a new stage in our process of realization begins. We carried the analysis of infantile transference fantasies to the point where i t b ecame s ufficiently cl ear, ev en t o t he p atient, t hat h e w as making the doctor his father, mother, uncle, guardian, and teacher, and all the rest of the parental authorities. But, as experience has repeatedly shown, s till o ther f antasies a ppear w hich r epresent t he doc tor a s a saviour or godlike being-naturally in complete contradiction to healthy conscious reasoning. Moreover it transpires that these godlike attributes go far beyond the framework of Christianity in which we have grown up; t hey t ake on a pa gan gl amour and i ndeed ve ry of ten a ppear i n animal form. The t ransference i s i n i tself n o m ore t han a p rojection o f unconscious contents. At first the so-called superficial contents of the unconscious are projected, as can be seen from symptoms, dreams, and fantasies. In this state the doctor is interesting as a possible lover (rather like the young Italian in the case we were discussing). Then he appears more i n t he r ole of t he f ather: e ither t he good, ki nd father o r t he "thunderer," depending on the qualities which the real father had for the patient. Sometimes the doctor has a m aternal significance, a f act that seems somewhat peculiar, but is still within the bounds of possibility. All these fantasy projections are founded on personal memories. Finally there a ppear forms of f antasy that possess a n e xtravagant character. The doc tor is then e ndowed with unc anny po wers: he is a magician or a wicked demon, or else the corresponding personification of goodness, a saviour. Again, he may appear as a mixture of both. Of course it is to be understood that he need not necessarily appear like this to the patient's conscious 64


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

100

101

10 2

mind; it is only the fantasies coming to the surface which picture him in this guise. Such patients often cannot get it into their heads that their fantasies really come from themselves and have little or nothing to do with the character of the doctor. This delusion rests on the fact that there are no personal grounds in the memory for this kind of projection. It can sometimes be shown that similar fantasies had, at a certain period in childhood, attached themselves to the father or mother, although neither father nor mother provided any real occasion for them. Freud has shown in a little essayI how Leonardo da Vinci was influenced in his later life by the fact that he had two mothers. The fact of the two mothers, or of a double descent, was real enough in Leonardo's case, but it plays a role in the lives of other artists as well. Benvenuto Cellini had this fantasy of a double descent. Generally speaking it is a mythological motif. Many heroes in legend have two mothers. The fantasy does not arise from the actual fact that the heroes have two mothers; it is a widespread "primordial" image belonging not to the domain of personal memory but to tLc secrets of the mental history of mankind. There are present in every individual, besides his personal memories, the great "primordial" images, as Jacob Burckhardt once aptly called them, the inherited possibilities of human imagination as it was from time immemorial. The fact of this inheritance explains the truly amazing phenomenon that certain motifs from myths and legends repeat themselves the world over in identical forms. It also explains why it is that our mental patients can reproduce exactly the same images and associations that are known to us from the old texts. I give some examples of this in my book Symbols of Transformation.2 In so doing I do not by any means assert the inheritance of ideas, but only of the possibility of such ideas, which is something very different. In this further stage of treatment, then, when fantasies are produced which no longer Test on personal memories, we have to do with the manifestations of a deeper layer of the unconscious where the primordial images common to humanity lie sleeping. I have called these images or motifs "archetypes," also 1 "Leonardo da Vinci and a Memory of His Childhood" (orig. 1910). 2 Cf. also "The Concept of the Collective Unconscious,"

65


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS "dominants"

of the

unconscious. For a further elucidation of the idea I must refer the reader to the relevant literature.3 3 This discovery means another step forward in our understanding: the recognition, t hat i s, of t wo l ayers i n t he unc onscious. W e ha ve t o distinguish be tween a pe rsonal unc onscious a nd a n impersonal or transpersonal unconscious. We speak of the latter also as the collective unconscious/ because it is d etached f rom anything pe rsonal a nd i s common to all men, since its contents can be found everywhere, which is naturally not t he c ase w ith t he pe rsonal c ontents. The pe rsonal unconscious contains lost memories, painful ideas that are repressed (i.e., forgotten on pur pose), s ubliminal pe rceptions, by w hich a re m eant sense-perceptions that were not strong enough to reach consciousness, and f inally, c ontents t hat a re not ye t r ipe f or consciousness. I t corresponds t o t he f igure of t he s hadow s o f requently m et w ith in dreams.5 The primordial images are the most ancient and the most universal 104 "thought-forms" of hum anity. T hey a re a s much feelings a s t houghts; indeed, t hey l ead t heir ow n i ndependent l ife r ather i n t he m anner o f part-souls,6 a s c an easily be s een i n t hose phi losophical or G nostic systems which r ely on pe rception of the unc onscious a s the source of knowledge. The idea of angels, archangels, "principalities and powers" in S t. P aul, t he a rchons of t he G nostics, t he he avenly hi erarchy of Dionysius the Areopagite, all come from the perception of the relative autonomy of the archetypes. We have now found the object which the libido chooses when it is freed f rom t he pe rsonal, i nfantile f orm of t ransference. It f ollows it s 5 own gr adient dow n i nto the de pths of t he unc onscious, a nd t here activates what has lain slumbering from

10

10

3 Symbols of Transformation; Psychological Types, Def. 26; The Archetypes and the Collective Unconscious; Commentary on The Secret of the Golden Flower. 4 The

collective unconscious stands for the objective psyche, the personal unconscious for the

subjective psyche. 5 By shadow I mean t he " negative" side of t he personality, the sum o f a ll those u npleasant qualities we like to hide, together with the insufficiently developed functions and the contents of t he pe rsonal unc onscious. A c omprehensive a ccount is t o be f ound i n T. Wolfl', "EinfUhrung in die Grundlagen der komplexen P sychologie," pp. 107ft 6 Cf. "A Review of the Complex Theory."

66


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

106

the b~ginning. It has discovered the hidden treasure upon which mankind ever and anon has drawn, and from which it has raised up its gods and demons, and all those potent and mighty thoughts without which man ceases to be man. Let us take as an example one of the greatest thoughts which the nineteenth century brought to birth: the idea of the conservation of energy. Robert Mayer, the real creator of this idea, was a physician, and not a physicist or natural philosopher, for whom the making of such an idea would have been more appropriate. But it is very important to realize that the idea was not, strictly speaking, "made" by Mayer. Nor did it come into being through the fusion of ideas or scientific hypotheses then extant, but grew in its creator like a plant. Mayer wrote about it in the following way to Griesinger, in 1844: I am far from having hatched out the theory at my writing desk. [He then reports certain physiological observations he had made in 1840 and 1841 as ship's doctor.] Now, if one wants to be clear on matters of physiology, some knowledge of physical processes is essential, unless one prefers to work at things from the metaphysical side, which I find infinitely disgusting. I therefore held fast to physics and stuck to the subject with such fondness that, although many may laugh at me [or this, I paid but little attention to that remote quarter of the globe in which we were, preferring to remain on board where I could work without intermission, and where I passed many an hour as though insPired, the like of which I cannot remember either before or since. Some flashes of thought that passed through me while in the roads of Surabaya were at once assiduously followed up, and in their turn led to fresh subjects. Those times have passed, but the quiet examination of that which then came to the surface in me has taught me that it is a truth, which can not only be subjectively felt, but objectively proved. It remains to be seen whether this can be accomplished by a man so little versed in physics as I am.7

In his book on energetics,8 Helm expresses the view that "Robert Mayer's new idea did not detach itself gradually from the traditional 7 concepts of energy by deeper reflection on them, but belongs to those intuitively apprehended ideas which, aris-

10

7 8

Mayer, Kleinere Schritten und Briefe, p. 213 (letter to Wilhelm Griesinger, June 16, 1844). Helm, Die Energetik nach ihrer geschichtlichen Entwicklung, p. 20.

67


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

108

ing in other realms of a spiritual nature, as it were take possession of the mind and compel it to reshape the traditional conceptions in their likeness." The question now arises: Whence came this new idea that thrust i tself u pon c onsciousness w ith s uch e lemental f orce? A nd whence did it derive the power that could so seize upon consciousness that it c ompletely e clipsed the m ultitudinous impressions of a f irst voyage to the tropics? These questions are not so easy to answer. But if we apply our theory here, the explanation can only be this: the idea of energy a nd its c onservation m ust be a pr imordial i mage t hat w as dormant i n t he c ollective u nconscious. S uch a c onclusion na turally obliges us to prove that a primordial image of this kind really did exist in the mental history of mankind and was operative through the ages. As a matter of fact, this proof can be produced without much difficulty: the most primitive religions in the most widely separated parts of the earth are founded upon this image. These are the so-called dynamistic religions w hose s ole a nd d etermining thought is that there e xists a universal magical power9 about which everything revolves. Tylor, the well-known English investigator, and Frazer likewise, misunderstood this i dea a s a nimism. I n r eality p rimitives do n ot m ean, by their power-concept, s ouls o r s pirits at all, b ut s omething w hich the American i nvestigator Lovejoy has ap propriately te rmed " primitive energetics." 10 This concept is equivalent to the idea of soul, spirit, God, health, bodily s trength, f ertility, m agic, i nfluence, power, pr estige, medicine, as well as certain states of feeling which are characterized by the release of affects. Among certain Polynesians mulungu-this same primitive power-concept-means spirit, soul, daemon ism, magic, prestige; a nd when a nything astonishing happens, the people cry out "Mulungu!" This power-concept is also the earliest form of a concept of G od a mong primitives, a nd is a n i mage w hich has un dergone countless variations in the course of history. In the Old Testament the magic p ower g lows i n t he bur ning bush a nd i n the c ountenance of Moses; in the Gospels it descends with the Holy Ghost in the form of fiery tongues from heaven. In Heraclitus it appears as world energy, as "ever-living Generally called mana. Ct. S6derblom, Das Werden des Gottesglaubens (trans. from the Swedish Gudstrons upPkomst). 10 Lovejoy, "The Fundamental Concept of the Primitive Philosophy," p. 361.

9

68


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

10

9

fire"; among the Persians it is the fiery glow of haoma) divine grace; among the Stoics it is the original heat, the power of fate. Again, in medieval legend it appears as the aura or halo, and it flares up like a flame from the roof of the hut in which the saint lies in ecstasy. In their visions the saints behold the sun of this power, the plenitude of its light. According to the old view, the soul itself is this power; in the idea of the soul's immortality there is implicit its conservation, and in the Buddhist and primitive notion of metempsychosis-transmigration of souls-is implicit its unlimited changeability together with its constant duration. So this idea has been stamped on the human brain for aeons. That is why it lies ready to hand in the unconscious of every man. Only, certain conditions are needed to cause it to appear. These conditions were evidently fulfilled in the case of Robert Mayer. The greatest and best thoughts of man shape themselves upon these primordial images as upon a blueprint. I have often been asked where the archetypes or primordial images come from~ It seems to me that their origin can only be explained by assuming them to be deposits of the constantly repeated experiences of humanity. One of the commonest and at the same time most impressive experiences is the apparent movement of the sun every day. We certainly cannot discover anything of the kind in the unconscious, so far as the known physical process is concerned. What we do find, on the other hand, is the myth of the sun-hero in all its countless variations. It is this myth, and not the physical process, that forms the sun archetype. The same can be said of the phases of the moon. The archetype is a kind of readiness to produce over and over again the same or similar mythical ideas. Hence it seems as though what is impressed upon the unconscious were exclusively the subjective fantasy-ideas aroused by the physical process. We may therefore assume that the archetypes 'are recurrent impressions made by subjective reactions.ll Naturally this assumption only pushes the problem further back without solving it. There is nothing to prevent us from assuming that certain archetypes exist even in animals, that they are grounded in the peculiarities of the living organism itself and are therefore direct expressions of life whose nature cannot be further explained. Not only are the Jl Ct. "The Structure of the Psyche," pp. 152ff.

69


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

110

archetypes, a pparently, i mpressions of e ver-repeated t ypical ex periences, but, at the same time, t hey behave empirically like agents that tend towards the repetition of these same experiences. For when an archetype appears in a dream, in a fantasy, or in life, it always brings with it a c ertain i nfluence or po wer by vi rtue o f w hich it e ither exercises a numinous or a fascinating effect, or impels to action. Having shown, in this example, how new ideas arise out of the treasure-house of primordial images, we will proceed to the further discussion of the transference process. We saw that the libido had, for its ne w o bject, s eized upon those s eemingly a bsurd a nd s ingular fantasies, the contents of the collective unconscious. As I have already said, the pr ojection of primordial images upon the doctor is a danger not to be underrated at this stage of the treatment. The images contain not only all the fine and good things that humanity has ever thought and felt, but the worst infamies and devilries of which men have been capable. Owing to their specific energy-for they behave like highly charged autonomous centres of power-they exert a fascinating a nd possessive influence upon t he c onscious m ind a nd c an t hus pr oduce e xtensive alterations in the subject. One can see this in religious conversions, in cases of influence by suggestion, and particularly at the onset of certain forms of schizophrenia.12 Now, if the pa tient is unable t o distinguish the pe rsonality of the doc tor f rom t hese pr ojections, a ll hope of a n understanding i s f inally l ost a nd a hum an r elationship be comes impossible. But if the patient avoids this Charybdis, he is wrecked on the Scylla of introjecting these images-in other words, he ascribes their peculiarities not to the doctor but to himself. This is just as disastrous. In pr ojection, he va cillates be tween a n e xtravagant a nd pa thological deification of t he doc tor, a nd a c ontempt br istling w ith h atred. I n introjection, he gets involved in a ridiculous selfdeification, or else in a moral self-laceration. The mistake he makes in both cases comes from attributing to a person the contents of the collective unconscious. In this way he makes himself or his partner either god or devil. Here we see the characteristic effect of the archetype: it seizes hold of the psyche with a kind of 12 One s uch c ase i s an alysed i n d etail i n Symbols of Transformation. Cf. a lso N elken, "Analytische Beobachtungen iiber Phantasien dues Schizophrenen" (1912), p. 5掳4路

70


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS primeval force and compels it to transgress the bounds of humanity. It causes exaggeration, a puffed-up attitude (inflation), loss of free will, delusion, and enthusiasm in good and evil alike. This is the reason why men have always needed demons and cannot live without gods, except for a few particularly clever specimens of homo occidentalis who lived yesterday or the day before, supermen for whom "God is dead" because they themselves have become gods-but tin-gods with thick skulls and cold hearts. The idea of God is an absolutely necessary psychological function of an irrational nature, which has nothing whatever to do with the question of God's existence. The human intellect can never answer this question, still less give any proof of God. Moreover such proof is superfluous, for the idea of an allpowerful divine Being is present everywhere, unconsciously if not consciously, because it is an archetype. There is in the psyche some superior power, and if it is not consciously a god, it is the "belly" at least, in St. Paul's words. I therefore consider it wiser to acknowledge the idea of God consciously; for, if we do not, something else is made God, usually something quite inappropriate and stupid such as only an "enlightened" intellect could hatch forth. Our intellect has long known that we can form no proper idea of God, much less picture to ourselves in what manner he really exists, if at all. The existence of God is once and for all an unanswerable question. The consensus gentium has been talking of gods for aeons and will still be talking of them aeons hence. No matter how beautiful and perfect man may believe his reason to be, he can always be certain that it is only one of the possible mental functions, and covers only that one side of the phenomenal world which corresponds to it. But the irrational, that which is not agreeable to reason, rings it about on all sides. And the irrational is likewise a psychological function-in a word, it is the collective unconscious; whereas the rational is essentially tied to the conscious mind. The conscious mind must have reason, firstly to discover some order in the chaos of disorderly individual events occurring in the world, and secondly to create order, at least in human affairs. We are moved by the laudable and useful ambition to extirpate the chaos of the irrational both within and without to the best of our ability. Apparently the process has gone pretty far. As a mental patient once told me: "Doctor, last night I disinfected the whole heav-

71


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

III

ens with bichloride of mercury, but I found no God." Something of the sort has happened to us as well. Old Heraclitus, who was indeed a very great sage, discovered the most marvellous of all psychological laws: the regulative function of o pposites. H e c alled it enantiodromia) a r unning c ontrariwise, by which he meant that sooner or later everything runs into its opposite. (Here I would remind you of the case above of the American business man, a beautiful example of enantiodromia.) Thus the rational attitude of cu lture n ecessarily r uns i nto i ts op posite, na mely t he i rrational devastation of c ulture.13 We s hould ne ver i dentify ourselves w ith reason, for man is not and never will be a cr eature of reason alone, a fact to be noted by all pedantic culture-mongers. The irrational cannot be and must not be extirpated. The gods cannot and must not die. I said just now that there seems to be something, a kind of superior power, in the human psyche, and that if this is not the idea of God, then it is the "belly." I wanted to express the fact that one or other basic instinct, or complex of i deas, w ill i nvariably c oncentrate upon itself t he gr eatest sum of psychic energy and thus force the ego into its service. As a rule the ego is drawn into this focus of energy so powerfully that it identifies with i t a nd t hinks i t de sires a nd ne eds not hing f urther. In t his w ay a craze de velops, a m onomania or pos session, a n a cute one-sidedness which most seriously imperils the psychic equilibrium. Without doubt the capacity for such one-sidedness is the secret of successof a sort, for which r eason o ur c ivilization a ssiduously strives to f oster i t. The passion, t he piling u p of e nergy i n t hese m onomanias, is w hat the ancients called a "god," and in common speech we still do the same. Do we not say, "He makes a god of this or that"? A man thinks that he wills and chooses, and does not notice that he is already possessed, that liis interest h as b ecome t he m aster, ar rogating al l p ower t o i tself. Su ch interests are indeed gods of a kind which, once recognized by the many, gradually form a "church" and gather a herd of believers about them. This sentence was written during the first World War. I have let it stand in its original form because it contains a truth which has been confirmed more than once in the course of history. (\Vritten in 1925.) As pr esent events show, the confirmation did not ha ve to wait very long. Who wants this blind destruction? But we all help the daemon to our last gasp. 0 sancta simpZicitas! (Written in 1942.) 13

72


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

112

113

This we then call an "organization." It is followed by a disorganizing reaction which aims to drive out the devil with Beelzebub. The enantiodromia that always threatens when a movement attains to undisputed power offers no solution of the problem, for it is just as blind in its disorganization as it was in its organization. The only person who escapes the grim law of enantiodromia is the man who knows how to separate himself from the unconscious, not by repressing it-for then it simply attacks him from the rear-but by putting it clearly before him as that which he is not. This prepares the way for the solution of the Scylla and Charybdis problem described above. The patient must learn to differentiate what is ego and what is non-ego, i.e., collective psyche. In this way he finds the material to which he will henceforth have to accommodate himself. His energy, until now laid up in unserviceable and pathological forms, has come into its proper sphere. It is essential, in differentiating the ego from the non-ego, that a man should be firmly rooted in his ego-function; that is, he must fulfil his duty to life, so as to be in every respect a viable member of the community. All that he neglects in this respect falls into the unconscious and reinforces its position, so that he is in danger of being swallowed up by it. But the penalties for this are heavy. As Synesius opined of old, it is just the "inspired soul" ( 7r1Jâ‚ŹvfJ,aTL){~ 1fvx~ ) that becomes god and demon, and as such suffers the divine punishment of being torn asunder like Zagreus. This was what N ietzsche experienced at the onset of his malady. Enantiodromia means being torn asunder into pairs of opposites, which are the attributes of "the god" and hence also of the godlike man, who owes his godlikeness to overcoming his gods. As soon as we speak of the collective unconscious we find ourselves in a sphere, and concerned with a problem, which is altogether precluded in the practical analysis of young people or of those who have remained infantile too long. Wherever the father and mother imagos have still to be overcome, wherever there is a little bit of life still to be conquered, which is the natural possession of the average man, then we had better make no mention of the collective unconscious and the problem of opposites. But once the parental transferences and the youthful illusions have been mastered, or are at

7P


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

114

least ripe for mastery, then we must speak of these things. We are here outside the range of Freudian and Adlerian reductions; we are no longer concerned with how to remove the obstacles to a man's profession, or to his m arriage, or to a nything t hat m eans a widening of his l ife, but a re confronted with the task of f inding a m eaning t hat will e nable him to continue l iving a t a ll-a m eaning m ore than bl ank r esignation a nd mournful retrospect. Our life is like the course of the sun. In the morning it gains continually in strength until it reaches the zenith-heat of high noon. Then comes t he e nantiodromia: the s teady f orward m ovement no l onger denotes a n i ncrease, but a de crease, i n s trength. T hus our t ask i n handling a young pe rson is different from the task of handling an older person. In the former case, it is enough to clear away all the obstacles that h inder e xpansion a nd a scent; i n the latter, w e m ust n urture everything that assists the descent. An inexperienced youth thinks one can let the old people go, because not much more can happen to them anyway: t hey ha ve t heir l ives be hind t hem a nd a re no be tter t han petrified pillars of the past. But it i s a great mistake to suppose that the meaning of life is exhausted with the period of youth and expansion; that, for example, a woman who has passed the menopause is "finished." The afternoon of l ife i s j ust a s f ull of m eaning a s t he m orning; onl y, i ts meaning and purpose are different.14 Man has two aims: the first is the natural aim, the begetting of children and the business of protecting the brood; t o t his be longs the a cquisition of m oney a nd s ocial p osition. When this aim has been reached a n ew phase begins: the cultural aim. For the attainment of the former we have the help of nature and, on top of that, e ducation; f or the a ttainment of t he la tter, l ittle or nothing helps. Often, indeed, a false ambition survives, in that an old man wants to be a youth a gain, or a t least f eels he m ust be have like one, although i n h is heart he can no longer make believe. This is what makes the transition from the natural to the cultural phase so terribly difficult and bitter for many pe ople; t hey c ling t o t he i llusion of yo uth or t o t heir c hildren, hoping t o s alvage i n t his w ay a l ast l ittle s crap of you th. O ne s ees i t especially in mothers, who find their sole meaning in their children and imagine t hey will sink into a bottomless v oid when t hey ha ve to gi ve them up. No wonder that many bad neuHo Cf. "The Stages of Life."

74


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

115

roses appear at the onset of life's afternoon. It is a sort of second puberty, another "storm and stress" period, not infrequently accompanied by tempests of passion-the :'dangerous age." But the problems that crop up at this age are no longer to be solved by the old recipes: the hand of this clock cannot be put back. What youth found and must find outside, the man of life's afternoon must find within himself. Here we face new problems which often cause the doctor no light headache. The transition from morning to afternoon means a revaluation of the earlier values. There comes the urgent need to appreciate the value of the opposite of our former ideals, to perceive the error in our former convictions, to recognize the untruth in our former truth, and to feel how much antagonism and even hatred lay in what, until now, had passed for love. Not a few of those who are drawn into the conflict of opposites jettison everything that had previously seemed to them good and worth striving for; they try to live in complete opposition to their former ego. Changes of profession, divorces, religious convulsions, apostasies of every description, are the symptoms of this swing over to the opposite. The snag about a radical conversion into one's opposite is that one's former life suffers repression and thus produces just as unbalanced a state as existed before, when the counterparts of the conscious virtues and values were still repressed and unconscious. Just as before, perhaps, neurotic disorders arose because the opposing fantasies were unconscious, so now other disorders arise through the repression of former idols. It is of course a fundamental mistake to imagine that when we see the non-value in a value or the untruth in a truth, the value or the truth ceases to exist. It has only become relative. Everything human is relative, because everything rests on an inner polarity; for everything is a phenomenon of energy. Energy necessarily depends on a pre-existing polarity, without which there could be no energy. There must always be high and low, hot and cold, ete., so that the equilibrating process-which is energycan take place. Therefore the tendency to deny all previous valUes in favour of their opposites is just as much of an exaggeration as the earlier one-sidedness. And in so far as it is a question of rejecting universally accepted and indubitable values, the result is a fatal loss. One who acts in this way empties himself out with his values, as N ietzsche has already said.

75 ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS 116

The point is not conversion into the opposite but conservation of previous values together with recognition of their opposites. Naturally this means conflict and self-division. It is understandable


enough that one should shrink from it, philosophically as well as morally; hence the alternative sought, more often than conversion into the opposite, is a convulsive stiffening of the previous attitude. It must be admitted that, in the case of elderly men, this is a phenomenon of no little merit, however disagreeable it may be: at least they do not become renegades, they remain upright, they do not fall into muddle-headedness nor yet into the mud; they are no defaulters, but are merely dead wood or, to put it more politely, pillars of the past. But the accompanying symptoms, the rigidity, the narrow-mindedness, the stand-offishness of these laudatores temporis acti are unpleasant, not to say harmful; for their method of espousing a truth or any other value is so inflexible and violent that their unmannerline ss repels more than the truth attracts, so that the result is the opposite of the intended good. The fundamental cause of their rigidity is fear of the problem of opposites: they have a foreboding and secret dread of the "sinister brother of Medardus." Therefore there must be only one truth and one guiding principle of action, and that must be absolute; otherwise it affords no protection against the impending disaster, which is sensed everywhere save in themselves. But actually the most dangerous revolutionary is within ourselves, and all must realize this who wish to pass over safely into the second half of life. Certainly this means exchanging the apparent security we have so far enjoyed for a condition of insecurity, of internal division, of contradictory convictions. The worst feature of all is that there appears to be no way out of this condition. Tertium non datur) says logicthere is no middle way. 117 The practical necessities of treatment have therefore forced us to look f or ways a nd m eans that m ight lead out of this intolerable situation. Whenever a man is confronted by an apparently insurmountable obstacle, he draws back: he makes what is technically called a regression. He goes back to the times when he found himself in similar situations, and he tries to apply again the means that helped him then. But what helped in youth is of no use in age. What good did it do that American business man to return to his former position? It simply wouldn't work. So the

76


uS

'tHE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS regression continues right back into childhood (hence the childishness of many elderly neurotics) and ends up in the time before childhood. That may sound strange, but in point of fact it is not only logical but altogether possible. We mentioned earlier that the unconscious contains, as it were, two layers: the personal and the collective. The personal layer ends at the earliest memories of infancy, but the collective layer comprises the pre-infantile period, that is, the residues of ancestral life. Whereas the memory-images of the personal unconscious are, as it were, filled out, because they are images personally experienced by the individual, the archetypes of the collective unconscious are not filled out because they are forms not personally experienced. When, on the other hand, psychic energy regresses, going beyond even the period of early infancy, and breaks into the legacy of ancestral life, the mythological images are awakened: these are the archetypes.15 An interior spiritual world whose existence we never suspected opens out and displays contents which seem to stand in sharpest contrast to all our former ideas. These images are so intense that it is quite understandable why millions of cultivated persons should be taken in by theosophy and anthroposophy. This happens simply because such modern gnostic systems meet the need for expressing and formulating the wordless occurrences going on within ourselves better than any of the existing forms of Christianity, not excepting Catholicism. The latter is certainly able to express, far more comprehensively than Protestantism, the facts in question through its dogma and ritual symbolism. But neither in the past nor in the present has even Catholicism attained anything like the richness of the old pagan symbolism, which is why this symbolism persisted far into Christianity and then gradually went underground, forming currents that, from the early Middle 15 The reader will note the admixture here of a new element in the idea of the archetypes, not previously mentioned. This admixture is not a piece of unintentional obscurantism, but a deliberate extension of the archetype by means of the karmic factor, which is so very important in Indian philosophy. The karma aspect is essential to a deeper understanding of the nature of an archetype. Without entering here into a closer description of this factor, I would like at least to mention its existence. I have been severely attacked by critics for my idea of archetypes. I admit at once that it is a controversial idea and more than a little perplexing. But I have always wondered what sort of idea my critics would have used to characterize the empirical material in question.

77


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

19

Ages to modern times, have never quite lost their vitality. To a large extent they vanished from the surface; but, changing their form, they come ba ck a gain to c ompensate the o ne-sidedness of our conscious mind with its modern orientation.16 Our consciousness is so saturated with C hristianity, s o utterly m oulded by it, t hat the u nconscious counter-position can discover no foothold there, for the simple reason that it seems t oo m uch t he a ntithesis of our r uling i deas. T he m ore one-sidedly, rigidly, and absolutely the one position is held, the more aggressive, hostile, and incompatible will the other become, so that at first sight there would seem to be little prospect of reconciling the two. But once the conscious mind admits at least the relative validity of all human opinion, then the opposition loses something of its irreconcilable character. In the meantime the conflict casts round for appropriate e xpression i n, f or instance, the or iental religions-Buddhism, Hinduism, Taoism. The syncretism of theosophy goes a l ong way t owards m eeting this ne ed, a nd t hat e xplains its numerous successes. The work involved in analytical treatment gives rise to experiences of a n a rchetypal nature w hich r equire to be e xpressed a nd shaped. Obviously this is not the only occasion for experiences of such a kind; often they occur quite spontaneously, and by no means only in the cas e o f " psychological-minded" pe ople. I ha ve heard t he m ost curious dr eams and vi sions from t he l ips of people w hose mental sanity not e ven t he pr ofessional p sychologist c ould d oubt. The experience of the a rchetype i s f requently g uarded a s the c losest personal secret, because it is felt to strike into the very core of one's being. It is like a primordial experience of the non-ego, of an interior opponent w ho throws d own a c hallenge t o t he u nderstanding. Naturally e nough w e t hen l ook r ound f or helpful parallels, a nd it happens a ll t oo e asily t hat t he or iginal occurrence i s i nterpreted i n terms of derivative ideas. A typical instance of this kind is the Trinity vision of Brother Nicholas of Fliie,17 or again, St. Ignatius' vision of the snake w ith m ultiple e yes, which he interpreted f irst a s a d ivine apparition and then as a visitation from the devil. Through these periphrastic interpretations the authentic experience is replaced by images and words borrowed from a foreign source, and by views, 16 17

Cf. "ParaceIsus as a Spiritual Phenomenon" and Psychology and Alchemy. Cf. "Brother Klaus,"

78


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

120

ideas, and forms that have not grown on our soil and have no ties with our hearts, but only with our heads. Indeed, not even our thought can clearly grasp them, because it never invented them. It is a case of stolen goods that bring no prosperity. Such substitutes make men shadowy and unreal; they put empty words in the place of living realities, and slip out of the painful tension of opposites into a wan, two-dimensional, phantasmal world where everything vital and creative withers and dies. The wordless occurrences which are called forth by regression to the pre-infantile period need no substitutes; they demand to be individually shaped in and by each man's life and work. They are images sprung from the life, the joys and sorrows, of our ancestors; and to life they seek to return, not in experience only, but in deed. Because of their opposition to the conscious mind they cannot be translated straight into our world; hence a way must be found that can mediate between conscious and unconscious reality.

79


VI THE SYNTHETIC OR CONSTRUCTIVE METHOD :1

2

The process of coming to terms with the unconscious is a true labour, a w ork which involves bo th a ction and s uffering. I t ha s been na med the " transcendent f unction" 1 because i t r epresents a function based on real and "imaginary," or rational and irrational, data, thus bridging the yawning gulf between conscious and unconscious. It is a natural process, a manifestation of the e nergy that springs from the t ension of o pposites, a nd i t c onsists i n a series o f fantasy-occurrences which a ppear s pontaneously i n d reams a nd visions.2 The same process can also be observed in the initial stages of certain forms o f s chizophrenia. A classical a ccount o f s uch a proceeding i s t o be f ound, f or e xample, i n Gerard d e N erval's autobiographical f ragment, Aurelia. But t he most im portant li terary example is Par t I I o f Faust. The na tural pr ocess by w hich t he opposites a re u nited c ame to serve m e a s the m odel a nd b asis f or a method c onsisting e ssentially in t his: e verything t hat happens a t t he behest o f na ture, unconsciously a nd s pontaneously, i s de liberately summoned forth and i ntegrated into t he conscious m ind a nd i ts outlook. F ailure in m any c ases i s due precisely to t he fact that t hey lack t he m ental a nd spiritual equipment t o m aster the e vents taking place i n them. H ere medical he lp m ust i ntervene i n t he form of a special method of treatment. As we have seen, the theories discussed at the beginning of this book rest on an exclusively causal and reductive procedure which resolves the dream (or fantasy) into its memory compo路 I discovered only subsequently that the idea of the transcendent function also occurs in the hi gher mathematics, a nd i s a ctually t he name of t he f unction of r eal an d i maginary numbers. See also my essay "The Transcendent Function:' 2. For an analysis of one such dream-series see Psychology and Alchemy,

1

80


THE SYNTHETIC OR CONSTRUCTIVE METHOD

12

3

12

4

nents and the underlying instinctual processes. I have indicated above the justification as well as the limitation of this procedure. It breaks down at the point where the dream symbols can no longer be reduced to personal reminiscences or aspirations, that is, when the images ot the collective unconscious begin to appear. It would be quite senseless to try to reduce these collective ideas to anything personal-not only senseless but positively harmful, as painful experience has taught me. Only with much difficulty, after long hesitation and disabuse by many failures, was I able to decide to abandon the purely personalis tic attitude of medical psychology in the sense indicated. I had first to come to the fundamental realization that analysis, in so far as it is reduction and nothing more, must necessarily be followed by synthesis, and that certain kinds of psychic material mean next to nothing if simply broken down, but display a wealth of meaning if, instead of being broken down, that meaning is reinforced and extended by all the conscious means at our disposal-by the socalled method of amplification.3 The images or symbols of the collective unconscious yield their distinctive values only when subjected to a synthetic mode of treatment. Just as analysis breaks down the symbolical fantasy-material into its components, so the synthetic procedure integrates it into a general and intelligible statement. The procedure is not exactly simple, so I will give an example which will help to explain the whole process. A woman patient, who had just reached the critical borderline between the analysis of the personal unconscious and the emergence of contents from the collective unconscious, had the following dream: She is about to cross a wide river. There is no bridge) but she finds a ford where she can cross. She is on the point of doing so) when a large crab that lay hidden in the water seizes her by the toot and will not let her go. She wakes up in terror. Associations: River: "Forms a boundary that is difficult to get across-I have to overcome an obstacle-probably to do with the fact that I'm progressing so slowly-I ought to reach the other side." 3 [For

an account of amplification see "The Theory of Psychoanalysis," pars.

326ff.-EDlTORS.]

81


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

Ford: "An opportunity to cross in safety-a possible way, otherwise the river would be too broad-in the treatment lies the possibility of surmounting the obstacle." !6 Crab: "The crab was quite hidden in the water, I did not see i t b efore-cancer [ German Krebs = crabJ i s a terrible d isease, incurable [reference to Mrs. X, who died of carcinoma J-I am afraid of this disease-the crab is an animal that walks backwards-and obviously wants to drag me into the river-it caught hold of me in a horrible way and I was terribly f rightened-what k eeps s topping m e from g etting across? Oh yes, I had another row with my friend [a woman]." 27 There is something peculiar about her relations with this friend. I t is a sentimental a ttachment, bordering o n t he homosexual, that has lasted for years. The friend is like the patient in many ways, and e qually ne rvy. They have marked a rtistic i nterests i n c ommon. The pa tient i s the stronger pe rsonality o f t he t wo. Because their mutual relationship is too intimate and excludes too many of the other possibilities of life, both are nervy and, despite their ideal friendship, have vi olent s cenes due to m utual irritability. T he u nconscious is trying in this way to put a distance between them, but they refuse to listen. The quarrel usually begins because one of them finds that she is still no t s ufficiently understood, and ur ges t hat t hey s hould s peak more p lainly to one a nother; whereupon b oth m ake e nthusiastic efforts to unbosom themselves. Naturally a misunderstanding comes about in next to no time, and a worse scene than ever ensues. Faute de mieux) this q uarrelling had l ong be en for b oth of t hem a pl easure substitute which they w ere unwilling t o r elinquish. My p atient i n particular could not do without the sweet pain of being misunderstood by her best friend, although every scene "tired her to death." She had long since realized that this friendship had become moribund, and that only false ambition led her to believe that something ideal could still be made of it. She had formerly had an exaggerated, fantastic relation to her mother and after her mother's death had transferred her feelings to her friend. !5

82


THE SYNTHETIC OR CONSTRUCTIVE METHOD

128

12

9

Analytical (causal-reductive) interpretation:'1 This interpretation can be summed up in one sentence: "I see well enough that I ought to cross the river (that is, give up relations with my friend), but I would much rather that my friend did not let me out of her clutches (i.e., embraces)which, as an infantile wish, means that I want Mother to draw me to her in the exuberant embrace I know so well." The incompatibility of the wish lies in the strong undercurrent of homosexuality, abundantly proved by the facts. The crab seizes her by the foot. The patient has large "masculine" feet, she plays the masculine role with her friend and has corresponding sexual fantasies. The foot has a notoriously phallic significance.5 Thus the over-all interpretation would be: The reason why she does not want to leave her friend is because she has repressed sexual desires for her. As these desires are morally and aesthetically incompatible with the tendency of the conscious personality, they are repressed and therefore more or less unconscious. Heranxiety corresponds to her repressed desire. This interpretation is a severe depreciation of the patient's exalted ideal of friendship. To be sure, at this point in the analysis she would no longer have taken exception to such an interpretation. Some time earlier certain facts had amply convinced her of her homosexual tendency, so that she could freely admit this inclination, although it was by no means agreeable to her. If, then, I had given her this interpretation at the present stage of treatment, I would have not encountered any resistance. She had already overcome the painfulness of this unwelcome tendency by understanding it. But she would have said.to me, "Why are we still analysing this dream? It only reiterates what I have known for a long time." The interpretation, in fact, tells the patient nothing new; it is therefore uninteresting and ineffective. Such an interpretation would have been impossible at the beginning of the treatment, because the unusual prudery of the patient would not under any circumstances have admitted any4 A parallel view of the two kinds of interpretation is to be found in Herbert Silberer's commendable book, Problems of Mysticism and Its Symbolism. 5 Aigremont (pseud. of Siegmar Baron von Schultze-Gallera), Fuss- und Schuhsymbolik und -Erotik [1909J.

83


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

thing of that kind. The "poison" of understanding had to be injected with extreme care, and in very small doses, until she gradually became more reasonable. Now, when the analytical or causal-reductive interpretation ceases to bring to light anything new, but only the same thing in different variations, the moment has come to look out for possible archetypal motifs. If such a motif comes clearly to the forefront, it is high time to change the interpretative procedure. The causal-reductive procedure has in this particular case certain disadvantages. Firstly, it does not take accurate account of the patient's associations, e.g., the association of "crab" with "cancer." Secondly, the peculiar choice of the symbol remains unexplained. Why should the mother-friend appear as a crab? A prettier and more graphic representation would have been a water-nymph. ("Half drew she him, half sank he under," ete.) An octopus, a dragon, a snake, or a fish would have served as well. Thirdly, the causalreductive procedure forgets that the dream is a subjective phenomenon, and that consequently an exhaustive interpretation can never refer the crab to the friend or the mother alone, but must refer it also to the subject, the dreamer herself. The dreamer is the whole dream; she is the river, the ford, and the crab, or rather these details express conditions and tendencies in the unconscious of the subject. o I have therefore introduced the following terminology: I call every interpretation which equates the dream images with real objects an interpretation on the objective level. In contrast to this is the interpretation which refers every part of the dream and all the actors in it back to the dreamer himself. This I call interpretation on the subjective level. Interpretation on the objective level is analytic, because it breaks down the dream content into memory-complexes that refer to external situations. Interpretation on the subjective level is synthetic, because it detaches the underlying memory-complexes from their external causes, regards them as tendencies or components of the subject, and reunites them with that subject. (In any experience I experience not merely the object but first and foremost myself, provided of course that I render myself an account of the experience.) In this case, therefore, all the contents of the dream are treated as symbols for subjective contents. 84


THE SYNTHETIC OR CONSTRUCTIVE METHOD 13

1

132

Thus the synthetic or constructive process of interpretation6 is interpretation on the subjective level.

The synthetic (constructive) interpretation: The patient is unconscious of the fact that the obstacle to be overcome lies in herself: namely, a boundary-line that is difficult to cross and hinders further progress. Nevertheless it is possible to pass the barrier. But a special and unexpected danger looms up just at this moment-something "animal" (non-human or subhuman), which moves backwards and downwards, threatening to drag with it the whole personality of the dreamer. This danger is like a deadly disease that begins in some secret place and is incurable (overpowering). The patient imagines that her friend is hindering her and trying to drag her down. So long as she believes this, she must go on trying to "uplift" her friend, educate and improve her; she has to make futile and senselessly idealistic efforts to stop herself from being dragged down. N aturally her friend makes similar efforts too, for she is in the same pass as the patient. So the two keep jumping at each other like fighting cocks, each trying to get the upper hand. And the higher the pitch the one screws herself up to, the fiercer become the self-torments of the other. Why? Because each thinks the fault lies in the other, in the object. Interpretation on the subjective level brings release from this folly; for the dream shows the patient that she has something in herself which prevents her from crossing the boundary, i.e., from getting out of one situation or attitude into another. The interpretation of a change of place as a change of attitude is corroborated by forms of speech in certain primitive languages, where, for example, "I am thinking of going" is expressed as "I am at the place of (on the point of) going." To make the language of dreams intelligible we need numerous parallels from the psychology of primitive and historical symbolism, because dreams spring essentially from the unconscious, which contains remnants of the functional possibilities of all preceding epochs of evolution. A classical example of this is the "Crossing of the Great Water" in the oracles of the I ehing. Cf. "On Psychological Understanding," Elsewhere I have called this procedure the f "hermeneutic" method; cf. infra, pars. 493 I.

6

85


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

133

134

Obviously, everything now depends on what is meant by the crab. We know in the first place that it is something connected with the friend ( since t he pa tient a ssociates i t w ith he r f riend), a nd a lso something connected w ith her m other. Whether m other and f riend really have this quality is irrelevant so far as the patient is concerned. The s ituation c an be c hanged onl y by the pa tient c hanging he rself. Nothing can be changed in the mother, for she is dead. And the friend cannot be nagged into changing. If she wants to change, that is her own affair. The fact that the quality in question is connected with the mother points t o s omething i nfantile. W hat, t hen, i s t here i n c ommon i n t he patient's relation to her mother and to her friend? The common factor is a violent, sentimental de mand f or love, so impassioned that she f eels herself o verwhelmed. T his d emand h as t he ch aracter o f a n overpowering infantile craving which, as we know, is blind. So we are dealing with an undisciplined, undifferentiated, and not yet humanized part of the libido which still possesses the compulsive character of an instinct, a part s till u ntamed by dom estication. F or s uch a pa rt s ome kind of animal is an entirely appropriate symbol. But why should the animal be a crab? The patient associates it with cancer, of which disease Mrs. X died at about the same age as that now reached by the patient herself. So there may be a hint of identification with Mrs. X. We must therefore f ollow this up. The pa tient r elates the f ollowing f acts a bout her: Mrs. X was widowed early; she was very merry and full of life; she had a s eries of a dventures w ith m en, a nd one i n p articular w ith a n extremely gi fted a rtist w hom t he pa tient k new pe rsonally a nd w ho always impressed her as remarkably fascinating and strange. An identification can occur only on the basis of some unrealized, i .e., unc onscious, s imilarity. N ow i n w hat w ay i s our pa tient similar to Mrs. X? Here I was able to remind the patient of a series of earlier fantasies and dreams which had plainly shown that she too had a frivolous streak in her, and one which she always anxiously repressed, because she feared this dimly a pprehended tendency in herself m ight betray he r i nto l eading a n i mmoral lif e. W ith th is w e h ave m ade a further important c ontribution t owards unde rstanding the " animal" element; for once more we c ome upon t he same untamed, instinctual craving, but

86


THE SYNTHETIC OR CONSTRUCTIVE METI:tOD

this time directed towards men. And we have also discovered another reason why she cannot let go of her friend: she must cling to her so as not to fall victim to this other tendency, which seems to her much more dangerous. Accordingly she remains at the infantile, homosexual level, because it serves her as a defence. (Experience shows that this is one of the most potent motives for clinging to unsuitable infantile relationships.) In this animal element, however, also lies her health, the germ of a future sound personality which will not shrink from the hazards of life. 135 But the patient had drawn quite a different conclusion from the fate of Mrs. X. She had taken the latter's sudden grave illness and early death as the punishment of fate for the gay life which, without admitting it, the patient had always envied. When Mrs. X died, the patient made a very long moral face which concealed an all-too-human malicious satisfaction. To punish herself for this, she continually used the example of Mrs. X to scare herself away from life and all further development, and burdened herself with the misery of an unsatisfying friendship. Naturally this whole sequence of events had never been clear to her, otherwise she would never have acted as she did. The rightness of this surmise was easily verified from the material. 136 The story of this identification by no means ends here. The patient subsequently emphasized that Mrs. X possessed a not inconsiderable artistic capacity which developed only after her husband's death and then led to her friendship with the artist. This fact seems to be one of the essential reasons for the identification, if we remember that the patient had remarked what a strong and peculiarly fascinating impression the artist had made upon her. A fascination of this kind is never exercised exclusively by one person upon another; it is always a phenomenon of relationship, which requires two people in so far as the person fascinated necessarily has a corresponding disposition. But the disposition must be unconscious, or no fascination will take place. Fascination is a compulsive phenomenon in the sense that it lacks a conscious motive; it is not a voluntary process, but something that rises up from the unconscious and forcibly obtrudes itself upon the conscious mind. 137 It must therefore be assumed that the patient has an uncon-

87


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

138

139

140

scious disposition similar to that of the artist. Accordingly she is also identified with a man.7 We recall the analysis of the dream, where we met an allusion to the "masculine" foot. And in fact the patient does play a masculine role with her friend; she is the active one who always sets the tone, who bosses her friend and sometimes actually forces her to do s omething she a lone w ants. H er friend i s di stinctly feminine, even in ex ternal a ppearance, w hile t he p atient is clearly o f a somewhat masculine type. Her voice too is strong and deeper than her friend's. Mrs. X is described as a very feminine woman, comparable to her friend, so the patient thinks, in gentleness and affectionateness. This g ives us a nother c lue: i n r elation.to h er f riend, t he p atient obviously plays the same role that the artist played with Mrs. X. Thus she un consciously completes he r i dentification with M rs. X and he r lover, and t hus, i n s pite of all, s he gives e xpression t o t he f rivolous streak in h er which s he had s o a nxiously r epressed. B ut s he i s n ot living i t c onsciously, s he i s r ather t he plaything of this unc onscious tendency; in other words, she is possessed by it, and has become the unconscious exponent of her complex. We now know very much more about the crab: it contains the inner ps ychology of t his un tamed b it of l ibido. The unconscious identifications keep drawing her down further and further. They have this power because, being unconscious, they are not open to insight or correction. The c rab i s t herefore t he symbol f or t he unconscious contents. These contents are always trying to dr aw t he patient ba ck into her relations with her friend. (The crab walks backwards.) But the connection with her friend is synonymous with disease, for through it she became neurotic. Strictly speaking, all this really belongs to the analysis on the objective level. But we must not forget that we came into possession of this knowledge only by making use of the subjective level, which thus proves t o be an i mportant he uristic pr inciple. Fo r p ractical purposes we might rest content with the results so far reached; but we have to satisfy the demands of theory: not all the associations have yet been evaluated, nor has the significance of the choice of symbol yet been sufficiently explained. We shall now take up the patient's remark that the crab lay am not overlooking Ihe fact that the deeper reason for her identification with the artist lies in a c ertain cr eative aptitude on the part of the patient.

7I

88


-

THE SYNTHETIC OR CONSTRUCTIVE METHOD

hidden in the water and that she did not see it at first. Nor did she see, at first, the unconscious relations which we have just discussed; they too lay hidden in the water. The river is the obstacle that prevents her from crossing to the other side. It is precisely these unconscious relations, binding her to her friend, that prevented her. The unconscious was the obstacle. Thus the water signifies the unconscious, or rather, the state of unconsciousness, of concealment; for the crab too is something unconscious, in fact it is the dynamic content that lies concealed in its depths.

89


VII THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS 141

142

We are now faced with the task of raising to the subjective level the p henomena w hich have s o far be en un derstood o n the o bjective level. For this purpose we must detach them from the object and take them as symbolical exponents of the patient's subjective complexes. If we try to interpret the figure of Mrs. X on the subjective level, we must r egard it a s t he personification of a part-soul, o r ra ther o f a certain aspect of the dreamer. Mrs. X then becomes an image of what the patient would like to be, and yet fears to be. She represents, as it were, a partial picture of the patient's future character. The fascinating artist cannot so easily be raised to the subjective level, because the unconscious artistic capacity lying dormant in the patient is already taken up by Mrs. X. It would, however, be correct to say that the artist is the i mage o f the p atient's m asculinity w hich i s n ot c onsciously realized and t herefore l ies i n t he unc onscious. 1 This i s t rue i n t he sense that the patient does in fact delude herself in this matter. In her own eyes she is quite remarkably fragile, sensitive, and feminine, and not in the l east m asculine. S he w as therefore i ndignantly am azed when I pointed out her masculine traits. But the strange, fascinating element is out of keeping w ith t hese traits. It s eems t o b e en tirely lacking to them. Yet it must be hiding somewhere, since she produced this feeling out of herself. Whenever s uch an e lement i s not t o be f ound in t he dr eamer himself, experience tells u s th at it is always p rojected. But u pon whom? Is it still attached to the artist? He has long since disappeared from the patient's purview an d c annot v ery well have t aken t he projection with him, since it lies anchored in the un1 I h ave called t his masculine element i n woman t he animus and t he c orresponding feminine element in man the anima. S ee infra, pars. 296-340; also Emma J ung, "On the Nature of the Animus."

90


conscious of the patient, and moreover she had no personal relation with this man despite his fascination. For her he was more a figure of fantasy. No, a projection of this kind is always topical, that is, somewhere there must be somebody upon whom this content is projected, otherwise she would be palpably aware of it in herself. At this point we come back to the objective level, for without it we 143 cannot locate the projection. The patient does not know any man who means anything special to her, apart from myself; and as her doctor I mean a good deal. Presumably therefore this content is projected on to me, though I had certainly noticed nothing of the sort. But these subtler contents never appear on the surface; they always come to light outside the consulting hour. I therefore asked her cautiously, "Tell me, how do I seem to you when you are not with me? Am I just the same?" She said, "When I am with you, you are quite pleasant, but when I am by myself, or have not seen you for some time, the picture I have of you changes in a remarkable way. Sometimes you seem quite idealized, and then again different." Here she hesitated, and I prompted her: "In what way different?" Then she said, "Sometimes you seem rather dangerous, sinister, like an evil magician or a demon. I don't know how I ever get such ideas-you are not a bit like that." So the content was fixed on me as part of the transference, and that is why it was missing from her psychic inventory. Here we recognize another important fact: I was contaminated (identified) with the artist, 144 so in her unconscious fantasy she naturally plays the role of Mrs. X with me. I could easily prove this to her with the help of the material-sexual fantasies-previously brought to light. But I myself am then the obstacle, the crab that prevents her from getting across. If, in this particular case, we were to confine ourselves to the objective level, the position would be very tricky. What would be the good of my explaining, "But I am not this artist in any sense, I am not in the least sinister, nor am I an evil magician!" That would leave the patient quite cold, for she knows that just as well as I do. The projection continues as before, and I really am the obstacle to her further progress. It is at this point that many a treatment comes to a standstill. There is no way of getting out of the toils of the unconscious, THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

91 145


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

except f or t he doctor t o r aise himself t o the s ubjective l evel a nd t o acknowledge himself as an image. But an image of what? Here lies the greatest difficulty of all. "Well now," the doctor will say, "an image of something in the unconscious of the patient." Whereupon she will say, "What, so I am a man, and a sinister, fascinating man at that, a wicked magician or de mon? N ot on your life! I c annot a ccept t hat, i t's a ll nonsense. I 'd sooner be lieve t his of yo u!" S he is r ight: i t i s preposterous t o transfer such t hings t o he r. She cannot a ccept being turned into a demon any more than the doctor can. Her eyes flash, an evil expression creeps into her face, the gleam of an unknown resistance ne ver s een be fore. I a m s uddenly f aced by t he po ssibility of a painful m isunderstanding. What is i t? D isappointed love? D oes s he feel offended, depreciated? In her glance there lurks something of the beast of prey, something really demoniacal. Is she a demon after all? Or a m I t he beast of pr ey, t he de mon, a nd is t his a t errified v ictim sitting before me, trying to defend herself with the brute strength of despair a gainst my wicked s pells? All t his must surely be nonsense-fantastic delusion. What have I touched? What new chord is vibrating? Y et i t is o nly a passing m oment. T he e xpression on t he patient's face clears, and she says, as though relieved, "It is queer, but just now I ha d a feeling you had touched the point I could never ge t over i n r elation to m y f riend. I t's a horrible f eeling, s omething inhuman, evil, cruel. I simply cannot describe how queer this feeling is. It m akes m e hate a nd despise m y f riend when it c omes, a lthough I struggle against it with all my might." 46 This remark throws an explanatory light on what has happened: I ha ve t aken the p lace of the friend. T he f riend ha s be en overcome. The ice of t he r epression i s br oken a nd the pa tient ha s entered a ne w phase of life without knowing it. Now I know that all that was pa inful a nd bad in her relation with her friend will devolve upon me, as well as all the good, but it will be in violent conflict with the m ysterious x which the patient has ne ver be en a ble to m aster. A new phase of the transference has started, although it does not as yet clearly reveal the nature of the x that has been projected upon me. 47 One thing is certain: if the patient gets stuck in this form of t ransference, t he m ost t roublesome m isunderstandings lie a head, for she will be bound to treat me as she treated her friend

92


THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

148

149

15째

-in other words, the x will be continually in the air giving rise to misunderstandings. It will inevitably turn out that she will see the demon in me, since she cannot accept it in herself. All insoluble conflicts come about in this fashion. And an insoluble conflict means bringing life to a standstill. Or another possibility: the patient could use her old defence mechanism against this new difficulty and could simply ignore the point of obscurity. That is to say, she could begin repressing again, instead of keeping things conscious, which is the necessary and obvious demand of the whole method. But nothing would be gained by this; on the contrary, the x now threatens from the unconscious, and that is far more unpleasant. Whenever such an unacceptable content appears, we must consider carefully whether it is a personal quality at all. "Magician" and "demon" may well represent qualities whose very names make it instantly clear that these are not human and personal qualities but mythological ones. Magician and demon are mythological figures which express the unknown, "inhuman" feeling that swept over the patient. They are attributes not in any sense applicable to a human personality, although, as intuitive judgments not subjected to closer criticism, they are constantly being projected upon our fellow men, to the very great detriment of human relations. These attributes always indicate that contents of the transpersonal or collective unconscious are being projected. Personal memories cannot account for "demons," or for "wicked magicians," although everyone has, of course, at one time or another heard or read of these things. We have all heard of rattlesnakes, but we do not call a lizard or a blindworm a rattlesnake and display the corresponding emotions merely because we have been startled by the rustling of a lizard or a blindworm. Similarly, We do not call one of our fellows a demon unless there really is something demonic in his effect upon us. But if this effect were truly a part of his personal character, it would show itself everywhere, and then the man would be a demon indeed, a Sort of werewolf. But that is mythology, i.e., collective psyche, and not individual psyche. In so far as through our unconscious We have a share in the historical collective psyche, we live natur~lly and unconsciously in a world of werewolves, demons, magiClans, ete., for these are things which all previous ages have in93


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

vested with tremendous affectivity. Equally we have a share in gods and devils, saviours and criminals; but it would be absurd to attribute these potentialities of the unconscious to ourselves personally. It is therefore absolutely essential to make the sharpest possible demarcation between the personal and the impersonal attributes of the psyche. This is not to deny the sometimes very formidable existence of the contents of the collective unconscious, but only to stress that, as contents of the collective psyche, they are opposed to and different from the individual psyche. Simple-minded folk have never, of course, separated these things from their individual consciousness, because the gods and demons were not regarded as psychic projections and hence as contents of the unconscious, but as self-evident realities. Only in the age of enlightenment did people discover that the gods did not really exist, but were simply projections. Thus the gods were disposed of. But the corresponding psychological function was by no means disposed of; it lapsed into the unconscious, and men were thereupon poisoned by the surplus of libido that had once been laid up in the cult of divine images. The devaluation and repression of so powerful a function as the religious function naturally have serious consequences for the psychology of the individual. The unconscious is prodigiously strengthened by this reflux of libido, and, through its archaic collective contents, begins to exercise a powerful influence on the conscious mind. The period of the Enlightenment closed, as we know, with the horrors of the French Revolution. And at the present time, too, we are once more experiencing this uprising of the unconscious destructive forces of the collective psyche. The result has been mass-murder on an unparalleled scale.2 This is precisely what the unconscious was after. Its position had been immeasurably strengthened beforehand by the rationalism of modern life, which, by depreciating everything irrational, precipitated the function of the irrational into the unconscious. But once this function finds itself in the unconscious, it works unceasing havoc, like an incurable disease whose focus cannot be eradicated because it is invisible. Individual and nation alike are then compelled to live the irrational in their own lives, even devoting their loftiest ideals and their best wits to expressing its madness in the most perfect form. We see the same thing in 2 Written in 1916; superfluous to remark that it is still true today [1943]路

94


151

152

THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS miniature in our patient, who fled from a course of life that seemed to her irrational-Mrs. X-only to act it out in pathological form, and with the greatest sacrifices, in her relations with her friend. There is nothing for it but to recognize the irrational as a necessary, because ever-present, psychological function, and to take its contents not as concrete realities-that would be a regression!-but as psychic realities, real because they work. The collective unconscious, being the repository of man's experience and at the same time the prior condition of this experience, is an image of the world which has taken aeons to form. In this image certain features, the archetypes or dominants, have crystallized out in the course of time. They are the ruling powers, the gods, images of the dominant laws and principles, and of typical, regularly occurring events in the soul's cycle of experience.s In so far as these images are more or less .faithful replicas of psychic events, their archetypes, that is, their general characteristics which have been emphasized through the accumulation of similar experiences, also correspond to certain general characteristics of the ph ysical world. Archetypal images can therefore be taken metaphorically, as intuitive concepts for physical phenomena. For instance, aether) the primordial breath or soul-substance, is a concept found all over the world, and energy) or magical power, is an intuitive idea that is equally widespread. On account of their affinity with physical phenomena,4 the archetypes usually appear in projection; and, because projections are unconscious, they appear on persons in the immediate environment, mostly in the form of abnormal over- or undervaluations which provoke misunderstandings, quarrels, fanaticisms, and follies of every description. Thus we say, "He makes a god of so-and-so," or, "So-and-so is Mr. X's bete noire." In this way, too, there grow up modern myth-formations, Le., fantastic rumours, suspicions, prejudices. The archetypes are therefore exceedingly important things with a powerful effect, meriting our closest attention. They must not be suppressed out of hand, but must be very carefully weighed and considered, if only beS As indicated earlier (par. 109), the archetypes may be regarded as the effect and deposit of experiences that have already taken place, but equally they appear a& the factors which cause such experiences. 2 ff 4 Cf. "The Structure of the Psyche," pars. 3 5 •

95


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

cause of the danger of psychic infection they carry with them. Since they usually oc cur a s p rojections, a nd s ince these o nly a ttach themselves where t here is a s uitable hook, their ev aluation a nd assessment is no light matter. Thus, when somebody projects the devil upon hi s ne ighbour, he d oes s o be cause this pe rson h as s omething about him which makes the attachment of such an image possible. But this i s no t t o s ay t hat the man is o n t hat account a de vil; on t he contrary, he may be a particularly good fellow, but antipathetic to the maker of the projection, so that a "devilish" (i.e., dividing) effect arises between them. Nor need the projector necessarily be a devil, although he has to recognize that he has something just as devilish in himself, and has only stumbled upon it by projecting it. But that does not make him a de vil; i ndeed h e m ay be just a s decent a s t he o ther m an. The appearance of t he de vil i n s uch a case s imply m eans that the t wo people are at present incompatible: for which reason the unconscious forces them apart and keeps them away from each other. The devil is a variant of the "shadow" archetype, i.e., of the dangerous aspect of the unrecognized dark half of the personality. One of the a rchetypes t hat is a lmost i nvariably m et w ith in the projection of unconscious collective contents is the "magic demon" with mysterious powers. A good example of this is Gustav Meyrink's Golem) also t he T ibetan w izard in t he s ame au thor's Fledermiiuse) who u nleashes w orld w ar b y magic. N aturally M eyrink learned nothing of this f rom me; he br ought i t independently ou t of hi s unconscious by clothing in words and imagery a feeling not unlike the one which my patient had projected upon me. The magician type also figures in Zarathustra) while in Faust he is the actual hero. The image of this demon forms one of the lowest and most ancient stages in the conception of G od. It i s t he t ype of pr imitive tr ibal sorcerer o r m edicine-man, a peculiarly g ifted personality e ndowed with magical power.5 This figure often appears as dark-skinned and of mongoloid t ype, a nd then i t r epresents a negative and pos sibly dangerous aspect. Sometimes it can hardly 5 The idea of the medicine-man who communes with spirits and wields magical powers is so deeply ingrained in many pr imitives that they even believe " doctors" are to be found among a nimals. T hus t he Achomawi of nor thern C alifor路 ni a s peak of or dinary c oyotes and of "doctor" coyotes. 6

9


THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

155

156

157

be distinguished, if at all, from the shadow; but the more the magical note predominates, the easier it is to make the distinction, and this is not without relevance in so far as the demon can also have a very positive aspect as the "wise old man." 6 The recognition of the archetypes takes us a long step forwards. The magical or daemonic effect emanating from our neighbour disappears when the mysterious feeling is traced back to a definite entity in the collective unconscious. But now we have an entirely new task before us: the question of how the ego is to come to terms with this psychological non-ego. Can we rest content with establishing the real existence of the archetypes, and simply let things take care of themselves? That would be to create a permanent state of dissociation, a split between the individual and the collective psyche. On the one side we should have the differentiated modern ego, and on the other a sort of negroid culture, a very primitive state of affairs. We should have, in fact, what actually exists-a veneer of civilization over a dark-skinned brute; and the cleavage would be clearly demonstrated before our eyes. But such a dissociation requires immediate synthesis and the development of what has remained undeveloped. There must be a union of the two parts; for, failing that, there is no doubt how the matter would be decided: the primitive man would inevitably lapse back into repression. But that union is possible only where a still valid and therefore living religion exists, which allows the primitive man adequate means of expression through a richly developed symbolism. In other words, in its dogmas and rites, this religion must possess a mode of thinking and acting that harks back to the most primitive level. Such is the case in Catholicism, and this is its special advantage as well as its greatest danger. Before we go into this new question of a possible union, let us return to the dream from which we started. This whole discussion has given us a wider understanding of the dream, and particularly of one essential part of it-the feeling of fear. This fear is a primitive dread of the contents of the collective unconscious. As we have seen, the patient identifies herself with Mrs. X, thereby showing that she also has some relation to the mysterious artist. It proved that the doctor was identified with the artist, and further we saw that on the subjective level I became 6 Cf. "Archetypes of the Collective Unconscious," pars. 74ff.

97


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

an image for the figure of the magician in the collective unconscious. All t his is c overed i n t he dr eam by t he s ymbol of t he crab, w hich walks backwards. The crab is the living content of the unconscious, and it cannot be exhausted or made ineffective by analysis on the objective level. We can , h owever, separate t he m ythological o r co llective p sychic contents f rom t he ob jects of c onsciousness, a nd c onsolidate them a s psychological realities outside the individual psyche. Through the act of cognition we "posit" the reality of the archetypes, or, more precisely, we postulate the psychic existence of such contents on a cognitive basis. It must e mphatically be s tated that it i s no t j ust a que stion of c ognitive contents, but of t ransubjective, l argely a utonomous p sychic systems which on that account are only very conditionally under the control of the conscious mind and for the most part escape it altogether. So long as the collective unconscious and the individual psyche are coupled together without being differentiated, no progress can be made; or, to speak in terms of the dream, the bo undary c annot be c rossed. I f, despite t hat, t he dr eamer m akes r eady t o c ross t he bor der-line, t he unconscious becomes activated, seizes her, and holds her fast. The dream and its material characterize the collective unconscious partly as a lower animal that lives hidden in the depths of the water, and partly as a dangerous disease that c an be c ured on ly by a t imely o peration. T o w hat extent this characterization is apt has already been seen. As we have said, the a nimal s ymbol points s pecifically t o t he e xtrahuman, t he transpersonal; for the contents of the collective unconscious are not only the residues of archaic, specifically human modes of functioning, but also the residues of functions from man's animal ancestry, whose duration in time was infinitely greater than the relatively brief epoch of specifically human existence. These residues, or "engrams," as Semon calls them,7 7 In

his philosophical dissertation on Leibniz's theory of the unconscious (Das Unbewusste bei Leibniz in Beziehung zu modernen Theorien), Canz has used the engram theory of R. W. Semon

to explain the collective unconscious. The concept of the collective unconscious advanced by me c oincides onl y a t c ertain poi nts with S emon's c oncept of the phyl ogenetic mneme. Cf. Semon, Die Mneme als erhaltendes Prinzip im Wechsel des organischen Geschehens (1904); trans. by L. Simon as The Mneme. 8

9


THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

160

are extremely liable, when activated, not only to retard the pace of development, but actually to force it into regression until the store of energy that activated the unconscious has been used up. But the energy becomes serviceable again by being brought into play through man's conscious attitude towards the collective unconscious. The religions have established this cycle of energy in a concrete way by means of ritual communion with the gods. This method, however, is too much at variance with our intellectual morality, and has moreover been too radically supplanted by Christianity, for us to accept it as an ideal, or even possible, solution of the problem. If on the other hand we take the figures of the unconscious as collective psychic phenomena or functions, this hypothesis in no way violates our intellectual conscience. It offers a rationally acceptable solution, and at the same time a possible method of effecting a settlement with the activated residues of our racial history. This settlement makes the crossing of previous boundaries altogether feasible and is therefore appropriately called the transcendent function. It is synonymous with progressive devc!opment towards a new attitude. The parallel with the hero-myth is very striking. More often than not the typical struggle of the hero with the monster (the unconscious content) takes place beside the water, perhaps at a ford. This is the case particularly in the Redskin myths with which Longfellow's Hiawatha has made us familiar. In the decisive battle the hero is, like] onah, invariably swallowed by the monster, as Frobenius has shown8 with a wealth of detail. But, once inside the monster, the hero begins to settle accounts with the creature in his own way, while it swims eastwards with him towards the rising sun. He cuts off a portion of the viscera, the heart for instance, or some essential organ by virtue of which the monster lives (i.e., the valuable energy that activates the unconKious). Thus he kills the monster, which then drifts to land, where the hero, new-born through the transcendent function (the "night sea journey," as Frobenius calls it), steps forth, sometimes in the company of all those whom the monster has previously devoured. In this manner the normal state of things is restored, since the unconscious, robbed of its energy, no longer occupies the dominant position. Thus the myth graphi8 Frobenius, Das Zeitalter des Sonnengottes.

99


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

161

162

cally describes the problem which also engages our patient.9 I must now emphasize the not unimportant fact, which must also have struck the reader, that in the dream the collective unconscious appears under a very negative aspect, as something dangerous and harmful. This is because the patient has a richly developed, indeed positively luxuriant, fantasy life, possibly due to her literary gift. Her powers of fantasy are a symptom of illness in that she revels in them far too much and allows real life to slip by. Any more mythology would be exceedingly dangerous for her, because a great chunk of external life stands before her, still unlived. She has too little hold upon life to risk all at once a complete reversal of standpoint. The collective unconscious has fallen upon her and threatens to bear her away from a reality whose demands have not been adequately met. Accordingly, as the dream indicates, the collective unconscious had to be presented to her as something dangerous, otherwise she would have been only too ready to make it a refuge from the demands of life. In judging a dream we must observe very carefully how the figures are introduced. For example, the crab that personifies the unconscious is negative in that it "walks backwards" and, in addition, holds back the dreamer at the critical moment. Misled by the so-called dream mechanisms of Freudian manufacture, such as displacement, inversion, etc., people have imagined they could make themselves independent of the "fa<;:ade" of the dream by supposing that the true dream-thoughts lay hidden behind it. As against this I have long maintained that we have no right to accuse the dream of, so to speak, a deliberate manoeuvre calculated to deceive. Nature is often obscure or impenetrable, but she is not, like man, deceitful. We must therefore take it that the dream is just what it pretends to be, neither more nor less.lO If it shows something in a negative light, there is no reason for assuming that it is meant positively. The archetypal "danger at the ford" is so patent that one is almost 9 Those of

my readers who have a deeper interest in the problem of opposites and its solution, as well as in the mythological activity of the unconscious, are referred to Symbols of Transformation, Psychological Types, and The Archetypes and the Collective Unconscious. [Cf. also Mysterium Coniunctionis.EDITORS.] 10 Cf. "General Aspects of Dream Psychology." 100


THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

tempted to take the dream as a warning. But I must discountenance all such anthropomorphic interpretations. The dream itself wants nothing; it is a self-evident content, a plain natural fact like the sugar in the blood of a diabetic or the fever in a patient with typhus. It is only we who, if we are clever and can unriddle the signs of nature, turn it into a warning. 16 3 But-a warning of what? Of the obvious danger that the unconscious might overpower the dreamer at the moment of crossing. And what would being overpowered mean? An invasion by the unconscious may very easily occur at moments of critical change and decision. The bank from which she approaches the river is her situation as known to us so far. This situation has precipitated her into a neurotic deadlock, as though she had come up against an impassable obstacle. The obstacle is represented by the dream as a perfectly passable river. So things do not seem to be very serious. But in the river, most unexpectedly, the crab is hiding, and this represents the real danger on account of which the river is, or appears to be, impassable. For had she only known beforehand that the dangerous crab was lurking at this particular spot, she might perhaps have ventured to cross somewhere else, or have taken other precautions. In the dreamer's present situation it is eminently desirable that a crossing should be made. The crossing means in the first place a carrying over-a transference-of the earlier situation to the doctor. That is the new feature. Were it not for the unpredictable unconscious, this would not involve such a great risk. But we saw that through the transference the activity of archetypal figures is liable to be let loose, a fact we had not banked on. We have reckoned without our host, for we "forgot the gods." 16 4 Our dreamer is not a religious person, she is "modern." She has forgotten the religion she was once taught, she knows nothing of those moments when the gods intervene, or rather she does not know that there are age-old situations whose nature it is to stir us to the depths. One such situation is love, its passion and its danger. Love may summon forth unsuspected powers in the soul for which we had better be prepared. "Religio" in the sense of a "careful consideration" of unknown dangers and agencies-that is what is in question here. From a simple projection love may come upon her with all its fatal power, some dazzling illusion that might throw her life off its natural course. 101


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

Is it a good thing or a bad, God or devil, that will befall the dreamer? Without knowing which, she feels that she is already in its clutches. And who can say whether she will be able to cope with this complication! Until now she had managed to circumvent such an eventuality, but now it threatens to seize hold of her. That is a risk we should avoid, or, if we must take the plunge, we need a good deal of "trust in God" or "faith" in a successful issue. Thus, unsought and unexpected, the question creeps in of one's religious attitude to fate. 16 5 The dream as it stands leaves the dreamer no alternative at present but to withdraw her foot carefully; for to go on would be fatal. She cannot yet leave the neurotic situation, because the dream gives her no positive indication of any help from the unconscious. The unconscious powers are still inauspicious and obviously expect more work and a deeper insight from the dreamer before she can really venture across. 166 I certainly do not wish, by this negative example, to convey the impression that the unconscious plays a negative role in all cases. I will therefore add two fu;-ther dreams, this time of a young man, which illuminate another and more favourable side of the unconscious. I do this the more readily since the solution of the problem of opposites can be reached only irrationally, by way of contributions from the unconscious, i.e., from dreams. 16 7 First I must acquaint the reader in some measure with the personality of the dreamer, for without this acquaintance he will hardly be able to transport himself into the peculiar atmosphere of the dreams. There are dreams that are pure poems and can therefore only be understood through the mood they convey as a whole. The dreamer is a youth of a little over twenty, still entirely boyish in appearance. There is even a touch of girlishness in his looks and manner of expression. The latter betrays a very good education and upbringing. He is intelligent, with pronounced intellectual and aesthetic interests. His aestheticism is very much in evidence: we are made instantly aware of his good taste and his fine appreciation of all forms of art. His feelings are tender and soft, given to the enthusiasms typical of puberty, but somewhat effeminate. There is no trace of adolescent callowness. Undoubtedly he is too young for his age, a clear case of retarded development. It is quite in keeping with this that he should have come to me on account of his homosexuality. The 102


THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

night preceding his first visit he had the following dream: "I am in a lofty cathedral filled with mysterious twilight. They tell me that it is the cathedral at Lourdes. In the centre there is a deep dark well) into which I have to descend." 168 The dream is clearly a coherent expression of mood. The dreamer's comments are as follows: "Lourdes is the mystic fount of healing. Naturally I remembered yesterday that I was going to you for treatment and was in search of a cure. There is said to be a well like this at Lourdes. It would be rather unpleasant to go down into this water. The well in the church was ever so deep." 16 9 Now what does dream tell us? On the surface it seems clear enough, and we might be content to take it as a kind of poetic formulation of the mood of the day before. But we should never stop there, for experience shows that dreams are much deeper and more significant. One might almost suppose that the dreamer came to the doctor in a highly poetic mood and was entering upon the treatment as though it were a sacred religious act to be performed in the mystical half-light of some awe-inspiring sanctuary. But this does not fit the facts at all. The patient merely came to the doctor to be treated for that unpleasant matter, his homosexuality, which is anything but poetic. At any rate we cannot see from the mood of the preceding day why he should dream so poetically, if we were to accept so direct a causation for the origin of the dream. But we might conjecture, perhaps, that the dream was stimulated precisely by the dreamer's impressions of that highly unpoetical affair which impelled him to come to me for treatment. We might even suppose that he dreamed in such an intensely poetical manner just because of the unpoeticalness of his mood on the day before, much as a man who has fasted by day dreams of delicious meals at night. It cannot be denied that the thought of treatment, of the cure and its unpleasant procedure, recurs in the dream, but poetically transfigured, in a guise which meets most effectively the lively aesthetic and emotional needs of the dreamer. He will be drawn on irresistibly by this inviting picture, despite the fact that the well is dark, deep, and cold. Something of the dream-mood will persist after sleep and will even linger on into the morning of the day on which he has to submit to the unpleasant and unpoetical duty of visiting me. Perhaps the drab reality will be 10 3


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

170

171

touched by the bright, golden after-glow of the dream feeling. Is this, perhaps, the purpose of the dream? That would not be impossible, for in my experience the vast majority of dreams are compensatory.u They always stress the other side in order to maintain the psychic equilibrium. But the compensation of mood is not the only purpose of the dream picture. The dream also provides a mental corrective. The patient had of course nothing like an adequate understanding of the treatment to which he was about to submit himself. But the dream gives him a picture which describes in poetic metaphor's the nature of the treatment before him. This becomes immediately apparent if we follow up his associations and comments on the image of the cathedral: "Cathedral," he says, "makes me think of Cologne Cathedral. Even as a child I was fascinated by it. I remember my mother telling me of it for the first time, and I also remember how, whenever I saw a village church, I used to ask if that were Cologne Cathedral. I wanted to be a priest in a cathedral like that." In these associations the patient is describing a very important experience of his childhood. As in nearly all cases of this kind, he had a particularly close tie with his mother. By this we are not to understand a particularly good or intense conscious relationship, but something in the nature of a secret, subterranean tie which expresses itself consciously, perhaps, only in the retarded development of character,.i.e., in a relative infantilism. The developing personality naturally veers away from such an unconscious infantile bond; for nothing is more obstructive to development than persistence in an unconscious-we could also say, a psychically embryonic-state. For this reason instinct seizes on the first opportunity to replace the mother by another object. If it is to be a real mother-substitute, this object must be, in some sense, an analogy of her. This is entirely the case with our patient. The intensity with which his childish fantasy seized upon the symbol of Cologne Cathedral corresponds to the strength of his unconscious need to find a substitute for the mother. The unconscious need is heightened still further in a case where the infantile bond could become harmful. Hence the enthusiasm with which his childish imagination took up the idea 11 The idea of compensation has already been extensively used by Alfred Adler.

4

10


THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

172

of the Church; for the Church is, in the fullest sense, a mother. We speak not only of Mother Church, but even of the Church's womb. In the ceremony known as the benedictio fontis) the baptismal font is apostrophized as "immaculatus divini fontis uterus"-the immaculate womb of the divine font. We naturally think that a man must have known this meaning consciously before it could get to work in his fantasy, and that an unknowing child could not possibly be affected by these significations. Such analogies certainly do not work by way of the conscious mind, but in quite another manner. The Church represents a higher spiritual substitute for the purely natural, or "carnal," tie to the parents. Consequently it frees the individual from an unconscious natural relationship which, strictly speaking, is not a relationship at all but simply a condition of inchoate, unconscious identity. This, just because it is unconscious, possesses a tremendous inertia and offers the utmost resistance to any kind of spiritual development. It would be hard to say what the essential difference is between this state and the soul of an animal. Now, it is by no means the special prerogative of the Christian Church to try to make it possible for the individual to detach himself from his original, animallike condition; the Church is simply the latest, and specifically Western, form of an instinctive striving that is probably as old as mankind itself. It is a striving that can be found in the most varied forms among all primitive peoples who are in any way developed and have not yet become degenerate: I mean the in路 stitution or rite of initiation into manhood. When he has reached puberty the young man is conducted to the "men's house," or some other place of consecration, where he is system路 atically alienated from his family. At the same time he is initiated into the religious mysteries, and in this way is ushered not only into a wholly new set of relationships, but, as a renewed and changed personality, into a new world, like one reborn (quasimodo genitus). The initiation is often attended by all kinds of tortures, sometimes including such things as circumci路 sion and the like. These practices are undoubtedly very old. They have almost become instinctive mechanisms, with the result that they continue to repeat themselves without external compulsion, as in the "baptisms" of German students or the 10 5


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

even more wildly extravagant initiations in American students' fraternities. They are engraved on the unconscious as a primordial image. 173 When his mother told him as a little boy about Cologne Cathedral, this primordial image was stirred and awakened to life. But there was no priestly instructor to develop it further, so the child remained in his mother's hands. Yet the longing for a man's leadership continued to grow in the boy, taking the form of homosexual leanings-a faulty developmeJ;1t that might never have come about had a man been there to educate his childish fantasies. The deviation towards homosexuality has, to be sure, numerous historical precedents. In ancient Greece, as also in certain primitive communities, homosexuality and education were practically synonymous. Viewed in this light, the homosexuality of adolescence is only a misunderstanding of the otherwise very appropriate need for masculine guidance. One might also say that the fear of incest which is based on the mother-complex extends to women in general; but in my opinion an immature man is quite right to be afraid of women, because his relations with women are generally disastrous. 174 According to the dream, then, what the initiation of the treatment signifies for the patient is the fulfilment of the true meaning of his homosexuality, i.e., his entry into the world of the adult man. All that we h<l짜e been forced to discuss here in such tedious and long-winded detail, in order to understand it properly, the dream has condensed into a few vivid metaphors, thus creating a picture which works far more effectively on the imagination, feeling, and understanding of the dreamer than any learned discourse. Consequently the patient was better and more intelligently prepared for the treatment than if he had been overwhelmed with medical and pedagogical maxims. (For this reason I regard dreams not only as a valuable source of information but as an extraordinarily effective instrument of education.) 175 We come now to the second dream. I must explain in advance that in the first consultation I did not refer in any way to the dream we have just been discussing. It was not even mentioned. Nor was there a word said that was even remotely connected with the foregoing. This is the second dream: "1 am in a great Gothic cathedral. At the altar stands a priest. 1 stand be106


--

--

-

-

-

-

--

-

.•.•. ---

- - -.-

tore him with my friend, holding in my hand a little Japanese ivory figure, with the feeling that it is going to be baptized. Suddenly an elderly woman appears, takes the fraternity ring from my friend's finger) and puts it on her own. My friend is afraid that this may bind him in some way. But at the same moment there is a sound of wonderful organ music." 176 Here I will only bring out briefly those points which continue and supplement the dream of the preceding day. The second dream is unmistakably connected with the first: once more the dreamer is in church, that is, in the state of initiation into manhood. But a new figure has been added: the priest, whose absence in the previous situation we have already noted. The dream therefore confirms that the unconscious meaning of his homosexuality has been fulfilled and that a further development can be started. The actual initiation ceremony, namely the baptism, may now begin. The dream symbolism corroborates what I said before, namely that it is not the prerogative of the Christian Church to bring about such transitions and psychic transformations, but that behind the Church there is a living primordial image which in certain conditions is capable of enforcing them. 177 What, according to the dream, is to be baptized is a little Japanese ivory figure. The patient says of this: "It was a tiny, grotesque little manikin that reminded me of the male organ. It was certainly odd that this member was to be baptized. But after all, with the Jews circumcision is a sort of baptism. That must be a reference to my homosexuality, because the friend standing with me before the altar is the one with whom I have sexual relations. We belong to the same fraternity. The fraternity ring obviously stands for our relationship." 178 We know that in common usage the ring is the token of a bond or relationship, as for example the wedding ring. We can therefore safely take the fraternity ring in this case as symbolizing the homosexual relationship, and the fact that the dreamer appears together with his friend points in the same direction. 179 The complaint to be remedied is homosexuality. The dreamer is to be led out of this relatively childish condition and initiated into the adult state by means of a kind of circumcision ceremony under the supervision of a priest. These ideas COrrespond exactly to my analysis of the previous dream. Thus far the development has proceeded logically and consistently with the 10

7



180

181

182

aid of archetypal images. But now a disturbing factor comes on the scene. An elderly woman suddenly takes possession of the fraternity ring; in other words, she draws to herself what has hitherto been a homosexual relationship, thus causing the dreamer to fear that he is getting involved in a new relationship with obligations of its own. Since the ring is now on the hand of a woman, a marriage of sorts has been contracted, i.e., the homosexual relationship seems to have passed over into a heterosexual one, but a heterosexual relationship of a peculiar kind since it concerns an elderly woman. "She is a friend of my mother's," says the patient. "I am very fond of her, in fact she is like a mother to me." From this remark we can see what has happened in the dream: as a result of the initiation the homosexual tie has been cut and a heterosexual relationship substituted for it, a platonic friendship with a motherly type of woman. In spite of her resemblance to his mother, this woman is not his mother any longer, so the relationship with her signifies a step beyond the mother towards masculinity, and hence a partial conquest of his adolescent homosexuality. The fear of the new tie can easily be understood, firstly as fear which the woman's resemblance to his mother might naturally arouse-it might be that the dissolution of the homosexual tie has led to a complete regression to the mother-and secondly as fear of the new and unknown factors in the adult heterosexual state with its possible obligations, such as marriage, etc. That we are in fact concerned here n@t with a regression but with a progression seems to be confirmed by the music that now peals forth. The patient is musical and especially susceptible to solemn organ music. Therefore music signifies for him a very positive feeling, so in this case it forms a harmonious conclusion to the dream, which in its turn is well qualified to leave behind a beautiful, holy feeling for the following morning. If you consider the fact that up to now the patient had seen me for only one consultation, in which little more was discussed than a general anamnesis, you will doubtless agree with me when I say that both dreams make astonishing anticipations. They show the patient's situation in a highly remarkable light, and one that is very strange to the conscious mind, while at the same time lending to the banal medical situation an aspect that 108


.LCl.L .t\..l'\.\.....ln.I:d .lrx..::J VJ:'

~n.r..

L.ULL~L.IJ.VJ!. Ul'll....Ul'路'Il,:,L.lUU~

is uniquely attuned to the mental peculiarities of the dreamer, and thus capable of stringing his aesthetic, intellectual, and religious interests to concert pitch. No better conditions for treatment could possibly be imagined. One is almost persuaded, from the meaning of these dreams, that the patient entered upon the treatment with the utmost readiness and hopefulness, quite prepared to cast aside his boyishness and become a man. In reality, however, this was not the case at all. Consciously he was full of hesitation and resistance; moreover, as the treatment progressed, he constantly showed himself antagonistic and difficult, ever ready to slip back into his previous infantilism. Consequently the dreams stand in strict contrast to his conscious behaviour. They move along a progressive line and take the part of the educator. They clearly reveal their special function. This function I have called compensation. The unconscious progressiveness and the conscious regressiveness together form a pair of opposites which, as it were, keeps the scales balanced. The influence of the educator tilts the balance in favour of progression. 18 3 In the case of this young man the images of the collective unconscious play an entirely positive role, which comes from the fact that he has no really dangerous tendency to fall back on a fantasy-substitute for reality and to entrench himself behind it against life. The effect of these unconscious images has something fateful about it. Perhaps-who knows?-these eternal images are what men mean by fate. 18 4 The archetypes are of course always at work everywhere. But practical treatment, especially in the case of young people, does not always require the patient to come to close quarters with them. At the climacteric, on the other hand, it is necessary to give special attention to the images of the collective unconscious, because they are the source from which hints may be drawn for the solution of the problem of opposites. From the conscious elaboration of this material the transcendent function reveals itself as a mode of apprehension mediated by the archetypes and capable of uniting the opposites. By "apprehension" I do not mean simply intellectual understanding, but understanding through experience. An archetype, as we have said, is a dynamic image, a fragment of the objective psyche, which can be truly understood only if experienced as an autonomous entity. 18 5 A general account of this process, which may extend over a 109


UN THE .I:':SYL:HULUliY U.l' Itl~ Ul~L.Ul''l::>L.lVU::>

long period of time, would be pointless-even if such a description were possible-because it takes the greatest imaginable variety of forms in different individuals. The only common factor is the emergence of certain definite archetypes. I would mention in particular the shadow, the animal, the wise old man, the anima, the animus, the mother, the child, besides an indefinite number of archetypes representative of situations. A special position must be accorded to those archetypes which stand for the goal of the developmental process. The reader will find the necessary information on this point in my Psychology and Alchemy, as well as in "Psychology and Religion" and the volume written in collaboration with Richard Wilhelm, The Secret of the Golden Flower. 186 The transcendent function does not proceed without aim and purpose, but leads to the revelation of the essential man. It is in the first place a purely natural process, which may in some cases pursue its course without the knowledge or assistance of the indivi~ual, and can sometimes forcibly accomplish itself in the face of opposition. The meaning and purpose of the process is the realization, in all its aspects, of the personality originally hidden away in the embryonic germ-plasm; the production and unfolding of the original, potential wholeness. The symbols used by the unconscious to this end are the same as those which mankind has always used to express wholeness, completeness, and perfection: symbols, as a rule, of the quaternity and the circle. For these reasons I have termed this the individuation process. 18 7 This natural proces! of individuation served me both as a model and guiding principle for my method of treatment. The unconscious compensation of a neurotic conscious attitude contains all the elements that could effectively and healthily correct the one-sidedness of the conscious mind if these elements were made conscious, i.e., were understood and integrated into it as realities. It is only very seldom that a dream achieves such intensity that the shock is enough to throw the conscious mind out of the saddle. As a rule dreams are too feeble and too unintelligible to exercise a radical influence on consciousness. In consequence, the compensation runs underground in the unconscious and has no immediate effect. But it has some effect all the same; only, it is indirect in so far as the unconscious opposition will, 110


THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

188

18

9

if consistently ignored, arrange symptoms and situations which irresistibly thwart our conscious intentions. The aim of the treatment is therefore to understand and to appreciate, so far as practicable, dreams and all other manifestations of the unconscious, firstly in order to prevent the formation of an unconscious opposition which becomes more dangerous as time goes on, and secondly in order to make the fullest possible use of the healing factor of compensation. These proceedings naturally rest on the assumption that a man is capable of attaining wholeness, in other words, that he has it in him to be healthy. I mention this assumption because there are without doubt individuals who are not at bottom altogether viable and who rapidly perish if, for any reason, they come face to face with their wholeness. Even if this does not happen, they merely lead a miserable existence for the rest of their days as fragments or partial personalities, shored up by social or psychic parasitism. Such people are, very much to the misfortune of others, more often than not inveterate humbugs who cover up their deadly emptiness under a fine outward show. It would be a hopeless undertaking to try to treat them with the method here discussed. The only thing that "helps" here is to keep up the show, for the truth would be unendurable or useless. When a case is treated in the manner indicated, the initiative lies with the unconscious, but all criticism, choice, and decision lie with the conscious mind. If the decision is right, it will be confirmed by dreams indicative of progress; in the other event correction will follow from the side of the unconscious. The course of treatment is thus rather like a running conversation with the unconscious. That the correct interpretation of dreams is of paramount importance should be sufficiently clear from what has been said. But when, you may rightly ask, is one sure of the interpretation? Is there anything 'approaching a reliable criterion for the correctness of an interpretation? This question, happily, can be answered in the affirmative. If we have made a wrong interpretation, or if it is somehow incomplete, we may be able to see it from the next dream. Thus, for example, the earlier motif will be repeated in clearer form, or our interpretation may be deflated by some ironic paraphrase, or it may meet with straightforward violent opposition. Now supposing 111


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF TH~ UNCON:SCIUU:S

190

191

that these interpretations also go astray, the general inconclusiveness and futility of our procedure will make itself felt soon enough in the bleakness, sterility, and pointlessness of the undertaking, so that doctor and patient alike will be suffocated either by boredom or by doubt. Just as the reward of a correct interpretation is an uprush of life, so an incorrect one dooms them to deadlock, resistance, doubt, and mutual desiccation. Stoppages can of course also arise from the resistance of the patient, as for instance from an obstinate clinging to outworn illusions or to infantile demands. Sometimes, too, the doctor lacks the necessary understanding, as once happened to me in the case of a very intelligent patient, a woman who, for various reasons, looked to me rather a rum customer. After a satisfactory beginning I had the feeling more and more that somehow my interpretation of her dreams was not quite hitting the mark. As I was unable to lay my finger on the source of error, I tried to talk myself out of my doubts. But during the consulting hours I became aware of the growing dullness of our conversation, with a steadily mounting sense of excruciating futility. Finally I resolved to speak about it at the next opportunity to my patient, who, it seemed to me, had not failed to notice this fact. The next night I had the following dream: I was walking along a country road through a valley lit by the evening sun. To my right) standing on a steep hill) was a castle) and on the topmost tower) on a kind of balustrade) sat a woman. In order to see her properly I had to bend my head back so far that I got a crick in the neck. Even in my dream I recognized the woman as my patient,12 From this I concluded that if I had to look up so much in the dream, I must obviously have looked down on my patient in reality. When I told her the dream together with the interpretation, a complete change came over the situation at once and the treatment shot ahead beyond all expectation. Experiences of this kind, although paid for very dearly, lead to an unshakable confidence in the reliability of dream compensations. To the manifold problems involved in this method of treatment all my labours and researches have been devoted for the last ten years. But sincâ‚Ź, in this present account of analytical psychology, I am concerned only to provide a general survey, a 12 [Further details in "The Realities of Practical Psychotherapy," in the 2nd edn. of The Practice of Psychotherapy, pars. 540ff. Cf. infra, par. 281.-EDlTORS.] 112


THE ARCHETYPES OF THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

more detailed exposition of the widely ramified scientific, philosophical, and religious implications must remain in abeyance. For this I shall have to refer my reader to the literature I have mentioned.

113


VIII GENERAL REMARKS ON THE THERAPEUTIC APPROACH TO THE UNCONSCIOUS 192

We are greatly mistaken if we think that the unconscious is something harmless that could be made into an object of entertainment, a parlour game. Certainly the unconscious is not always and in all circumstances dangerous, but as soon as a neurosis is present it is a sign of a special heaping up of energy in the unconscious, like a charge that may explode. Here caution is indicated. One never knows what one may be releasing when one begins to analyse dreams. Something deeply buried and invisible may thereby be set in motion, very probably something that would have come to light sooner or later anyway-but again, it might not. It is as if one were digging an artesian well and ran the risk of stumbling on a volcano. When neurotic symptoms are present one must proceed very carefully. But the neurotic cases are not by a long way the most dangerous. There are cases of people, apparently quite normal, showing no especial neurotic symptoms-they may themselves be doctors and educators-priding themselves on their normality, models of good upbringing, with exceptionally normal views and habits of life, yet whose normality is an artificial compensation for a latent psychosis. They themselves suspect nothing of their condition. Their suspicions may perhaps find only an indirect expression in the fact that they are particularly interested in psychology and psychiatry, and are attracted to these things as a moth to the light. But since the analytical technique activates the unconscious and brings it to the fore, in these cases the healthful compensation is destroyed, the unconscious breaks forth in the form of uncontrollable., fantasies and overwrought states which may, in certain circumstances, lead to mental disorder and possibly even to suicide. Unfortunately these latent psychoses are not so very uncommon. 114


GENERAL REMARKS

193

194

19 5

The danger of stumbling on cases like these threatens every body who concerns himself with the analysis of the unconscious even if he be equipped with a large measure of experience anc skill. Through clumsiness, mistaken ideas, arbitrary interpretations, and so forth, he may even wreck cases that need not neces sarily have turned out badly. This is by no means peculiar to th~ analysis of the unconscious, but is the penalty of all medical in路 tervention that miscarries. The assertion that analysis drive~ people mad is obviously just as stupid as the vulgar notion that the psychiatrist is bound to go mad because he deals with luna路 tics. Apart from the risks of treatment, the unconscious may also turn dangerous on its own account. One of the commonest forms of danger is the instigating of accidents. A very large number of accidents of every description, more than people would ever guess, are of psychic causation, ranging from trivial mishaps like stumbling, banging oneself, burning one's fingers, etc., to car smashes and catastrophes in the mountains: all these may be psychically caused and may sometimes have been preparing for weeks or even months. I have examined many cases of this kind, and often I could point to dreams which showed signs of a tendency to self-injury weeks beforehand. All those accidents that happen from so-called carelessness should be examined for such determinants. We know of course that when for one reason or another we feel out of sorts, we are liable to commit not only the minor follies, but something really dangerous which, given the right psychological moment, may well put an end to our lives. The popular saying, "Old so-and-so chose the right time to die," comes from a sure sense of the secret psychological cause in question. In the same way, bodily ills can be brought into being or protracted. A wrong functioning of the psyche can do mnch to injure the body, just as conversely a bodily illness can affect the psyche; for psyche and body are not separate entities but one and the same life. Thus there is seldom a bodily ailment that does not show psychic complications, even if it is not psychically caused. It would be wrong, however, to dwell only on the unfavourable side of the unconscious. In all ordinary cases the unconscious is unfavourable or dangerous only because we are not at one with it and therefore in opposition to it. A negative attitude 115


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

Ig6

197

Ig8

to the unconscious, or its splitting off, is detrimental in so far as the dynamics of the unconscious are identical with instinctual energy'! Disalliance with the unconscious is synonymous with loss of instinct and rootlessness. If we can successfully develop that function which I have called transcendent, the disharmony ceases and we can then enjoy the favourable side of the unconscious. The unconscious. then gives us all the encouragement and help that a bountiful nature can shower upon man. It holds pqssibilities which are locked away from the conscious mind, for it has at its disposal all subliminal psychic contents, all those things which have been forgotten or overlooked, as well as the wisdom and experience of uncounted centuries which are laid down in its archetypal organs. The unconscious is continually active, combining its material in ways which serve the future. It produces, no less than the conscious mind, subliminal combinations that are prospective; only, they are markedly superior to the conscious combinations both in refinement and in scope. For these reasons the unconscious could serve man as a unique guide, provided that he can resist the lure of being misguided. In practice the treatment is adjusted according to the therapeutic results obtained. Results may appear at almost any stage of the treatment, quite irrespective of the severity or duration of the illness. And conversely, the treatment of a severe case may last a very long time without reaching, or needing to reach, the higher stages of development. There are a fair number who, even after therapeutic results have been obtained, go through further stages of transformation for the sake of their own development. So it is not true that one must be a serious case in order to go through the whole process. At all events only those individuals can attain to a higher degree of consciousness who are destined to it and called to it from the beginning, i.e., who have a capacity and an urge for higher differentiation. In this matter men differ extremely, as also do the animal species, among whom there are conservatives and progressives. Nature is aristocratic, but not in the sense of having reserved the possibility of differentiation exclusively for species high in the scale. So too with the possiblity of psychic development: it is not reserved for 1 Cf. "Instinct and the Unconscious." 116


GENERAL REMARKS

199

specially gifted individuals. In other words, in order to underg( a far-reaching psychological development, neither outstandin~ intelligence nor any other talent is necessary, since in this devel opment moral qualities can make up for intellectual shortcom ings. It must not on any account be imagined that the treatmenl consists in grafting upon people's minds general formulas anc complicated doctrines. There is no question of that. Each car take what he needs, in his own way and in his own language What I have presented here is an intellectual formulation; it i~ not the sort of thing discussed in the general run of practical work. The little snippets of case histories I have woven into m) theme give a rough idea of what happens in practice. If, after all that has been related in the foregoing chapters, the reader should still not feel capable of forming a clear picture of the theory and practice of modern medical psychology, that would not surprise me so very much. I would, on the contrary, be inclined to blame my faulty gift of exposition, since I can hardly hope to give a concrete picture of that wide field of thought and experience which is the domain of medical psychology. On paper the interpretation of a dream may look arbitrary, muddled, and spurious; but the same thing in reality can be a little drama of unsurpassed realism. To experience a dream and its interpretation is very different from having a tepid rehash set before you on paper. Everything about this psychology is, in the deepest sense, experience; the entire theory, even where it puts on the most abstract airs, is the direct outcome of something experienced. If I accuse the Freudian sexual theory of one-sidedness, that does not mean that it rests on rootless speculation; it too is a faithful picture of real facts which force themselves upon our practical observation. And if the inferences made from them proliferate into a one-sided theory, that only goes to show with what powers of persuasion, both objective and subjective, the facts in question themselves bring to bear. The individual investigator can hardly be asked to rise superior to his own deepest impressions and their abstract formulation; for the acquisition of such impressions as well as their conceptual mastery is in itself the labour of a lifetime. For my part, I had the great advantage over both Freud and Adler of not having grown up within the narrow confines of a psychology of the neuroses; rather, I approach them from the side of psychiatry, prepared 117


ON THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

200

for modern psychology by Nietzsche, and apart from Freud's views I also had before my eyes the growth of the views of Adler. In this way I found myself in the thick of the conflict from the very beginning, and was forced to regard not only the existing opinions, but my own as well, as relative, or rather as expressions of a certain psychological type. Just as the Breuer case we have discussed was decisive for Freud, so a decisive experience underlies my own views. Towards the end of my medical training I observed for a long period a case of somnambulism in a young girl. It became the theme of my doctor's dissertation.2 For one acquainted with my scientific writings it may not be without interest to compare this forty-year-old study with my later ideas. Work in this field is pioneer work. I have often made mistakes and had many times to forget what I had learned. But I know and am content to know that as surely as light comes out of darkness, truth is born of error. I have let Guglielmo Ferrero's mot about the "miserable vanite du savant" 3 serve me for a warning, and have therefore neither feared my mistakes nor seriously regretted them. For me, scientific research work was never a milch-cow or a means of prestige, but a struggle, often a bitter one, forced upon me by daily psychological experience of the sick. Hence not everything I bring forth is written out of my head, but much of it comes from the heart also, a fact I would beg the gracious reader not to overlook if, following up the intellectual line of thought, he comes upon certain lacunae that have not been properly filled in. A harmonious flow of exposition can be expected only when one is writing about things which one already knows. But when, urged on by the need to help and to heal, one acts as a path-finder, one must speak also of realities as yet unknown. 2

"On the Psychology and Pathology of So-called Occult Phenomena."

"C'est donc un devoir moral de l'homme de science de s'exposer a commettre des erreurs et a subir des critiques, pour que la science avance toujours ...• Ceux qui sont doU(~s d'un esprit assez serieux et froid pour ne pas croire que tout ce qu'iIs ecrivent est l'expression de la verite absolue et eternelle, approuvent cett,(f theorie qui place les raisons de la science au-dessus de la miserable vanite et du mesquin amour propre du savant."-Les Lois psychologiques du symbolisme, p. viii; trans. of I simboli in rapporto alla storia e filosofia del 3

diritto alla psicologia e alla sociologia (1893). 118


CONCLUSION 201

In conclusion I must ask the reader to forgive me for having ventured to say in these few pages so much that is new and perhaps hard to understand. I expose myself to his critical judgment because I feel it is the duty of one who goes his own way to inform society of what he finds on his voyage of discovery, be it cooling water for the thirsty or the sandy wastes of unfruitful error. The one helps, the other warns. Not the criticism of individual contemporaries will decide the truth or falsity of his discoveries, but future generations. There are things that are not yet true today, perhaps we dare not find them true, but tomorrow they may be. So every man whose fate it is to go his individual way must proceed with hopefulness and watchfulness, ever conscious of his loneliness and its dangers. The peculiarity of the way here described is largely due to the fact that in psychology, which springs from and acts upon real life, we can no longer appeal to the narrowly intellectual, scientific standpoint, but are driven to take account of the standpoint of feeling, and consequently of everything that the psyche actually contains. In practical psychology we are dealing not with any generalized human psyche, but with individual human beings and the multitudinous problems that oppress them. A psychology that satisfies the intellect alone can never be practical, for the totality of the psyche can never be grasped by intellect alone. Whether we will or no, philosophy keeps breaking through, because the psyche seeks an expression that will embrace its total nature.

119




PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION (1935) This little book is the outcome of a lecture which was originall published in 1916 under the title "La Structure de l'incor scient." 1 This same lecture later appeared in English under th title "The Conception of the Unconscious" in my Collected Pt pers on Analytical Psychology.2 I mention these facts because wish to place it on record that the present essay is not making it first appearance, but is rather the expression of a long-standin endeavour to grasp and-at least in its essential features-to dt pict the strange character and course of that drame interieU1 the transformation process of the unconscious psyche. This ide: of the independence of the unconscious, which distinguishes ill views so radically from those of Freud, came to me as far back a 1902, when I was engaged in studying the psychic history of ; young girl somnambulist. s In a lecture given in Zurich [1908 on "The Content of the Psychoses," I approached this idea ÂŁron another side. In 1912, I illustrated some of the main points 0 the process in an individual case and at the same time I indi cated the historical and ethnological parallels to these seemingluniversal psychic events.4 In the above-mentioned essay, "L; Structure de l'inconscient," I attempted for the first time to givl a comprehensive account of the whole process. It was a men attempt, of whose inadequacy I was painfully aware. The diffi culties presented by the material were so great that I could no hope to do them anything like justice in a single essay. I there fore let it rest at the stage of an "interim report," with the firrr intention of returning to this theme at a later opportunity Twelve years of further experience enabled me, in 1928, to un dertake a thorough revision of my formulations of 1916, anc the result of these labours was the little book Die Beziehunger 1 Cf. below, pars. 442fl'.: "The Structure of the Unconscious." 2 2nd edn., London, 1917; New York, 1920 . 3 "On the Psychology and Pathology of So-called Occult Phenomena." 4 Wandlungen und Symbole der Libido (Leipzig and Vienna, 1912); trans. b; Beatrice M. Hinkle as Psychology ot the Unconscious (New York, 1916; London 191 7). [Rewritten as Symbole der Wandlung (Zurich, 1952), trans. in Call. Works Vol. 5: Symbols ot Transtormation.-EDlToRs.]

3

12


TH"t; K"t;LATIUN~ Jj~l W~~l'l 1.tl.t... .t...\.7V .f\.l~U

In.ÂŁ.. Ul~\....Vl~.:)\....J.VU"

zwischen dem Ich und dem Unbewussten. 5 This time I tried to describe chiefly the relation of the ego-consciousness to the unconscious process. Following this intention, I concerned myself more particularly with those phenomena which are to be regarded as the reactive symptoms of the conscious personality to the influences of the unconscious. In this way I tried to effect an indirect approach to the unconscious process itself. These investigations have not yet come to a satisfactory conclusion, for the answer to the crucial problem of the nature and essence of the unconscious process has still to be found. I would not venture upon this exceedingly difficult task without the fullest possible experience. Its solution is reserved for the future. I trust the reader of this book will bear with me if I beg him to regard it-should he persevere-as an earnest attempt on my part to form an intellectual conception of a new and hitherto unexplored field of experience. It is not concerned with a clever system of thought, but with the formulation of complex psychic experiences which have never yet been the subject of scientific study. Since the psyche is an irrational datum and cannot, in accordance with the old picture, be equated with a more or less divine Reason, it should not surprise us if in the course of psychological experience we come across, with extreme frequency, processes and happenings which run counter to our rational expectations and are therefore rejected by the rationalistic attitude of our conscious mind. Such an attitude is naturally not very skilled at psychological observation because it is in the highest degree unscientific. We must not attempt to tell nature what to do if we want to observe her operations undisturbed. It is twenty-eight years of psychological and psychiatric experience that I am trying to sum up here, so perhaps my little book may lay some claim to serious consideration. Naturally I could not say everything in this single exposition. The reader will find a development of the last chapter, [with reference to the concept of the self], in my commentary to The Secret of the Golden Flower) the book I brought out in collaboration with my friend Richard Wilhelm. I did not wish to omit reference to this publication, because Oriental philosophy has been con5 [Trans. by H. G. and C. F. Baynes as "The Relations Between the Ego and the Unconscious" in Two Essays on Analytical Psychology (London and New York, 1928).]

124


.t'K./:',1'AI.;./:',:S

cerned with these interior psychic processes for many hundm of years and is therefore, in view of the great need for compar tive material, of inestimable value in psychological research.

October I934

C. G. JUl'

APril I938

C. G. JUN

PREFACE TO THE THIRD EDITION (1938) The new edition is published without changes. Since this WOl first appeared no new points of view have emerged which migl have made revisions desirable. I would like to preserve the cha acter of this little book-an unpretentious introduction to tl: psychological problems of the process of individuation-and n< burden it with copious details that might limit its readability.

125




THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

205

206

liminal sense-perceptions. Moreover we know, from abundant experience as well as for theoretical reasons, that the unconscious also contains all the material that has not yet reached the threshold of consciousness. These are the seeds of future conscious contents. Equally we have reason to suppose that the unconscious is never quiescent in the sense of being inactive, but is ceaselessly engaged in grouping and regrouping its contents. This activity should be thought of as completely autonomous only in pathological cases; normally it is co-ordinated with the conscious mind in a compensatory relationship. It is to be assumed that all these contents are of a personal nature in so far as they are acquired during the individual's life. Since this life is limited, the number of acquired contents in the unconscious must also be limited. This being so, it might be thought possible to empty the unconscious either by analysis or by making a complete inventory of the unconscious contents, on the ground that the unconscious cannot produce anything more than what is already known and assimilated into consciousness. We should also have to suppose, as already said, that if one could arrest the descent of conscious contents into the unconscious by doing away with repression, unconscious productivity would be paralysed. This is possible only to a very limited extent, as we know from experience. We urge our patients to hold fast to repressed contents that have been re-associated with consciousness, and to assimilate them into their plan of life. But this procedure, as we may daily convince ourselves, makes no impression on the unconscious, since it calmly goes on producing dreams and fantasies which, according to Freud's original theory, must arise from personal repressions. If in such cases we pursue our observations systematically and without prejudice, we shall find material which, although similar in form to the previous personal contents, yet seems to contain allusions that go far beyond the personal sphere. Casting about in my mind for an example to illustrate what I have just said, I have a particularly vivid memory of a woman patient with a mild hysterical neurosis which, as we expressed it in those days [about 191OJ, had its principal cause in a "fathercomplex." By this we wanted to denote the fact that the patient's peculiar relationship to her father stood in her way. She had been on very good terms with her father, who had since 128


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

died. It was a relationship chiefly of feeling. In such cases it j usually the intellectual function that is developed, and this late becomes the bridge to the world. Accordingly our patient b( came a student of philosophy. Her energetic pursuit of know edge was motivated by her need to extricate herself from th emotional entanglement with her father. This operation ma succeed if her feelings can find an outlet on the new intellectua level, perhaps in the formation of an emotional tie with a suil able man, equivalent to the former tie. In this particular cas( however, the transition refused to take place, because the pa tient's feelings remained suspended, oscillating between her fa ther and a man who was not altogether suitable. The progress 0 her life was thus held up, and that inner disunity so characteri~ tic of a neurosis promptly made its appearance. The so-calle< normal person would probably be able to break the emotiona bond in one or the other direction by a powerful act of will, 0 else-and this is perhaps the more usual thing-he would coml through the difficulty unconsciously, on the smooth path of in stinct, without ever being aware of the sort of conflict that la~ behind his headaches or other physical discomforts. But an~ weakness of instinct (which may have many causes) is enough t< hinder a smooth unconscious transition. Then all progress is de layed by conflict, and the resulting stasis of life is equivalent to ; neurosis. In consequence of the standstill, psychic energy flow off in every conceivable direction, apparently quite uselessly For instance, there are excessive innervations of the sympatheti( system, which lead to nervous disorders of the stomach and in testines; or the vagus (and consequently the heart) is stimu lated; or fantasies and memories, uninteresting enough in them selves, become overvalued and prey on the conscious mine (mountains out of molehills). In this state a new motive i: . needed to put an end to the morbid suspension. Nature hersell paves the way for this, unconsciously and indirectly, through th( phenomenon of the transference (Freud). In the course 01 treatment the patient transfers the father-imago to the doctor thus making him, in a sense, the father, and in the sense that h( is not the father, also making him a substitute for the man sh( cannot reach. The doctor therefore becomes both a father and (' kind of lover-in other words, an object of conflict. In him th( opposites are united, and for this reason he stands for a quasi 12

9


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

207

208

ideal solution of the conflict. Without in the least wishing it, he draws upon himself an over-valuation that is almost incredible to the outsider, for to the patient he seems like a saviour or a god. This way of speaking is not altogether so laughable as it sounds. It is indeed a bit much to be a father and lover at once. Nobody could possibly stand up to it in the long run, precisely because it is too much of a good thing. One would have to be a demigod at least to sustain such a role without a break, for all the time one would have to be the giver. To the patient in the state of transference, this provisional solution naturally seems ideal, but only at first; in the end she comes to a standstill that is just as bad as the neurotic conflict was. Fundamentally, nothing has yet happened that might lead to a real solution. The conflict has merely been transferred. Nevertheless a successful transference can-at least temporarily-cause the whole neurosis to disappear, and for this reason it has been very rightly recognized by Freud as a healing factor of first-rate importance, but, at the same time, as a provisional state only, for although it holds out the possibility of a cure, it is far from being the cure itself. This somewhat lengthy discussion seemed to me essential i[ my example was to be understood, for my patient had arrived at the state of transference and had already reached the upper limit where the standstill begins to make itself disagreeable. The question now arose: what next? I had of course become the complete saviour, and the thought of having to give me up was not only exceedingly distasteful to the patient, but positively terrifying. In such a situation "sound common sense" generally comes out with a whole repertory of admonitions: "you simply must," "you really ought," "you just cannot," etc. So far as sound common sense is, happily, not too rare and not entirely without effect (pessimists, I know, exist), a rational motive can, in the exuberant feeling of buoyancy you get from the transference, release so much enthusiasm that a painful sacrifice can be risked with a mighty effort of will. If successful-and these things sometimes are-the sacrifice bears blessed fruit, and the erstwhile patient leaps at one bound into the state of being practically cured. The doctor is generally so delighted that he fails to tackle the theoretical difficulties connected with this little miracle. If the leap does not succeed-and it did not succeed with my patient-one is then faced with the problem of resolving the 130


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

2掳9

210

211

transference. Here "psychoanalytic" theory shrouds itself in thick darkness. Apparently we are to fall back on some nebulou trust in fate: somehow or other the matter will settle itself. "The transference stops automatically when the patient runs out 0 money," as a slightly cynical colleague once remarked to me. OJ the ineluctable demands of life make it impossible for the pa tient to linger on in the transference-demands which compe the involuntary sacrifice, sometimes with a more or less corn plete relapse as a result. (One may look in vain for accounts 01 such cases in the books that sing the praises of psychoanalysis!: To be sure, there are hopeless cases where nothing helps; bUI there are also cases that do not get stuck and do not inevitabl~ leave the transference situation with bitter hearts and son heads. I told myself, at this juncture with my patient, that then must be a clear and respectable way out of the impasse. My pa路 tient had long since run out of money-if indeed she ever pos sessed any-but I was curious to know what means nature would devise for a satisfactory way out of the transference deadlock. Since I never imagined that I was blessed with that "sound com mon sense" which always knows exactly what to do in ever) quandary, and since my patient knew as little as I, I suggested tc her that we could at least keep an eye open for any movement~ coming from a sphere of the psyche uncontaminated by our superior wisdom and our conscious plannings. That meant first and foremost her dreams. Dreams contain images and thought-associations which we do not create with conscious intent. They arise spontaneously without our assistance and are representatives of a psychic activity withdrawn from our arbitrary will. Therefore the dream is, properly speaking, a highly objective, natural product of the psyche, from which we might expect indications, or at least hints, about certain basic trends in the psychic process. Now, since the psychic process, like any other life-process, is not just a causal sequence, but is also a process with a teleological orientation, we might expect dreams to give us certain indicia about the objective causality as well as about the objective tendencies, precisely because dreams are nothing less than self-representations of the psychic life-process. On the basis of these reflections, then, we subjected the dreams to a careful examination. It would lead too far to quote 131


212

3

21

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS word for word all the dreams that now followed. Let it suffice to sketch their main character: the majority referred to the person of the doctor, that is to say, the actors were unmistakably the dreamer herself and her doctor. The latter, however, seldom appeared in his natural shape, but was generally distorted in a remarkable way. Sometimes his figure was of supernatural size, sometimes he seemed to be extremely aged, then again he resembled her father, but was at the same time curiously woven into nature, as in the following dream: Her father (who in reality was of small stature) was standing with her on a hill that was covered with wheat-fields. She was quite tiny beside him) and he seemed to her like a giant. He lifted her up from the ground and held her in his arms like a little child. The wind swept over the wheat-fields) and as the wheat swayed in the wind) he rocked her in his arms. From this dream and from others like it I could discern various things. Above all I got the impression that her unconscious was holding unshakably to the idea of my being the fatherlover, so that the fatal tie we were trying to undo appeared to be doubly strengthened. Moreover one could hardly avoid seeing that the unconscious placed a special emphasis on the supernatural, almost "divine" nature of the father-lover, thus accentuating still further the over-valuation occasioned by the transference. I therefore asked myself whether the patient had still not understood the wholly fantastic character of her transference, or whether perhaps the unconscious could never be reached by understanding at all, but must blindly and idiotically pursue some nonsensical chimera. Freud's idea that the unconscious can "do nothing but wish," Schopenhauer's blind and aimless Will, t.he gnostic demiurge who in his vanit.y deems himself perfect. and then in the blindness of his limitation creates something lamentably imperfect-all these pessimistic suspicions of an essentially negative background to the world and the soul came threateningly near. And there would indeed be nothing to set against this except a well-meaning "you ought," reinforced by a stroke of the axe that would cut down the whole phantasmagoria for good and all. But, as I turned the dreams over and over in my mind, there dawned on me another possibility. I said to myself: it cannot be denied that the dreams continue to speak in the same old meta 132


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

214

21

5

phors with which our conversations have made the patient a well as myself sickeningly familiar. But the patient has an un doubted understanding of her transference fantasy. She know that I appear to her as a semi-divine father-lover, and she can, a least intellectually, distinguish this from my factual reality Therefore the dreams are obviously reiterating the consciou: standpoint minus the conscious criticism, which they completel; ignore. They reiterate the conscious contents, not in toto) bu insist on the fantastic standpoint as opposed to "sound commor sense." I naturally asked myself what was the source of this obstinaq and what was its purpose? That it must have some purposivt meaning I was convinced, for there is no truly living thing thal does not have a final meaning, that can. in other words be ex plained as a mere left-over from antecedent facts. But the energ) of the transference is so strong that it gives one the impression 01 a vital instinct. That being so, what is the purpose of such fanta sies? A careful examination and analysis of the dreams, espe cially of the one just quoted, revealed a very marked tendencyin contrast to conscious criticism, which always seeks to reduct things to human proportions-to endow the person of the doctOl with superhuman attributes. He had to be gigantic, primordial, huger than the father, like the wind that sweeps over the earthwas he then to be made into a god? Or, I said to myself, was it rather the case that the unconscious was trying to create a god out of the person of the doctor, as it were to free a vision of God from the veils of the personal, so that the transference to the person of the doctor was no more than a misunderstanding on the part of the conscious mind, a stupid trick played by "sound common sense"? Was the urge of the unconscious perhaps only apparently reaching out towards the person, but in a deeper sense towards a god? Could the longing for a god be a passion welling up from our darkest, instinctual nature, a passion unswayed by any outside influences, deeper and stronger perhaps than the love for a human person? Or was it perhaps the highest and truest meaning of that inappropriate love we call "transference," a little bit of real Gottesminne) that has been lost to consciousness ever since the fifteenth century? No one will doubt the reality of a passionate longing for a human person; but that a fragment of religious psychology, an 133


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

216

historical anachronism, indeed something of a medieval curiosity-we are reminded of Mechtild of Magdeburg-should come to light as an immediate living reality in the middle of the consultingnroom, and be expressed in the prosaic figure of the doctor, seems almost too fantastic to be taken seriously. A genuinely scientific attitude must be unprejudiced. The sole criterion for the validity of an hypothesis is whether or not it possesses an heuristic-i.e., explanatory-value. The question now is, can we regard the possibilities set forth above as a valid hypothesis? There is no a priori reason why it should not be just as possible that the unconscious tendencies have a goal beyond the human person, as that the unconscious can "do nothing but wish." Experience alone can decide which is the more suitable hypothesis. This new hypothesis was not entirely plausible to my very critical patient. The earlier view that I was the father-lover, and as such presented an ideal solution of the conflict, was incomparably more attractive to her way of feeling. Nevertheless her intellect was sufficiently keen to appreciate the theoretical possibility of the new hypothesis. Meanwhile the dreams continued to disintegrate the person of the doctor and swell him to ever vaster proportions. Concurrently with this there now occurred something which at first I alone perceived, and with the utmost astonishment, namely a kind of subterranean undermining of the transference. Her relations with a certain friend deepened perceptibly, notwithstanding the fact that consciously she still clung to the transference. So that when the time came for leaving me, it was no catastrophe, but a perfectly reasonable parting. I had the privilege of being the only witness during the process of severance. I saw how the transpersonal control-point developed-I cannot call it anything else-a guiding function and step by step gathered to itself all the former personal over-valuations; how, with this afHux of energy, it gained influence over the resisting conscious mind without the patient's consciously noticing what was happening. From this I realized that the dreams were not just fantasies, but self-representations of unconscious developments which allowed the psyche of the patient gradually to grow out of the pointless personal tie'! This change took place, as I showed, through the unconscious development of a transpersonal control-point; a virtual 1 CL the "transcendent function" in Psychological Types, DeL 51, "Symbol."

217

134


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

218

goal, as it were, that expressed itself symbolically in a forn which can only be described as a vision of God. The dream swelled the human person of the doctor to superhuman propOl tions, making him a gigantic primordial father who is at th same time the wind, and in whose protecting arms the dreame rests like an infant. If we try to make the patient's conscious, anI traditionally Christian, idea of God responsible for the divin, image in the dreams, we would still have to lay stress on th distortion. In religious matters the patient had a critical and ag nos tic attitude, and her idea of a possible deity had long sino passed into the realm of the inconceivable, i.e., had dwindle( into a complete abstraction. In contrast to this, the god-image 0 the dreams corresponded to the archaic conception of a nature daemon, something like Wo tan. 8~os TO 7rVfV/.LfL, 'God is spirit, is here translated back into its original form where 7rv~vfJ.a mean 'wind': God is the wind, stronger and mightier than man, an in visible breath-spirit. As in Hebrew ruah) so in Arabic ruh mean breath and spirit.2 Out of the purely personal form the dream develop an archaic god-image that is infinitely far from the con scious idea of God. It might be objected that this is simply ar infantile image, a childhood memory. I would have no quarre with this assumption if we were dealing with an old man sittini on a golden throne in heaven. But there is no trace of any senti mentality of that kind; instead, we have a primordial idea tha can correspond only to an archaic mentality. These primordial ideas, of which I have given a great man: examples in my Symbols of Transformation) oblige one to make in regard to unconscious material, a distinction of quite a differ ent character from that between "preconscious" and "uncon scious" or "subconscious" and "unconscious." The justificatior for these distinctions need not be discussed here. They hav( their specific value and are worth elaborating further as point: of view. The fundamental distinction which experience ha: forced upon me claims to be no more than that. It should b( evident from the foregoing that we have to distinguish in th( unconscious a layer which we may call the personal unconscious The materials contained in this layer are of a personal nature ir so far as they have the character partly of acquisitions derivec 2

For a fuller elaboration of this theme see Symbols of Transformation, index s.V. "wind."

135


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

from the individual's life and partly of psychological factors which could just as well be conscious. It can readily be understood that incompatible psychological elements are liable to repression and therefore become unconscious. But on the other hand this implies the possibility of making and keeping the repressed contents conscious once they have been recognized. We recognize them as personal contents because their effects, or their partial manifestation, or their source can be discovered in our personal past. They are the integral components of the personality, they belong to its inventory, and their loss to consciousness produces an inferiority in one respect or another-an inferiority, moreover, that has the psychological character not so much of an organic lesion or an inborn defect as of a lack which gives rise to a feeling of moral resentment. The sense of moral inferiority always indicates that the missing element is something which, to judge by this feeling about it, really ought not be missing, or which could be made conscious if only one took sufficient trouble. The moral inferiority does not come from a collision with the generally accepted and, in a sense, arbitrary moral law, but from the conflict with one's own self which, for reasons of psychic equilibrium, demands that the deficit be redressed. Whenever a sense of moral inferiority appears, it indicates not only a need to assimilate an unconscious component, but also the possibility of such assimilation. In the last resort it is a man's moral qualities .which force him, either through direct recognition of the need or indirectly through a painful neurosis, to assimilate his unconscious self and to keep himself fully conscious. Whoever progresses along this road of self-realization must inevitably bring into consciousness the contents of the personal unconscious, thus enlarging the scope of his personality. I should add at once that this enlargement has to do primarily with one's moral consciousness, one's knowledge of oneself, for the unconscious contents that are released and brought into consciousness by analysis are usually unpleasant-which is precisely why these wishes, memories, tendencies, plans, ete. were repressed. These are the contents that are brought to light in much the same way by a thorough confession, though to a much more limited extent. The rest comes out as a rule in dream analysis. It is often very interesting to watch how the dreams fetch up the essential points, bit by bit and with the nicest choice. 136


THE PERSONAL AND THE COLLECTIVE UNCONSCIOUS

219

The total material that is added to consciousness causes a consic erable widening of the horizon, a deepened self-knowledg which, more than anything else, one would think, is calculated t humanize a man and make him modest. But even self-know edge, assumed by all wise men to be the best and most effie< cious, has different effects on different characters. We make ver remarkable discoveries in this respect in practical analysis, but shall deal with this question in the next chapter. As my example of the archaic idea of God shows, the uncon scious seems to contain other things besides personal acquisi tions and belongings. My patient was quite unconscious of th derivation of "spirit" from "wind," or of the parallelism bt tween the two. This content was not the product of her think ing, nor had she ever been taught it. The critical passage in th New Testament was inaccessible to her-TO 7rllEVJ1.a 7rllEl 07rOV t~â‚ŹAE -since she knew no Greek. If we must take it as a wholly peI sonal acquisition, it might be a case of so-called cryptomnesia, the unconscious recollection of a thought which the dreame had once read somewhere. I have nothing against such a possi bility in this particular case; but I have seen a sufficient numbe: of other cases-many of them are to be found in the book men tioned above-where cryptomnesia can be excluded with cer tainty. Even if it were a case of cryptomnesia, which seems to me very improbable, we should still have to explain what the pre disposition was that caused just this image to be retained an< later, as Semon puts it, "ecphorated" (f.X:CPOPElll, Latin efJerre) 'te produce'). In any case, cryptomnesia or no cryptomnesia, WI are dealing with a genuine and thoroughly primitive god-imagl that grew up in the unconscious of a civilized person and pro duced a living effect-an effect which might well give the psy chologist of religion food for reflection. There is nothing abou this image that could be called personal: it is a wholly collectivl image, the ethnic origin of which has long been known to us Here is an historical image of world-wide distribution that ha: come into existence again through a natural psychic function This is not so very surprising, since my patient was born into tht CL Flournoy, Des Indes a la planete Mars: Etude sur un cas de somnambulism, avec glossolalie (trans. by D. B. Vermilye as From India to the Planet Mars) and Jung,

3

"Psychology and Pathology of So-called Occult Phenomena," pars 138ff.

137


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

220

world with a human brain which presumably still functions today much as it did of old. We are dealing with a reactivated archetype, as I have elsewhere called these primordial images.4 These ancient images are restored to life by the primitive, analogical mode of thinking peculiar to dreams. It is not a question of inherited ideas, but of inherited thought-patterns.5 In view of these facts we must assume that the unconscious contains not only personal, but also impersonal collective components in the form of inherited categoriesG or archetypes. I have therefore advanced the hypothesis that at its deeper levels the unconscious possesses collective contents in a relatively active state. That is why I speak of a collective unconscious. 4 ct Psychological T)'pes, DeL 26. 5

Consequently, the accusation of "fanciful mysticism" levelled at my ideas is

lacking in foundation. 6 Hubert and Mauss, Melanges d'histoire des j'eligions, p. xxix.

138


II PHENOMENA RESULTING FROM THE ASSIMILATION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS The process of assimilating the unconscious leads to son very remarkable phenomena. It produces in some patients :: unmistakable and often unpleasant increase of self-confiden. and conceit: they are full of themselves, they know every thin they imagine themselves to be fully informed of everything CO] cerning their unconscious, and are persuaded that they unde stand perfectly everything that comes out of it. At eve] interview with the doctor they get more and more above then selves. Others on the contrary feel themselves more and mOl crushed under the contents of the unconscious, they lose the self-confidence and abandon themselves with dull resignation 1 all the extraordinary things that the unconscious produces. Tt former, overflow;ng with feelings of their own importance, a sume a responsibil i ty for the unconscious that goes much too fa beyond all reasonable bounds; the others finally give up all sew of responsibility, overcome by a sense of the powerlessness of tIego against the fate working through the unconscious. If we analyse these two modes of reaction more deeply, " find that the optimistic self-confidence of the first conceals a prc found sense of 222 impotence, for which their conscious optimisl acts as an unsuccessful compensation; while the pessimistic re ignation of the others masks a defiant will to power, far surpas ing in cocksureness the conscious optimism of the first type. 223 With these two modes of reaction I have sketched only tw crude extremes. A finer shading would have been truer to rea ity. As I have said elsewhere, every analysand starts by uncor sciously misusing his newly won knowledge in the interests ( his abnormal, neurotic attitude, unless he is sufficiently free from his symptoms in the early stages to be able to dispense wit further treatment altogether. A very important contributor 139

221


~nL I\..LLl"\.~~V l'l" DLl VVLL1"1l 1nL L\.7V .f'\.1"1l1.J ~n.c.. Ul"ll\""Vl'l.)'-'IVU.)

224

factor is that in the early stages everything is still understood on the objective level, i.e., without distinction between imago and object, so that everything is referred directly to the object. Hence the man for whom "other people" are the objects of prime importance will conclude from any self-knowledge he may have imbibed at this stage of the analysis: "Aha! so that is what other people are like!" He will therefore feel it his duty, according to his nature, tolerant or otherwise, to enlighten the world. But the other man, who feels himself to be more the object of his fellows than their subject, will be weighed down by this self-knowledge and become correspondingly depressed. (I am naturally leaving out of account those numerous and more superficial natures who experience these problems only by the way.) In both cases the relation to the object is reinforced-in the first case in an active, in the second case in a reactive sense. The collective element is markedly accentuated. The one extends the sphere of his action, the other the sphere of his suffering. Adler has employed the term "godlikeness" to characterize certain basic features of neurotic power psychology. If I likewise borrow the same term from Faust) I use it here more in the sense of that well-known passage where Mephisto writes "Eritis sicut Deus, scientes bonum et malum" in the student's album, and makes the following aside: Just follow the old advice And my cousin the snake. There'll come a time when your godlikeness Will make you quiver and quake.! The godlikeness evidently refers to knowledge, the knowledge of good and evil. The analysis and conscious realization of unconscious contents engender a certain superior tolerance, thanks to which even relatively indigestible portions of one's unconscious characterology can be accepted. This tolerance may look very wise and superior, but often it is no more than a grand gesture that brings all sorts of consequences in its train. Two spheres have been brought together which before were kept anxiously apart. After considerable resistances have been overcome, the union of opposites is successfully achieved, at least to 1 Faust,

Part I, 3rd scene in Faust's study. 14

0


Itl-" i\.;:';:'UVllLAllUN U1' ItlE UNL;UNSL;lUUS

225

all appearances. The deeper understanding thus gained, t] juxtaposition of what was before separated, and hence the a parent overcoming of the moral conflict, give rise to a feeling superiority that may well be expressed by the term "godli1 ness." But this same juxtaposition of good and evil can have very different effect on a different kind of temperament. N everyone will feel himself a superman, holding in his hands t] scales of good and evil. It may also seem as though he were helpless object caught between hammer and anvil; not in t] least a Hercules at the parting of the ways, but rather a rudd( less ship buffeted between Scylla and Charybdis. For witho knowing it, he is caught up in perhaps the greatest and me ancient of human conflicts, experiencing the throes of etern principles in collision. Well might he feel himself like a Prom theus chained to the Caucasus, or as one crucified. This wou be a "godlikeness" in suffering. Godlikeness is certainly not a se entific concept, although it aptly characterizes the psychologic state in question. Nor do I imagine that every reader will imm diately grasp the peculiar state of mind implied by "godlik ness." The term belongs too exclusively to the sphere of belli lettres .. So I should probably be better advised to give a mo circumspect description of this state. The insight and und( standing, then, gained by the analysand usually reveal much him that was before unconscious. He naturally applies tu knowledge to his environment; in consequence he sees, or thin he sees, many things that before were invisible. Since his kno"\-l edge was helpful to him, he readily assumes that it would 1 useful also to others. In this way he is liable to become arrogan it may be well meant, but it is nonetheless annoying to oth people. He feels as though he possesses a key that opens man perhaps even all, doors. Psychoanalysis itself has this same blar unconsciousness of its limitations, as can clearly be seen from tl way it meddles with works of art. Since human nature is not compounded wholly of light, bl also abounds in shadows, the insight gained in practical analy~ is often somewhat painful, the more so if, as is generally the cas one has previously neglected the other side. Hence there a people who take their newly won insight very much to heart, f; too much in fact, quite forgetting that they are not unique J having a shadow-side. They allow themselves to get unduly d 141


THE RELATIONS

226

227

BETWEEN TH1<. 1<.LTU Al'lV 1H1<. Uj'l'-'Vl'l~LdVU"

pressed and are then inclined to doubt everything, finding nothing right anywhere. That is why many excellent analysts with very good ideas can never bring themselves to publish them, because the psychic problem, as they see it, is so overwhelmingly vast that it seems to them almost impossible to tackle it scientifically. One man's optimism makes him overweening, while another's pessimism makes him over-anxious and despondent. Such are the forms which the great conflict takes when reduced to a smaller scale. But even in these lesser proportions the essence of the conflict is easily recognized: the arrogance of the one and the despondency of the other share a common uncertainty as to their boundaries. The one is excessively expanded, the other excessively contracted. Their individual boundaries are in some way obliterated. If we now consider the fact that, as a result of psychic compensation, great humility stands very close to pride, and that "pride goeth before a fall," we can easily discover behind the haughtiness certain traits of an anxious sense of inferiority. In fact we shall see clearly how his uncertainty forces the enthusiast to puff up his truths, of which he feels none too sure, and to win proselytes to his side in order that his followers may prove to himself the value and trustworthiness of his own convictions. Nor is he altogether so happy in his fund of knowledge as to be able to hold out alone; at bottom he feels isolated by it, and the secret fear of being left alone with it induces him to trot out his opinions and interpretations in and out of season, because only when convincing someone else does he feel safe from gnawing doubts. It is just the reverse with our despondent friend. The more he withdraws and hides himself, the greater becomes his secret need to be understood and recognized. Although he speaks of his inferiority he does not really believe it. There arises within him a defiant conviction of his unrecognized merits, and in consequence he is sensitive to the slightest disapprobation, always wearing the stricken air of one who is misunderstood and deprived of his rightful due. In this way he nurses a morbid pride and an insolent discontent-which is the very last thing he wants and for which his environment has to pay all the more dearly. Both are at once too small and too big; their individual mean, never very secure, now becomes shakier than ever. It 142


11""1-" AI>::>UVllLA11Ul'l Ui' 1H1<. UNCUNM.;1UU:S

228

sounds almost grotesque to describe such a state as "godlike But since each in his way steps beyond his human proportior both of them are a little "superhuman" and therefore, figm tively speaking, godlike. If we wish to avoid the use of this mel phor, I would suggest that we speak instead of "psychic int tion." The term seems to me appropriate in so far as the state, are discussing involves an extension of the personality beyoI individual limits, in other words, a state of being puffed up. such a state a man fills a space which normally he cannot fill. lcan only fill it by appropriating to himself contents and qua ties which properly exist for themselves alone and should the] fore remain outside our bounds. What lies outside ourselves t longs either to someone else, or to everyone, or to no one. Sin psychic inflation is by no means a phenomenon induced excl sively by analysis, but occurs just as often in ordinary life, , can investigate it equally well in other cases. A very comm< instance is the humourless way in which many men identi themselves with their business or their titles. The office I hold certainly my special activity; but it is also a collective factor th has come into existence historically through the cooperation many people and whose dignity rests solely on collective a proval. When, therefore, I identify myself with my office or tit] I behave as though I myself were the whole complex of soci factors of which that office consists, or as though I were not on the bearer of the office, but also and at the same time the a pr oval of society. I have made an extraordinary extension of ill self and have usurped qualities which are not in me but outsi( me. L' etat c' est moi is the motto for such people. In the case of inflation through knowledge we are deali] with something similar in principle, though psychological more subtle. Here it is not the dignity of an office that causes tJ inflation, but very significant fantasies. I will explain what mean by a practical example, choosing a mental case whom happened to know personally and who is also mentioned in publication by Maeder.2 The case is characterized by a high d gree of inflation. (In mental cases we can observe all the pb nomena that are present only fleetingly in normal people, in 2

Maeder, "Psychologische Untersuchungen an Dementia-Praecox-Kranken" ('9' pp.

209ft'.

143


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THt: t:l70 AND THt: UNGONM.;IOUS

229

cruder and enlarged form.) 3 The patient suffered from paranoid dementia with megalomania. He was in telephonic communication with the Mother of God and other great ones. In human reality he was a wretched locksmith's apprentice who at the age of nineteen had become incurably insane. He had never been blessed with intelligence, but he had, among other things, hit upon the magnificent idea that the world was his picturebook, the pages of which he could turn at will. The proof was quite simple: he had only to turn round, and there was a new page for him to see. This is Schopenhauer's "world as will and idea" in unadorned, primitive concreteness of vision. A shattering idea indeed, born of extreme alienation and seclusion from the world, but so naively and simply expressed that at first one can only smile at the grotesqueness of it. And yet this primitive way of looking lies at the very heart of Schopenhauer's brilliant vision of the world. Only a genius or a madman could so disentangle himself from the bonds of reality as to see the world as his picture-book. Did the patient actually work out or build up such a vision, or did it just befall him? Or did he perhaps fall into it? His pathological disintegration and inflation point rather to the latter. It is no longer he that thinks and speaks, but it thinks and speaks within him: he hears voices. So the difference between him an1 Schopenhauer is that, in him, the vision remained at the stage of a mere spontaneous growth, while Schopenhauer abstracted it and expressed it in language of universal validity. In so doing he raised it out of its subterranean beginnings into the clear light of collective consciousness. But it would be quite wrong to suppose that the patient's vision had a purely personal character or value, as though it were something that belonged to him. If that were so, he would be a philosopher. A man is a philosopher of genius only when he succeeds in transmuting the primitive and merely natural vision into an abstract idea beg When 1 was still a doctor at the psychiatric clinic in Zurich, 1 once took an intelligent

layman through the sick路wards. He had never seen a lunatic asylum from the inside before. When we had finished our round, he exclaimed, "I tell you, it's just like Zurich in miniature' A quintessence of the population. It is as though all the types one meets every day on the streets had been assembled here in their classical purity. Nothing but oddities and picked specimens from top to bottom of society'" 1 had never looked at it from this angle before, but my p-iend was not far wrong.

144


THE ASSIMILATION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

230

231

longing to the common stock of consciousness. This achie1 ment, and this alone, constitutes his personal value, for which may take credit without necessarily succumbing to inflation. B the sick man's vision is an impersonal value, a natural grow against which he is powerless to defend himself, by which he actually swallowed up and "wafted" clean out of the world. F from his mastering the idea and expanding it into a philosopl cal view of the world, it is truer to say that the undoubted gra deur of his vision blew him up to pathological proportions. T personal value lies entirely in the philosophical achievemel not in the primary vision. To the philosopher as well this visi( comes as so much increment, and is simply a part of the comm( property of mankind, in which, in principle, everyone has share. The golden apples drop from the same tree, wheth they be gathered by an imbecile locksmith's apprentice or by Schopenhauer. There is, however, yet another thing to be learnt from tl example, namely that these transpersonal contents are not jl inert or dead matter that can be annexed at will. Rather th are living entities which exert an attractive force upon the co scious mind. Identification with one's office or one's title is ve attractive indeed, which is precisely why so many men are not ing more than the decorum accorded to them by society. In va would one look for a personality behind the husk. Undernea all the padding one would find a very pitiable little creatm That is why the office-or whatever this outer husk may be-is attractive: it offers easy compensation for personal deficienci( Outer attractions, such as offices, titles, and other social reg lia are not the only things that cause inflation. These are simp impersonal quantities that lie outside in society, in the collecti' consciousness. But just as there is a society outside the indivi ual, so there is a collective psyche outside the personal psycll namely the collective unconscious, concealing, as the above e ample shows, elements that are no whit less attractive. And ju as a man may suddenly step into the world on his profession dignity ("Messieurs, a present je suis Roy"), so another ID; disappear out of it equally suddenly when it is his lot to beho one of those mighty images that put a new face upon the worl These are the magical representations collectives which undt lie the slo?an, the catchword, and, on a higher level, the la 145


23 2

233

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS guage of the poet and mystic. I am reminded of another mental case who was neither a poet nor anything very outstanding, just a naturally quiet and rather sentimental youth. He had fallen in love with a girl and, as so often happens, had failed to ascertain whether his love was requited. His primitive participation mystique took it for granted that his agitations were plainly the agitations of the other, which on the lower levels of human psychology is naturally very often the case. Thus he built up a sentimental love-fantasy which precipitately collapsed when he discovered that the girl would have none of him. He was so desperate that he went straight to the river to drown himself. It was late at night, and the stars gleamed up at him from the dark water. It seemed to him that the stars were swimming two by two down the river, and a wonderful feeling came over him. He forgot his suicidal intentions and gazed fascinated at the strange, sweet drama. And gradually he became aware that every star was a face, and that all these pairs were lovers, who were carried along locked in a dreaming embrace. An entirely new understanding came to him: all had changed-his fate, his disappointment, even his love, receded and fell away. The memory of the girl grew路 distant, blurred; but instead, he felt with complete certainty that untold riches were promised him. He knew that an immense treasure lay hidden for him in the neighbouring observatory. The result was that he was arrested by the police at four o'clock in the morning, attempting to break into the observatory. What had happened? His poor head had glimpsed a Dantesque vision, whose loveliness he could never have grasped had he read it in a poem. But he saw it, and it transformed him. What had hurt him most was now far away; a new and undreamed-of world of stars, tracing their silent courses far beyond this grievous earth, had opened out to him the moment he crossed "Proserpine's threshold." The intuition of untold wealth-and could any fail to be touched by this thought?-came to him like a revelation. For his poor turnip-head it was too much. He did not drown in the river, but in an eternal image, and its beauty perished with him. Just as one man may disappear in his social role, so another may be engulfed in an inner vision and be lost to his surroundings. Many fathomless transformations of personality, like sud路 146


THE ASSIMILATION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

234

235

den conversions and other far-reaching changes of mind, orig nate in the attractive power of a collective image,4 which, as tt present example shows, can cause such a high degree of inflatio that the entire personality is disintegrated. This disintegratio is a mental disease, of a transitory or a permanent nature, "splitting of the mind" or "schizophrenia," in Bleuler's term The pathological inflation naturally depends on some innal weakness of the personality against the autonomy of collecti, unconscious contents. We shall probably get nearest to the truth if we think of tb conscious and personal psyche as resting upon the broad basis ( an inherited and universal psychic disposition which is as suc unconscious, and that our personal psyche bears the same rd tion to the collective psyche as the individual to society. But equally, just as the individual is not merely a uniqu and separate being, but is also a social being, so the huma psyche is not a self-contained and wholly individual phenoilll non, but also a collective one. And just as certain soci; functions or instincts are opposed to the interests of single ind viduals, so the human psyche exhibits certain functions or teI dencies which, on account of their collective nature, are oppose to individual needs. The reason for this is that every man is bor with a highly differentiated brain and is thus assured of a wid range of mental functioning which is neither developed ontogl netically nor acquired. But, to the degree that human brains a1 uniformly differentiated, the mental functioning thereby mad possible is also collective and universal. This explains, for eJ ample, the interesting fact that the unconscious processes of th most widely separated peoples and races show a quite remarkabl correspondence, which displays itself, among other things, i the extraordinary but well-authenticated analogies between th forms and motifs of autochthonous myths. The universal sim larity of human brains leads to the universal possibility of uniform mental functioning. This functioning is the collectiv psyche. Inasmuch as there are differentiations corresponding t race, tribe, and even family, there is also a collective psyche lill 4 CL Psychological Types, Def. 26, "Image." Leon Daudet, in L'Heredo, calls th process "autofecondation interieure," by which he means the reawakening of a ancestral soul. 5 Bleuler, Dementia Praecox Or the Group ot Schizophrenias (orig. 1911).

147


236

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS ited to race, tribe, and family over and above the "universal" collective psyche. To borrow an expression from Pierre Janet,6 the collective psyche comprises the parties intirieures of the psychic functions, that is to say those deep-rooted, well-nigh automatic portions of the individual psyche which are inherited and are to be found everywhere, and are thus impersonal or suprapersonal. Consciousness plus the personal unconscious constitutes the parties supirieures of the psychic functions, those portions, therefore, that are developed ontogenetically and acquired. Consequently, the individual who annexes the unconscious heritage of the collective psyche to what has accrued to him in the course of his ontogenetic development, as though it were part of the latter, enlarges the scope of his personality in an illegitimate way and suffers the consequences. In so far as the collective psyche comprises the parties intirieures of the psychic functions and thus forms the basis of every personality, it has the effect of crushing and devaluing the personality. This shows itself either in the aforementioned stifling of self-confidence or else in an unconscious heightening of the ego's importance to the point of a pathological will to power. By raising the personal unconscious to consciousness, the analysis makes the subject aware of things which he is generally aware of in others, but never in himself. This discovery makes him therefore less individually unique, and more collective. His collectiviZation is not always a step to the bad; it may sometimes be a step to the good. There are people who repress their good qualities and consciously give free rein to their infantile desires. The lifting of personal repressions at first brings purely personal contents into consciousness; but attached to them are the collective elements of the unconscious, the ever-present instincts, qualities, and ideas (images) as well as all those "statistical" quotas of average virtue and average vice which we recognize when we say, "Everyone has in him something of the criminal, the genius, and the saint." Thus a living picture emerges, containing pretty well everything that moves upon the checkerboard of the world, the good and the bad, the fair and the foul. A sense of solidarity with the world is gradually built up, which is felt by many natures as something very positive and in certain cases actually is the deciding factor in the treatment of neurosis. 6 Les Nevroses (1898). 148


Itl~ A~~lMILAnUN U.I" Ttl~ UNCUNSCIOUS

I have myself seen cases who, in this condition, managed for th first time in their lives to arouse love, and even to experience j themselves; or, by daring to leap into the unknown, they ge involved in the very fate for which they were suited. I have see: not a few who, taking this condition as final, remained for yeal in a state of enterprising euphoria. I have often heard such case referred to as shining examples of analytical therapy. But I mm point out that cases of this euphoric and enterprising type are s utterly lacking in differentiation from the world that nob od could pass them as fundamentally cured. To my way of thinkin they are as much cured as not cured. I have had occasion to fo low up the lives of such patients, and it must be owned tha many of them showed symptoms of maladjustment, which, i persisted in, gradually leads to the sterility and monotony s characteristic of those who have divested themselves of thei egos. Here too I am speaking of the border-line cases, and not c the less valuable, normal, average folk for whom the question c adaptation is more technical than problematical. If I were mor of a therapist than an investigator, I would naturally be unabl to check a certain optimism of judgment, because my eyes woul, then be glued to the number of cures. But my conscience as al investigator is concerned not with quantity but with qualit) Nature is aristocratic, and one person of value outweighs tel lesser ones. My eye followed the valuable people, and from ther I learned the dubiousness of the results of a purely persona analysis, and also to understand the reasons for this dubiousnes: 237 If, through assimilation of the unconscious, we make th mistake of including the collective psyche in the inventory c personal psychic functions, a dissolution of the personality int, its paired opposites inevitably follows. Besides the pair of oppc sites already discussed, megalomania and the sense of inferioriq which are so painfully evident in neurosis, there are man others, from which I will single out only the specifically mor" pair of opposites, namely good and evil. The specific virtues an, vices of humanity are contained in the collective psyche lik everything else. One man arrogates collective virtue to himsel as his personal merit, another takes collective vice as his persona guilt. Both are as illusory as the megalomania and the inferim ity, because the imaginary virtues and the imaginary wickec nesses are simply the moral pair of opposites contained in th 149


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

collective psyche, which have become perceptible or have been rendered conscious artificially. How much these paired opposites are contained in the collective psyche is exemplified by primitives: one observer will extol the greatest virtues in them, while another will record the very worst impressions of the selfsame tribe. For the primitive, whose personal differentiation is, as we know, only just beginning, both judgments are true, because his psyche is essentially collective and therefore for the most part unconscious. He is still more or less identical with the collective psyche, and for that reason shares equally in the collective virtues and vices, without any personal attribution and without inner contradiction. The contradiction arises only when the personal development of the psyche begins, and when reason discovers the irreconcilable nature of the opposites. The consequence of this discovery is the conflict of repression. We want to be good, and therefore must repress evil; and with that the paradise of the collective psyche comes to an end. Repression of the collective psyche was absolutely necessary for the development of personality. In primitives, development of personality, or more accurately, development of the person, is a question of magical prestige. The figure of the medicine-man or chief leads the way: both make themselves conspicuous by the singularity of their oniaments and their mode of life, expressive of their social roles. The singularity of his outward tokens marks the individual off from the rest, and the segregation is still further enhanced by the possession of special ritual secrets. By these and similar means the primitive creates around him a shell, which might be called a persona (mask). Masks, as we know, are actually used among primitives in totem ceremonies-for instance, as a means of enhancing or changing the personality. In this way the outstanding individual is apparently removed from the sphere of the collective psyche, and to the degree that he succeeds in identifying himself with his persona, he actually is removed. This removal means magical prestige. One could easily assert that the impelling motive in this development is the will to power. But that would be to forget that the building up of prestige is always a product of collective compromise: not only must there be one who wants prestige, there must also be a public seeking somebody on whom to confer prestige. That being so, it would be incorrect to say that a man creates prestige for him15째


THE ASSIMILATION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

238

239

self out of his individual will to power; it is on the contrary an entirely collective af fair. Since s ociety as a w hole n eeds t he m agically effective figure, it uses this need of the will to power in the individual, and the will to submit in the mass, as a vehicle, and thus brings about the creation of personal prestige. The latter is a phenomenon which, as the history of political institutions shows, is of the utmost importance for the comity of nations. The importance of personal prestige can hardly be overestimated, be cause the p ossibility of r egressive d issolution in the collective p syche i s a very r eal danger, n ot only f or the out standing individual but also for his followers. This possibility is most likely to occur w hen t he goa l of pr estige-universal r ecognition -has be en reached. The person then becomes a collective truth, and that is always the beginning of the end. To gain prestige is a positive achievement not only for the outstanding individual but also for the clan. The individual distinguishes himself by his deeds, the many by their renunciation of power. S o long a s t his a ttitude needs t o be f ought f or and de fended against hostile i nfluences, t he ach ievement r emains p ositive; b ut as soon as there are no more obstacles and universal recognition has been attained, prestige loses its positive value and usually becomes a dead letter. A s chismatic m ovement then sets i n, a nd t he whole pr ocess begins again from the beginning. Because personality is of such paramount importance for the life of the community, everything likely to disturb its development is sensed a s a da nger. But the greatest danger of a ll is t he pr emature dissolution of prestige by a n i nvasion of t he c ollective p syche. Absolute s ecrecy i s one of the best known pr imitive m eans of exorcising this danger. Collective thinking an~ feeling and collective effort a re f ar l ess of a strain t han individual f unctioning a nd e ffort; hence there is always a great temptation to allow collective functioning to take the place of individual differentiation of the personality. Once the p ersonality h as been d ifferentiated a nd safeguarded by m agical prestige, its levelling down and eventual dissolution in the c ollective psyche (e.g., Peter's denial) occasion a "loss of soul" in the individual, because an important personal achievement has been either neglected or allowed to slip into regression. For this reason taboo infringements are followed by Draconian punishments altogether in keeping with the seriousness of the situation. So long as we re151


240

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS gard these things from the causal point of view, as mere historical survivals and metastases of the incest taboo,1 it is impossible to understand what all these measures are for. If, however, we approach the problem from the teleological point of view, much that was quite inexplicable becomes clear. For the development of personality, then, strict differentiation from the collective psyche is absolutely necessary, since partial or blurred differentiation leads to an immediate melting away of the individual in the collective. There is now a danger that in the analysis of the unconscious the collective and the personal psyche may be fused together, with, as I have intimated, highly unfortunate results. These results are injurious both to the patient's life-feeling and to his fellow men, if he has any influence at all on his environment. Through his identification with the collective psyche he will infallibly try to force the demands of his unconscious upon others, for identity with the collective psyche always brings with it a feeling of universal validity-"godlikeness"-which completely ignores all differences in the personal psyche of his fellows. (The feeling of universal validity comes, of course, from the universality of the collective psyche.) A collective attitude naturally presupposes this same collective psyche in others. But that means a ruthless disregard not only of individual differences but also of differences of a more general kind within the collective psyche itself, as for example differences of race.s This disregard for individuality obviously means the suffocation of the single individual, as a consequence of which the element of differentiation is obliterated from the community. The element of differentiation is the individual. All the highest achievements of virtue, as well as the Freud, Totem and Taboo. Thus it is a quite unpardonable mistake to accept the conclusions of a Jewish psychology a s ge nerally va lid. N obody would dr eam of t aking C hinese o r I ndian psychology as binding upon ourselves. The cheap accusation of anti-Semitism that has been levelled a t m e on the ground of t his criticism is a bout as intelligent a s a ccusing m e of a n anti-Chinese pr ejudice. N o doubt , on a n e arlier a nd de eper l evel of ps ychic de velopment, where it is still impossible to distinguish between an Aryan, Semitic, Hamitic, or Mongolian mentality, a ll hum an r aces ha ve a c ommon c ollective ps yche. B ut w ith the be ginning o f racial differentiation essential differences are developed in the collective psyche as well. For this reason we cannot transplant the spirit of a foreign race in globo into our own mentality without sensible injury to the latter, a fact which does not, however, deter sundry natures of feeble instinct from affecting Indian philosophy and the like.

7

S

152


THE ASSIMILATION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

blackest villainies, are individual. The larger a community is, and the more t he sum t otal of c ollective f actors pe culiar t o ev ery l arge community r ests o n c onservative pr ejudices de trimental t o individuality, the m ore w ill the individual be m orally a nd spiritually crushed, and, as a result, the one source of moral and spiritual progress for society i s c hoked u p. N aturally t he only t hing t hat can thrive i n such a n a tmosphere i s sociality a nd whatever is c ollective i n t he individual. Everything individual in him goes under, i.e., is doomed to repression. The individual elements lapse into the unconscious, where, by t he law of necessity, t hey a re t ransformed i nto something essentially b aleful, d estructive, an d an archical. So cially, t his ev il principle shows it self in th e s pectacular crimes-regicide an d t he like-perpetrated b y c ertain pr ophetically-inclined i ndividuals; but in the gr eat m ass of the c ommunity i t r emains in t he ba ckground, a nd only manifests itself indirectly in the inexorable moral degeneration of society. It is a notorious fact that the morality of society as a whole is in inverse ratio to its size; for the greater the aggregation of individuals, the more the individual factors are blotted out, and with them morality, which r ests e ntirely o n the m oral s ense of the i ndividual a nd the freedom n ecessary f or t his. H ence ev ery m an i s, in a certain s ense, unconsciously a worse m an when he i s in s ociety t han w hen a cting alone; f or he is c arried by society a nd t o t hat e xtent r elieved of h is individual r esponsibility. Any l arge c ompany c omposed of w holly admirable pe rsons has the m orality a nd intelligence of a n un wieldy, stupid, a nd violent a nimal. T he bigger t he organization, t he m ore unavoidable i s i ts i mmorality and bl ind s tupidity (Senatus bestia, senatores boni viri). Society, b y a utomatically s tressing a ll t he collective qualities in its individual representatives, puts a premium on mediocrity, on everything that settles down to vegetate in an easy, irresponsible way. Individuality will inevitably be driven to the wall. This process be gins i n s chool, c ontinues a t t he u niversity, a nd r ules a ll departments in which the State has a hand. In a small social body, the individuality of i ts m embers is better safeguarded, and t he gr eater i s their relative freedom and the possibility of conscious r esponsibility. Without f reedom t here c an be n o m orality. Our a dmiration f or great organizations dwindles when once we become aware of the other side of the wonder: the tremendous piling up and accentuation of all that is primitive 153


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

241

in m an, a nd t he una voidable de struction of hi s i ndividuality in t he interests of the monstrosity that every great organization in fact is. The man of t oday, who r esembles m ore or l ess the c ollective id eal, h as made his heart into a den of murderers, as can easily be proved by the analysis of his unconscious, even though he himself is not in the least disturbed by it. A nd i n so f ar a s he i s nor mally " adapted" 9 to h is environment, it is true that the greatest infamy on the part of his group will not disturb him, so long as the majority of his fellows steadfastly believe i n t he exalted m orality of their s ocial organization. N ow, a ll that I have said here about the influence of society upon the individual is identically true of the influence of the collective unconscious upon the individual psyche. But, as is apparent from my examples, the latter influence i s a s in visible a s th e f ormer is v isible. Hence it is not surprising t hat i ts i nner e ffects a re not unde rstood, a nd th at th ose to whom such things happen are called pathological freaks and treated as crazy. If one of them happened to be a real genius, the fact would not be noted until the next generation or the one after. So obvious does it seem t o us t hat a m an s hould dr own in h is ow n di gnity, s o utterly incomprehensible t hat he s hould s eek a nything o ther t han w hat the mob wants, and that he should vanish permanently from view in this other. One could wish both of them a sense of humour, that -according to Schopenhauer-truly "divine" attribute of man which alone befits him to maintain his soul in freedom. The collective instincts and fundamental forms of thinking and f eeling w hose a ctivity i s r evealed b y t he a nalysis of t he un conscious c onstitute, f or t he c onscious personality, a n a cquisition which it c annot a ssimilate w ithout c onsiderable d isturbance. I t is therefore of the utmost importance in practical treatment to keep the integrity of t he personality c onstantly i n m ind. F or, if t he c ollective psyche is taken to be the personal possession of the individual, it will result in a distortion or an overloading of the personality which is very difficult to deal with. Hence it is imperative to make a clear distinction between p ersonal co ntents an d those o f the co llective psyche. This distinction is f ar f rom e asy, be cause the personal gr ows o ut of the collective psyche and is intimately bound up with it. So it is difficult to say exactly what contents are to be called personal and what collective. 9

Cf. "adjustment" and "adaptation" in Psychological Types (1923 edn., p. 419).

154


THE ASSIMILATION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

There is no d oubt, f or instance, that a rchaic symbol isms such a s we frequently find in fantasies and dreams are collective factors. All basic instincts a nd ba sic f orms of t hinking a nd f eeling ar e co llective. Everything that a ll m en a gree in regarding as universal is c ollective, likewise e verything that i s uni versally u nderstood, u niversally f ound, universally said a nd d one. O n c loser e xamination one i s a lways astonished to see how much of our socalled individual psychology is really co llective. So m uch, i ndeed, th at t he in dividual tr aits a re completely overshadowed by i t. Since, however, individuation10 is an ineluctable psychological necessity, we can see from the ascendancy of the collective what very special attention must be paid to this delicate plant "individuality" if it is not to be completely smothered. 242 Human beings have one faculty which, though it is of the greatest utility for collective purposes, is most pernicious for individuation, and that is the faculty of imitation. Collective psychology cannot dispense with imitation, for without it all mass organizations, the State and the social order, are impossible. Society is organized, indeed, less by law than by the propensity to imitation, implying equally suggestibility, suggestion, and mental contagion. But we see every day how people use, or rather abuse, the mechanism of imitation for the purpose of personal differentiation: they are content to ape some eminent personality, some striking characteristic or mode of behaviour, thereby achieving an outward distinction from the circle in which they move. We could almost say that as a punishment for this the uniformity of their minds with those of their neighbours, already real enough, is intensified into an unconscious, compulsive bondage to the environment. As a rule these specious attempts at individual differentiation stiffen into a pose, and the imitator remains at the same level as he always was, only several degrees more sterile than before. To find out what is truly individual in ourselves, profound reflection is needed; and suddenly we realize how uncommonly difficult the discovery of individuality is. 10 Ibid., Dd. 29: " Individuation i s a pr ocess of di fferentiation, ha ving for its goa l t he development of the individual personality."-"Since the iridividual is not only a single entity, but a lso, by hi s ve ry e xistence, pr esupposes a c ollective r elationship, the pr ocess of individuation does not lead to isolation, but to an in tenser and more u niversal collective solidarity."

155


III THE PERSONA AS A SEGMENT OF THE COLLECTIVE PSYCHE 243

In this chapter we come to a problem which, if overlooked, is liable to cause the greatest confusion. It will be remembered that in the analysis of the personal u nconscious t he f irst t hings t o be a dded t o consciousness a re the pe rsonal c ontents, a nd I suggested t hat t hese contents, w hich have been r epressed but a re c apable of be coming conscious, s hould be c alled t he personal unconscious. I a lso showed that to annex the deeper layers of the unconscious, which I have called the collective unconscious) produces an enlargement of the personality leading to t he s tate of inflation. T his s tate is r eached b y s imply continuing t he a nalytical w ork, a s in t he c ase of the y oung woman discussed a bove. B y c ontinuing t he a nalysis we a dd t o t he pe rsonal consciousness c ertain f undamental, general, a nd i mpersonal characteristics o f humanity, t hereby br inging a bout t he i nflation1 I have just deTh'is phe nomenon, w hich r esults f rom t he e xtension of c onsciousness, i s i n no sense specific to analytical treatment. It occurs whenever people are overpowered by knowledge or by some new realization. " Knowledge puf feth up, " P aul w rites t o the C orinthians, f or t he new knowledge had turned the heads of many, as indeed constantly happens. The inflation has nothing to do with the kind of knowledge, but simply and solely with the fact that any new knowledge can so seize hold of a weak head that he no longer sees and hears anything else. He is hypnotized by it, and instantly believes he has solved the riddle of the universe. But that is equivalent to almighty self-conceit. This process is such a general reaction that, in Genesis 2:17, eating of the tree of knowledge is represented as a deadly sin. It may not be immediately apparent why greater consciousness followed by self-conceit should be such a dangerous thing. Genesis represents the act of becoming conscious as a taboo infringement. as though knowledge meant that a sacrosanct barrier had been impiously overstepped. I think that Genesis is right in so far as every step towards greater consciousness is a kind of Promethean guilt: through knowledge, the gods are as it were robbed of their fire, that is, something that w as t he pr operty of the unc onscious pow ers i s t orn out of its na tural c ontext a nd subordinated to the whims of the conscious mind. The 1

156


THE PERSONA AS A SEGMENT OF THE COLLECTIVE PSYCHE

scribed,

which might be regarded as one of the unpleasant consequences of 244

245

becoming fully conscious. From this point of view the conscious personality is a more or less arbitrary segment of the collective psyche. It consists in a sum of psychic f acts t hat ar e f elt to b e personal. T he a ttribute " personal" means: pertaining e xclusively t o t his pa rticular pe rson. A consciousness that is p urely pe rsonal s tresses i ts pr oprietary a nd original r ight to its c ontents w ith a c ertain a nxiety, and i n t his w ay seeks to create a whole. But all those contents that refuse to fit into this whole ar e ei ther o verlooked an d f orgotten o r r epressed an d denied. This is o ne way of e ducating o neself, b ut i t is t oo a rbitrary a nd t oo much of a violation. Far too much of our common humanity has to be sacrificed i n t he interests of a n i deal image i nto w hich one tries t o mould oneself. Hence these purely "personal" people are always very sensitive, f or s omething m ay e asily ha ppen that w ill br ing into consciousness an u nwelcome portion of their r eal ( "individual") character. This arbitrary segment of collective psyche-often fashioned with considerable pains-I have called the persona. The term persona is really a very appropriate expression for this, for originally it meant the mask once w orn b y a ctors to i ndicate the r ole they played. I f w e endeavour t o draw a precise d istinction between what p sychic material should be considered personal, and what impersonal, we soon find ourselves in the greatest di路 lemma, for by definition we have to say of the pe rsona's contents w hat w e ha ve said of t he impersonal unconscious, na mely, that i t is c ollective. I t is only be cause t he persona represents a more or less arbitrary and fortuitous segment of the collective psyche that we can make the mistake of regarding it in toto as something individual. It is, as its name implies, only a mask of the collective psyche, a mask that feigns individuality) making others and o neself believe t hat o ne is i ndividual, whereas one is s imply acting a role through which the collective psyche speaks. man who has usurped the new knowledge suffers, however, a transformation or enlargement of consciousness, which no l onger resembles that of his fellow men. He has raised himself above t he hum an l evel of his a ge ( "ye shall be come like unt o G od"), but in so doi ng has alienated himself from humanity. The pain of this loneliness is the vengeance of the gods, for never again can he return to mankind. He is, as the myth says, chained to the lonely cliffs of the Caucasus, forsaken of God and man.

157


TH::f: RELATiONS nETWEEN TH:E EGO AND Tt-lE UNCONSCIOUS 146

!47

When we analyse the persona we strip off the mask, and discover t hat what s eemed to be in dividual is at bottom c ollective; in other words, t hat t he p ersona w as on ly a m ask of t he c ollective p syche. Fundamentally th e p ersona is nothing real: it is a c ompromise be tween individual a nd s ociety a s t o w hat a man s hould a ppear to b e. H e t akes a name, earns a title, exercises a function, he is this or that. In a certain sense all this is real, y et i n relation to t he e ssential i ndividuality o f t he p erson concerned it is only a secondary reality, a compromise formation, in making which others often have a greater share than he. The persona is a semblance, a two-dimensional reality, to give it a nickname. It would be wrong to leave the matter as it stands without at the same time recognizing that there is, after all, something individual in the peculiar choice and delineation of the persona, and that despite the exclusive identity of the ego-consciousness with the persona the unconscious self, one's real individuality, is always present and makes itself felt indirectly if not directly. Although the ego-consciousness is at first identical with the persona-that compromise role in which we parade before the community-yet the unconscious self can never be repressed to the point of extinction. Its influence is chiefly manifest in the special nature of the contrasting and compensating contents of the unconscious. The purely personal attitude of the conscious mind evokes reactions on the part of the unconscious, and these, together with personal repressions, contain the seeds of individual development in the guise of collective fantasies. Through the analysis of the personal unconscious, the conscious mind becomes suffused with collective material which brings with it the elements of individuality. I am well aware that this conclusion must be almost unintelligible to anyone not familiar with my views and technique, and particularly so to those who habitually regard the unconscious from the standpoint of Freudian theory. But if the reader will recall my example of the philosophy student, he can form a rough idea of what I mean. At the beginning of the treatment the patient was quite unconscious of the fact that her relation to her father was a fixation, and that she was therefore seeking a man like her father, whom she could then meet with her intellect. This in itself would not have been a mistake if her intellect had not had that peculiarly protesting 158


THE PERSONA AS A SEGMENT OF THE COLLECTIVE PSYCHE

248

character such as is unfortunately often encountered in intellectual women. Such an intellect is always tr ying to p oint o ut m istakes i n o thers; it is pre-eminently critical, with a disagreeably personal undertone, yet it always wants to be considered objective. This invariably mak es a man bad-tempered, particularly if, as so often happens, the criticism touches on some weak spot which, in the interests of fruitful discussion, were better avoided. B ut f ar f rom w ishing the d iscussion to b e f ruitful, it is t he unfortunate peculiarity of this feminine intellect to seek out a man's weak spots, fasten on them, and exasperate him. This is not usually a conscious aim, but rather has the unconscious purpose of forcing a man into a superior position and thus making him an object of admiration. The man does not as a rule notice that he is having the role of the hero thrust upon him; he merely finds her t aunts s o od ious t hat i n f uture he w ill g o a long w ay t o a void meeting the lady. In the end the only man who can stand her is the one who gives in at the start, and therefore has nothing wonderful about him. My patient naturally found much to reflect upon in all this, for she had no notion of the game she was playing. Moreover she still had to gain insight into the regular romance that had been enacted between her and her father ever since childhood. It would lead us too far to describe in detail how, from her earliest years, with unconscious sympathy, she had played upon the shadow-side of her father which her mother never saw, and how, far in advance of her years, she became her mother's rival. All this came to light in t he a nalysis o f t he p ersonal unconscious. S ince, if o nly f or professional reasons, I c ould not allow m yself t o be i rritated, I i nevitably became the hero and father-lover. The transference too consisted at first of contents from the personal unconscious. My role as a hero was just a sham, and so, as it turned me into the merest phantom, she was able to play her traditional role o f th e s upremely wise, ve ry gr own-up, a ll-understanding mother-daughter-beloved-an empty role, a persona behind which h er r eal and authentic being, her individual self, lay hidden. Indeed, to the extent that she at first completely identified herself with her role, she was altogether unconscious of her real self. She was still in her nebulous infantile world and had not yet discovered the real world at all. But as, through progressive analysis, she became conscious of the nature of her 159


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

19 )0

)l

transference, the dreams I spoke of in Chapter I began to materialize. They br ought up bi ts of the collective unconscious, and that was the end of her infantile world and of all the heroics. She came to herself and to her own real potentialities. This is roughly the way things go in most c ases, if t he a nalysis i s c arried f ar e nough. T hat t he consciousness of he r individuality should c oincide e xactly w ith t he reactivation of an archaic god-image is not just an isolated coincidence, but a very frequent occurrence which, in my view, corresponds to an unconscious law. After this digression, let us turn back to our earlier reflections. Once the personal repressions are lifted, the individuality and the collective psyche begin to emerge in a coalescent state, thus releasing the hitherto repressed personal fantasies. The fantasies and dreams which n ow ap pear a ssume a s omewhat di fferent as pect. A n infallible sign of collective images seems to be the appearance of the "cosmic" e lement, i.e., t he images i n the dream or f antasy ar e connected with cosmic qualities, such as temporal and spatial infinity, enormous speed a nd e xtension of m ovement, "astrological" associations, t elluric, l unar, a nd solar a nalogies, c hanges in the proportions of the body, etc. The obvious occurrence of mythological and r eligious m otifs i n a dr eam a lso p oints t o the a ctivity of the collective unconscious. T he c ollective element is very often announced by peculiar symptoms,2 a s for example by dreams where the dreamer is flying through space like a comet, or feels that he is the earth, or the sun, or a star; or else is of immense size, or dwarfishly small; or that he is dead, is in a strange place, is a stranger to himself, confused, mad, etc. Similarly, feelings of disorientation, of dizziness and the like, may appear along with symptoms of inflation. The forces that burst out of the collective psyche have a confusing and blinding effect. One result of the dissolution of the persona is a r elease of i nvoluntary fantasy, which i s ap parently n othing el se than the specific activity of the collective psyche. This activity throws up c ontents whose existence one had never suspected before. But as the influence of the collective uncon2 It may not be superfluous to note that collective elements in dreams are not restricted to this stage of the an alytical treatment. There are m any psychological situations in which the activity o f th e c ollective u nconscious c an come to th e s urface. B ut th is is n ot th e place to enlarge upon these conditions.

160


scious increases, so the conscious mind loses its power of leadership. Imperceptibly it becomes the led, while an unconscious and impersonal process gradually takes control. Thus, without noticing it, the conscious personality is pushed about like a figure on a chess-board by an invisible player. It is this player who decides the game of fate, not the conscious mind and its plans. This is how the resolution of the transference, apparently so impossible to the conscious mind, was brought about in my earlier example. The plunge into this process becomes unavoidable whenever the ne cessity a rises of o vercoming an apparently insuperable difficulty. It goes without saying that this necessity does not occur in every c ase of ne urosis, s ince pe rhaps i n t he majority th e p rime consideration i s only t he removal of t emporary d ifficulties of adaptation. C ertainly s evere c ases c annot be c ured w ithout a far-reaching c hange of c haracter or of a ttitude. I n by f ar t he gr eater number, a daptation to e xternal r eality de mands s o m uch w ork that inner adaptation to the collective unconscious cannot be considered for a very long time. But when this inner adaptation becomes a problem, a strange, ir resistible a ttraction p roceeds f rom the unconscious a nd exerts a powerful i nfluence on t he conscious di rection of l ife. T he predominance of unconscious influences, together with the associated disintegration of the persona and the deposition of the conscious mind from p ower, c onstitute a s tate of p sychic disequilibrium w hich, i n analytical treatment, is artificially induced for the therapeutic purpose of resolving a difficulty that might block further development. There are of course innumerable obstacles that can be overcome with good advice and a little moral support, aided by goodwill and understanding on the part of the patient. Excellent curative results can be obtained in this way. Cases are not uncommon where there is no need to breathe a word about the unconscious. But again, there are difficulties for which one can f oresee no satisfactory solution. If in these cases the psychic equilibrium is n ot a lready d isturbed be fore t reatment begins, it w ill certainly be u pset d uring the a nalysis, a nd sometimes w ithout a ny interference by the doctor. It often seems as though these patients had only been waiting to find a trustworthy person in order to give up and collapse. Such a loss of balance is similar in prinCIple to a psychotic disturbance; that is, it differs from the THE PERSONA AS A SEGMENT OF THE COLLECTIVE PSYCHE

25 2

161


53

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS initial stages of mental illness only by the fact that it leads in the end to greater health, while the latter leads to yet greater destruction. It is a condition of panic, a letting go in face of apparently hopeless complications. Mostly it was preceded by desperate efforts to master the difficulty by force of will; then came the collapse, and the once guiding will crumbles completely. The energy thus freed disappears from consciousness and falls into the unconscious. As a matter of fact, it is at these moments that the first signs of unconscious activity appear. (I am thinking of the example of that young man who was weak in the head.) Obviously the energy that fell away from consciousness has activated the unconscious. The immediate result is a change of attitude. One can easily imagine that a stronger head would have taken that vision of the stars as a healing apparition, and would have looked upon human suffering sub specie aeternitatis, in which case his senses would have been restored.3 Had this happened, an apparently insurmountable obstacle would have be en r emoved. H ence I r egard t he l oss of ba lance a s purposive, since it replaces a defective consciousness by the automatic and instinctive activity of the unconscious, which is aiming all the time at the creation of a new balance and will moreover achieve this aim, provided that the c onscious m ind is c apable of a ssimilating t he contents pr oduced by t he unc onscious, i .e., of unde rstanding a nd digesting t hem. I f the unconscious s imply r ides r oughshod o ver t he conscious m ind, a psychotic c ondition develops. I f i t c an ne ither completely pr evail n or ye t be unde rstood, the r esult is a c onflict that cripples a ll f urther a dvance. B ut with t his q uestion, na mely t he understanding of the collective unconscious, we come to a formidable difficulty which I have made the theme of my next chapter. S Cl. Flournoy, "Automatisme teleologique antisuicide: un cas de suicide empeche par une hallucination" (1907), 11 3-37; and J ung, " The P sychology of D ementia P raecox," pa rs. 304ff.

162


IV NEGATIVE ATTEMPTS TO FREE THE INDIVIDUALITY FROM THE COLLECTIVE PSYCHE a. Regressive Restoration of the Persona 254

A collapse of the conscious attitude is no small matter. It always f eels l ike t he e nd of the world, a s t hough e verything had tumbled back into or iginal chaos. One feels delivered up, disoriented, like a rudderless ship that is abandoned to the moods of the elements. So at least it seems. In reality, however, one has fallen back upon t he collective unconscious, which now takes over the leadership. We could multiply e xamples of cases w here, at the critical moment, a "saving" thought, a vision, an "inner voice," came with an irresistible power of conviction a nd ga ve l ife a ne w direction. P robably we c ould m ention just as m any cas es w here t he co llapse m eant a cat astrophe that destroyed life, for at such moments morbid ideas are also liable to take root, or ideals wither away, which is no less disastrous. In the one case some psychic od dity de velops, or a psychosis; in the o ther, a state of disorientation a nd demoralization. B ut once the u nconscious c ontents break through into consciousness, filling it with their uncanny power of conviction, the question arises of how the individual will react. Will he be ove rpowered by t hese c ontents? Will he c redulously a ccept them? Or will he reject them? (I am disregarding t he ideal reaction, namely critical u nderstanding.) T he f irst cas e s ignifies p aranoia o r schizophrenia; the second may either become an eccentric with a taste for pr ophecy, or he m ay r evert t o a n i nfantile a ttitude and be c ut of f from human society; the third signifies the regressive restoration of the persona. This f ormulation s ounds ve ry t echnical, a nd t he r eader may justifiably suppose that it has something to do with a com16 3


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS plicated psychic reaction such as can be observed in the course of analytical treatment. It would, however, be a mistake to think that cases of this kind make their appearance only in analytical treatment. The process can be observed just as well, and often better, in other situations of life, namely "in all those careers where there has been some violent and destructive intervention of fate. Everyone, presumably, has suffered adverse turns of fortune, but mostly they are wounds that heal and leave no crippling mark. But here we are concerned with experiences that are destructive, that can smash a man completely or at least cripple him for good. Let us take as an example a businessman who takes too great a risk and consequently becomes bankrupt. If he does not allow himself to be discouraged by this depressing experience, but, un dismayed, keeps his former daring, perhaps with a little salutary caution added, his wound will be healed without permanent injury. But if, on the other hand, he goes to pieces, abjures all further risks, and laboriously tries to patch up his social reputation within the confines of a much more limited personality, doing inferior work with the mentality of a scared child, in a post far below him, then, technically speaking, he will have restored his persona in a regressive way. He will as a result of his fright have slipped back to an earlier phase of his personality; he will have demeaned himself, pretending that he is as he was before the crucial experience, though utterly unable even to think of repeating such a risk. Formerly perhaps he wanted more tqan he could accomplish; now he does not even dare to attempt what he has it in him to do. 55 Such experiences occur in every walk of life and in every possible form, hence in psychological treatment also. Here again it is a question of w idening t he pe rsonality, of t aking a r isk on one 's circumstances o r o n o ne's nature. W hat t he cr itical ex perience i s i n actual treatment can be seen from the case of our philosophy student: it is the transference. As I have already indicated, it is possible for the patient t o slip ove r t he r eef of t he t ransference unc onsciously, in which case it does not become an experience and nothing fundamental happens. The doc tor, f or the s ake of m ere c onvenience, m ight w ell wish f or s uch p atients. B ut if th ey a re in telligent, t he p atients soon discover t he e xistence of t his pr oblem f or t hemselves. I f t hen t he doctor, as in t he ab ove cas e, is ex alted i nto t he f ather-lover a nd consequently has 16

4


NEGATIVE ATTEMPTS TO FREE THE INDIVIDUALITY

a f lood of de mands let l oose a gainst him, he m ust pe rforce think ou t ways a nd m eans of parrying t he o nslaught, w ithout h imself ge tting drawn into the maelstrom and without injury to the patient. A violent rupture of the transference may bring on a complete relapse, or worse; so the problem must be handled with great tact and foresight. Another possibility is the pious hope that "in time" the "nonsense" will stop of its own a ccord. C ertainly e verything s tops in time, bu t i t m ay be a n unconscionably long time, and the difficulties may be so unbearable for both sides that one might as well give up the idea of time as a healing factor at once. 256 A far better instrument for "combatting" the transference would s eem t o be of fered by t he F reudian theory of neurosis. T he dependence of the patient i s explained as an infantile s exual de mand that takes the place of a rational application of sex. uality. Similar advantages are offered by the Adlerian theory,1 which explains the transference as an infantile power-aim, and as a "security measure." Both theories fit the neurotic mentality so neatly that every case of neurosis can be explained by both theories at once.2 This highly remarkable f act, w hich an y u nprejudiced obs erver i s bou nd t o corroborate, c an only rest o n the circumstance that Freud's "infantile eroticism" an d Adler's " power d rive" ar e o ne an d t he s ame t hing, regardless of t he c lash of op inions be tween t he t wo schools. I t is simply a f ragment of unc ontrolled, a nd a t f irst uncontrollable, primordial i nstinct that c omes t o l ight in the phe nomenon of transference. T he ar chaic f antasy-forms t hat gr adually r each t he surface of consciousness are only a further proof of this. 257 We can try both theories to make the patient see how infantile, impossible, and absurd his demands are, and perhaps in the end he will actually come to his senses a gain. My patient, however, was not the only one who did not do this. True enough, the doctor can always save his face with these theories and extricate himself from a painful situation more or less humanely. There are indeed patients with whom it is, or seems to be, unrewarding to go to greater lengths; but there are also cas es w here t hese p rocedures cau se s enseless psychic i njury. I n the case of my student I dimly felt something of the sort, and I therefore ab an1 Adler, The Neurotic Constitution (orig. 1912). 2

Cf. supra, pars. 44ff., for an example of such a case.

5

16


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

doned my rationalistic attempts in order-with ill-concealed mistrust-to give n ature a ch ance t o co rrect w hat s eemed t o m e t o b e h er o wn foolishness. A s a lready m entioned, t his t aught m e s omething extraordinarily i mportant, namely t he e xistence of a n unc onscious self-regulation. Not only can the unconscious "wish," it can also cancel its own wishes. This realization, of such immense importance for the integrity of the personality, must remain sealed to anyone who cannot get over the idea that it is simply a question of infantilism. He will turn round on the threshold of this realization and tell himself: "It was all nonsense of course. I am a crazy visionary! The best thing to do would be to bury the unconscious or throw it overboard with a ll its works." The meaning a nd pur pose he s o e agerly de sired he w ill s ee onl y a s infantile maunderings. He will understand that his longing was absurd; he learns to be tolerant with himself, resigned. What can he do? Rather than face the conflict he will turn back and, as best he can, regressively restore hi s shattered pe rsona, discounting a ll those hope s a nd expectations that h ad b lossomed u nder t he t ransference. H e w ill become smaller, more limited, more rationalistic than he was before. One could not say that this result would be an unqualified misfortune in all cases, for there are all too many who, on account of their notorious ineptitude, th rive b etter in a r ationalistic system th an in f reedom. Freedom is one of the more difficult things. Those who can stomach this way out can say with Faust: This earthly circle I know well enough. Towards the Beyond the view has been cut off; Fool-who directs that way his dazzled eye, Contrives himself a double in the sky! Let him look round him here, not stray beyond; To a sound man this world must needs respond. To roam into eternity is vain! What he perceives, he can attain. Thus let him walk along his earthlong day; Though phantoms haunt him, let him go his way.3 258

Such a solution would be perfect if a man were really able to shake off the unconscious, drain it of its energy and render it inactive. But experience shows that the unconscious can be de3 Faust, trans. by Louis MacNeice, p. 283 (Part 11, Act V).

166


NEGATIVE ATTEMpTS TO FREE THE INDIVIDUALITY

prived of its energy only in part: it remains continually active, for it not only c ontains but i s i tself t he s ource of t he l ibido f rom w hich t he psychic elements flow. It is therefore a delusion to think that by some kind of m agical theory or m ethod t he unc onscious can b e f inally emptied of libido and thus, as it were, eliminated. One may for a while play with this delusion, but the day comes when one is forced to say with Faust: But now such spectredom so throngs the air That none knows how to dodge it, none knows where. Though one day greet us with a rational gleam, The night entangles us in webs of dream. We come back happy from the fields of springAnd a bird croaks. Croaks what? Some evil thing. Enmeshed in superstition night and morn, It forms and shows itself and comes to warn. And we, so scared, stand without friend or kin, And the door creaks-and nobody comes in.4 Nobody, of his own free will, can strip the unconscious of its effective power. At best, one can merely deceive oneself on t his point. For, as Goethe says: Unheard by the outward ear In the heart I whisper fear; Changing shape from hour to hour I employ my savage power.5 Only one thing is e ffective a gainst t he unc onscious, a nd that i s ha rd outer ne cessity. ( Those with r ather m ore kn owledge of t he unconscious will see behind the outer necessity the same fac~ which once gazed at them from within.) An inner necessity can change into an outer one, and so long as the outer necessity is real, and not just faked, psychic pr oblems r emain m ore or l ess ineffective. This is w hy Mephisto of fers F aust, w ho i s s ick of t he " madness of m agic," t he following advice: Right. There is one way that needs No money, no physician, and no witch. 4

Ibid., p.

281

(Part 11, Act V).

5

Ibid., p.

282

(Part 11, Act V), modified. 16

7


THE RE:LATIONS BE:TW~E:N THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS Pack

up your things and get back to the land And there begin to dig and ditch; Keep to the narrow round, confine your mind, And live on fodder of the simplest kind, A beast among the beasts; and don't forget To use your own dung on the crops you set! 6

!59

It is a w ell-known f act t hat t he " simple l ife" c annot b e f aked, a nd therefore the unpr oblematical e xistence of a poor m an, who r eally is delivered over to fate, cannot be bought by such cheap imitations. Only the man who lives such a life not as a mere possibility, but is actually driven to it by the necessity of his own nature, will blindly pass over the problem of his soul, since he lacks the capacity to grasp it. But once he has seen the Faustian problem, the escape into the "simple life" is closed for ever. There is of course nothing to stop him from taking a two-room cottage in the country, or from pottering about in a garden and eating raw turnips. But his soul laughs at the deception. Only what is really oneself has the power to heal. The regressive restoration of the persona is a possible course only f or t he m an who owes the c ritical f ailure of hi s l ife to h is own inflatedness. W ith d iminished personality, he turns back t o t he measure h e can f ill. B ut i n ev ery o ther cas e r esignation an d self-belittlement are an evasion, which in the long run can be kept up only a t the c ost of ne urotic s ickliness. F rom t he c onscious po int of view of t he pe rson c oncerned, hi s c ondition d oes not 109k l ike a n evasion at all, but seems to be due to the impossibility of coping with the problem. Usually he is a lonely figure, with little or nothing to help him i n our pr esent-day c ulture. E ven ps ychology ha s onl y pur ely reductive i nterpretations t o offer, s ince it inevitably u nderlines t he archaic an d i nfantile ch aracter o f t hese t ransitional s tates an d m akes them u nacceptable t o h im. T he f act t hat a m edical theory m ay al so serve the purpose of enabling the doctor to pull his own head more or less elegantly out of the noose does not occur to him. That is precisely why these reductive t heories f it the essence of neurosis so beautifully-because they are of such great service to the doctor. 6 Ibid.,

p. 67 (Part I, Witch's Kitchen scene), modified.

168


NEGATIVE ATTEMPTS TO FREE THE INDIVIDUALITY

b. Identification with the Collective Psyche The second way leads to identification with the collective psyche. This would amount to an acceptance of inflation, but now exalted into a system. That is to say, one would be the fortunate possessor of the great truth which was only waiting to be discovered, of the eschatological knowledge which spells the healing of the nations. This attitude is not necessarily megalomania in direct form, but in the milder and more familiar form of prophetic inspiration and desire for martyrdom. For weakminded persons, who as often as not possess more than their fair share of ambition, vanity, and misplaced naivete, the danger of yielding to this temptation is very great. Access to the collective psyche means a renewal of life for the individual, no matter whether this renewal is felt as pleasant or unpleasant. Everybody would like to hold fast to this renewal: one man because it enhances his life-feeling, another because it promises a rich harvest of knowledge, a third because he has discovered the key that will transform his whole life. Therefore all those who do not wish to deprive themselves of the great treasures that lie buried in the collective psyche will strive by every means possible to maintain their newly won connection with the primal source of life.7 Identification would seem to be the shortest road to this, for the dissolution of the persona in the collective psyche positively invites one to wed oneself with the abyss and blot out all memory in its embrace. This piece of mysticism is innate in all better men as the "longing for the mother," the nostalgia for the Source from which we came. 261 As I have shown in my book on libido, there lie at the root of the regressive longing, which Freud conceives as "infantile fixation" or the "incest wish," a specific value and a specific need which are made explicit in myths. It is precisely the strongest and best among men, the heroes, w ho g ive w ay t o t heir r egres7 I w ould lik e to call attention h ere to a n 260

interesting rem'ark of Kant's. In his lectures on ps ychology (Vorlesungen ilber Psychologie, Leipzig, 188 9) he speaks of the "treasure lying within the field of dim r epresentations, that deep abyss of human knowledge forever beyond our reach." This treasure, as I have demonstrated in my Symbols of Transformation, is the aggregate of all those primordial images in which the libido is invested, or rather, which are self-representations of the libido. 16

9


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

sive longing a nd pur posely e xpose themselves to the danger of be ing devoured by the monster of the maternal abyss. But if a man is a hero, he is a hero because, in the final reckoning, he did not let the monster devour him, but subdued it, not once but many times. Victory over the collective psyche alone yields the true value-the capture of the hoard, the invincible weapon, the m agic ta lisman, or whatever it be that the myth deems most desirable. Anyone who identifies with the collective psyche-or, i n m ythological t erms, l ets hi mself be de voured by t he monsterand vanishes in it, attains the treasure that the dragon guards, but he does so in spite of himself and to his own greatest harm. 262 Probably no one who was conscious of the absurdity of this identification would have the courage to make a principle of it. But the danger is that very many people lack the necessary humour, or else it fails them at this particular juncture; they are seized by a sort of pathos, everything s eems pr egnant w ith m eaning, a nd all e ffective self-criticism is checked. I would not deny in general the existence of genuine prophets, but in the name of caution I would begin by doubting each individual case; for it is far too serious a matter for us lightly to accept a man as a g enuine pr ophet. Every respectable prophet strives manfully a gainst t he unc onscious pr etensions of hi s r ole. W hen therefore a prophet" appears at a moment's notice, we would be better advised to contemplate a possible psychic disequilibrium. 26 3 But besides the possibility of becoming a prophet, there is another alluring joy, subtler and apparently more legitimate: the joy of becoming a prophet's disciple. This, for the vast majority of people, is an altogether ideal technique. Its advantages are: the odium dignitatis) the s uperhuman r esponsibility of t he pr ophet, t urns i nto t he s o m uch sweeter otium indignitatis. The disciple is unworthy; modestly he sits at the M aster's feet a nd gua rds a gainst ha ving ideas of his own. M ental laziness b ecomes a v irtue; o ne can at l east b ask i n t he s un o f a semidivine be ing. H e c an e njoy t he a rchaism a nd i nfantilism of hi s unconscious f antasies without loss to himself, f or all r esponsibility is laid a t t he M aster's door . T hrough hi s de ification of t he M aster, t he disciple, a pparently w ithout not icing i t, w axes i n s tature; m oreover, does he not possess the great truth-not his own discovery, of course, but received s traight f rom t he Master's h ands? N aturally th e d isciples always stick together, not out of love, but for

17째


NEGATIVE ATTEMPTS TO FREE THE INDIVIDUALITY

26 4

26

5

the ve ry unde rstandable pur pose of effortlessly c onfirming their own convictions by engendering an air of collective agreement. Now this is an identification with the collective psyche that seems altogether more commendable: somebody else has the honour of being a pr ophet, but a lso t he dangerous responsibility. F or one's ow n part, one is a mere disciple, but nonetheless a joint guardian of the great treasure w hich t he M aster ha s f ound. O ne f eels t he f ull di gnity a nd burden of s uch a pos ition, de eming it a s olemn dut y a nd a m oral necessity to revile others not of a like mind, to enrol proselytes and to hold up a light to the Gentiles, exactly as though one were the prophet oneself. A nd t hese pe ople, w ho c reep a bout be hind a n a pparently modest persona, are the very ones who, when inflated by identification with the c ollective psyche, suddenly bur st upon t he world scene. F or, just as the prophet is a primordial image from the collective psyche, so also is the disciple of the prophet. In both cases inflation is brought about by the collective unconscious, and the independence of the individuality suffers injury. But since by no means all individualities have the strength to be independent, the d isciple-fantasy i s pe rhaps t he be st t hey c an a ccomplish. T he gratifications of t he a ccompanying i nflation a t least d o something t o make up for the loss of spiritual freedom. Nor should we underestimate the f act t hat t he l ife of a r eal or i magined prophet i s f ull of s orrows, disappointments, and privations, so that the hosanna-shouting band of disciples ha s t he va lue of a compensation. A ll t his i s s o hum anly understandable that it would be a matter for astonishment if it led to any further destination whatever.

171



PART TWO INDIVIDUA TION

I THE FUNCTION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS There is a destination, a possible goal, beyond the alternative s tages de alt w ith in o ur l ast chapter. T hat is t he way of i ndividuation. Individuation means becoming an "in-dividual," and, in so f ar a s "individuality" embraces our i nnermost, last, a nd incomparable u niqueness, i t a lso i mplies becoming one's own self. We could therefore translate individuation as "coming to selfhood" or "self-realization." 26 7 The possibilities of development discussed in the preceding chapters were, at bottom, alienations of the self, ways of divesting the self of i ts r eality i n f avour o f a n external r ole or i n favour of a n imagined m eaning. I n t he f ormer ca se the s elf r etires into t he background and gives place to social recognition; in the latter, to the auto-suggestive m eaning of a primordial image. I n b oth c ases the collective ha s the up per ha nd. Self-alienation i n f avour of t he collective corresponds to a social ideal; it even passes for social duty and virtue, although i t c an also be m isused f or e gotistical purposes. Egoists are called "selfish," but this, naturally, has nothing to do with the c oncept of " self" as I a m using i t he re. On t he other ha nd, self-realization seems to s tand in o pposition to s elf-alienation. T his misunderstanding i s q uite general, b ecause we do not sufficiently distinguish be tween i ndividualism a nd i ndividuation. I ndividualism means deliberately stressing and giving prominence to some supposed peculiarity r ather than t o collective c onsiderations a nd obligations. But individuation means precisely the better and more complete ful173 266


THE FUNCTION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

~68

26

9

filment of the collective qualities of the human being, since adequate consideration of the peculiarity of the individual is more conducive to a better s ocial performance t han w hen the peculiarity is n eglected o r suppressed. The idiosyncrasy of an individual is not to be understood as any strangeness in his substance or in his components, but rather as a unique c ombination, or gr adual d ifferentiation, of f unctions a nd faculties which i n themselves are universal. Every h uman face has a nose, two eyes, ete., but these universal factors are variable, and it is this variability which makes individual peculiarities possible. Individuation, t herefore, c an on ly m ean a pr ocess of psychological development that fulfils the individual qualities given; in other words, it is a process by which a man becomes the definite, unique being he in fact is. In so doing he does not become "selfish" in the ordinary sense of the word, but is merely fulfilling the peculiarity of his nature, and this, as we have said, is vastly different from egotism or individualism. Now in so far as the human individual, as a living unit, is composed of pur ely un iversal f actors, he i s w holly c ollective a nd therefore in no sense opposed to collectivity. Hence the individualistic emphasis on o ne's own peculiarity is a contradiction of this basic fact of the living being. Individuation, on the other hand, aims at a living co-operation of a ll f actors. B ut s ince t he uni versal f actors a lways appear only in individual form, a full consideration of them will also produce a n i ndividual e ffect, a nd one w hich c annot be s urpassed b y anything else, least of all by individualism. The aim of individuation is nothing less than to divest the self of the false wrappings of the persona on the one hand, and of the suggestive po wer of pr imordial i mages on t he ot her. F rom w hat ha s been said in the previous chapters it should be sufficiently clear what the persona means psychologically. But when we turn to the other side, namely to the influence of the collective unconscious, we find we are moving in a da rk i nterior w orld t hat i s va stly m ore di fficult to understand than the psychology of the persona, ,vhich is accessible to everyone. Everyone knows what is meant bv "putting on official airs" or "playing a social role." Thrnugh the persona a man tries to appear as this or t hat, or he hi des be hind a m ask, or he m ay e ven bui ld up a definite persona as a barricade. So the problem of the persona should 174


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

270

present no great intellectual difficulties. It is, however, another thing to describe, in a way that can be generally unde rstood, t hose s ubtle i nner pr ocesses w hich i nvade t he conscious m ind w ith s uch s uggestive f orce. P erhaps we c an be st portray these influences with the he lp of e xamples of mental il lness, creative i nspiration, an d r eligious co nversion. A m ost ex cellent account-taken from life, so to speak-of such an inner transformation is to be found in H. G. Wells' Christina Alberta's Father.a Changes of a similar k ind a re de scribed in L eon D audet's e minently r eadable L'Heredo. A w ide r ange of m aterial is c ontained i n W illiam J ames' Varieties of Religious Experience. Although in many cases of this kind there ar e cer tain ex ternal f actors w hich ei ther d irectly condition t he change, or at least provide the occasion for it, yet it is not always the case t hat t he ex ternal f actor o ffers a s ufficient ex planation of t hese changes of personality. We must recognize the fact that they can also arise f rom s ubjective i nner c auses, op inions, c onvictions, w here external s timuli p lay no p art a t a ll, o r a v ery in significant one . I n pathological changes of personality this can even be said to be the rule. The cases of psychosis that present a clear and simple reaction to some overwh~lming o utside e vent be long to the e xceptions. H ence, f or psychiatry, the essential aetiological factor is the inherited or acquired pathological disposition. T he same i s pr obably t rue of most c reative intuitions, f or w e a re ha rdly l ikely t o suppose a pur ely c ausal connection be tween the falling a pple a nd Newton's t heory of gravitation. S imilarly a ll r eligious c onversions that c annot be t raced back di rectly t o s uggestion a nd c ontagious e xample r est upon independent interior processes culminating in a change of personality. As a rule these processes have the peculiarity of being subliminal, i.e., unconscious, i n the f irst p lace a nd of r eaching c onsciousness on ly gradually. The moment of irruption can, however, be very sudden, so that consciousness is instantaneously Hooded with extremely strange and apparently quite unsuspected contents. That is how it looks to the layman and even to the person concerned, but the experienced observer knows t hat ps ychological e vents a re ne ver s udden. I n r eality t he irruption has been preparing for many years, often for half a lifetime, and already in childhood all sorts a [Concerning the origin of this novel in a conversation between Wells and lung. cf. Bennet, What lung Really Said, p. 93.-EDITORS.]

175


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

of remarkable signs could ha ve been detected which, in more or less symbolic f ashion, hinted a t a bnormal f uture developments. I a m reminded, for instance, of a mental case who refused all nourishment and c reated quite e xtraordinary d ifficulties i n c onnection w ith na sal feeding. In fact an anaesthetic was necessary before the tube could be inserted. The patient was able in some remarkable way to swallow his tongue by pressing it back into the throat, a fact that was quite new and unknown to me at the time. In a lucid interval I obtained the following history from the man. As a boy he had often revolved in his mind the idea of how he could take his life, even if every conceivable measure were e mployed to prevent h im. He f irst tried t o d o i t b y ho lding h is breath, until he found that by the time he was in a semiconscious state he had a lready begun to breathe again. S o he ga ve up these attempts and thought: pe rhaps i t w ould work if he r efused f ood. This f antasy satisfied him until he discovered that food could be poured into him through t he na sal c avity. He t herefore c onsidered ho w this e ntrance might be closed, and thus it was that he hit upon the idea of pressing his tongue backwards. At first he was unsuccessful, and so he began a regular training, until at last he succeeded in swallowing his tongue in much t he s ame w ay a s s ometimes ha ppens a ccidentally during anaesthesia, evidently in his case by artificially relaxing the muscles at the root of the tongue. :71 In this strange manner the boy paved the way for his future psychosis. After the second attack he became incurably insane. This is路 only one example among many others, but it suffices to show how the subsequent, apparently sudden irruption of alien contents is really not s udden a t a ll, but is r ather the r esult of a n unc onscious development that has been going on for years. l72 The great question now is: in what do these unconscious processes c onsist? And how are they constituted? Naturally, so long as t hey a re u nconscious, n othing c an be s aid a bout t hem. B ut sometimes they manifest themselves, partly through symptoms, partly through a ctions, o pinions, a ffects, f antasies, a nd dr eams. A ided by such observational material we can draw indirect conclusions as to the momentary state a nd c onstitution of t he u nconscious p rocesses a nd their development. We should not, however, labour under the illusion that we have now dis176


THE FUNCTION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

covered the real nature of the unconscious processes. We never succeed in getting further than the hypothetical "as if." 273 "No mortal mind can plumb the depths of nature"-nor even t he de pths of t he unc onscious. W e do kn ow, however, that the unconscious never rests. It seems to be always at work, for even when asleep we dream. There are many people who declare that they never dream, but the pr obability is that they simply do not remember their dreams. It is significant that people who talk in their sleep mostly have no recollection either of the dream which started them talking, or even of the fact that they dreamed at all. Not a day passes but we make some slip of the tongue, or something slips our memory which at other times we know perfectly well, or we are seized by a mood whose cause we cannot trace, et c. T hese things ar e al l s ymptoms of s ome co nsistent unconscious activity which becomes directly visible at night in dreams, but on ly oc casionally br eaks t hrough t he i nhibitions imposed b y o ur daytime consciousness. 274 So far as our present experience goes, we can lay it down that the u nconscious processes s tand in a c ompensatory r elation to the conscious mind. I expressly use the word "compensatory" and not the word "contrary" because conscious and unconscious are not necessarily in opposition to one another, but complement one another to form a totality, which is the self. According to this definition the self is a quantity that is supraordinate to the conscious ego. It embraces not only the conscious but also the unconscious psyche, and is therefore, so to speak, a personality which we also are. It is easy enough to think of ourselves a s p ossessing pa rt-souls. T hus w e c an, f or i nstance, s ee ourselves a s a pe rsona without too m uch difficulty. B ut it transcends our powers of imagination to form a c lear picture of what we are as a self, for in this operation the part would have to comprehend the whole. There is little hope of our ever be ing able to reach even approximate consciousness of the s elf, since however m uch W e m ay m ake conscious there will always exist an indeterminate and indeterminable amount of unconscious material which belongs to the totality of the self. Hence the self will always remain a supraordinate quantity. 275 The unconscious processes that compensate the conscious ego contain all those elements that are necessary for the self177


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS regulation of the psyche as a whole. On the personal level, these are the not consciously recognized personal motives which appear in dreams, or the meanings of daily situations which we have overlooked, or conclusions we have failed to draw, or affects we hav~ not permitted, or criticisms we have spared ourselves. But the more we become conscious of ourselves through self-knowledge, and act accordingly, the more the layer of the personal unconscious that is superimposed on the collective unconscious will be diminished. In this way there arises a consciousness which is no longer imprisoned in the petty, oversensitive, personal world of the ego, but participates freely in the wider world of objective interests. This widened consciousness is no longer that touchy, egotistical bundle of personal wishes, fears, hopes, and ambitions which always has to be compensated or corrected by unconscious counter-tendencies; instead, it is a function of relationship to the world of objects, bringing the individual into absolute, binding, and indissoluble communion with the world at large. The complications arising at this stage are no longer egotistic wish-conflicts, but difficulties that concern others as much as oneself. At this stage it is fundamentally a question of collective problems, which have activated the collective unconscious because they require collective rather than personal compensation. We can now see that the unconscious produces contents which are valid not only for the person concerned, but for others as well, in fact for a great many people and possibly f0r all. 276 The Elgonyi, natives of the Elgon forests, of central Africa, explained to me that there are two kinds of dreams: the ordinary dream of the little man, and the "big vision" that only the great man has, e.g., the medicine-man or c hief. L ittle dr eams a re of no a ccount, but if a man has a "big dream" he summons the whole tribe in order to tell it to everybody. 277 How is a man to know whether his dream is a "big" or a "little" one? He knows it by an instinctive feeling of significance. He feels so overwhelmed by the impression it makes that he would never think of ke eping t he dr eam t o himself. He has to te ll i t, o n t he psychologically c orrect a ssumption that it is of ge neral significance. Even with us the collective dream has a feeling of importance about it that impels communication. It springs from a conflict of relationship and must therefore be

178


THE FUNCTION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

27

8

279

280

281

282

built into our conscious relations, because it compensates these and not just some inner personal quirk. The processes of the collective unconscious are concerned not only with the more or less personal relations of an individual to his family or to a wider social group, but with his relations to society and to the human community in general. The more general and impersonal the c ondition that r eleases t he unconscious r eaction, the m ore significant, bizarre, an d o verwhelming w ill b e t he compensatory manifestation. I t im pels not just p rivate communication, bu t dr ives people t o r evelations a nd c onfessions, a nd e ven to a dramatic representation of their fantasies. I will explain by an example how the unconscious manages to c ompensate r elationships. A s omewhat a rrogant ge ntleman o nce came to me for treatment. He ran a business in partnership w ith his younger br other. R elations between t he two brothers w ere v ery strained, a nd t his w as o ne of the e ssential c auses of m y pa tient's neurosis. F rom the i nformation he gave m e, the r eal r eason f or t he tension was not altogether clear. He had all kinds of criticisms to make of hi s br other, w hose g ifts he c ertainly did n ot show i n a very favourable light. The brother frequently came into his dreams, always in t he r ole of a B isma\rck, N a poleon, or Julius C aesar. H is ho use looked like t he V atican or Yildiz Kiosk. M y pa tient's unc onscious evidently had the need to exalt the rank of the younger brother. From this I concluded that he was setting himself too hi gh and hi s br other too low. The further course of analysis entirely justified this inference. Another patient, a young woman who clung to her mother in an ex tremely s entimental w ay, al ways had v ery s inister d reams about h er. Sh e a ppeared in t he dreams as a w itch, as a g host, a s a pursuing demon. The mother had spoilt her beyond all reason and had so blinded her by tenderness that the daughter had no conscious idea of her m other's harmful i nfluence. Hence the c ompensatory c riticism exercised by the unconscious. I myself once happened to put too Iowa value on a patient, both intellectually and morally. In a dream I saw a castle perched on a high cliff, and on the topmost tower was a balcony, and there sat my patient. I did not hesitate to tell her this dream at once, naturally with the best results. We all know how apt we are to make fools of ourselves in front of the very people we have unjustly underrated. Naturally 179


the case can also be reversed, as once happened to a friend of mine. While still a callow student he had written to Virchow, the pathologist, craving an audience with "His Excellency." When, quaking with fear, he presented himself and tried to give his name, he blurted out, "My name is Virchow." Whereupon His Excellency, smiling mischievously, said, "Ah! So your name is Virchow too?" The feeling of his own nullity was evidently too much for the unconscious of my friend, and in consequence it instantly prompted him to present himself as equal to Virchow in grandeur. In these more personal relations there is of course no need for any very collective compensations. On the other hand, the figures employed b y t he unconscious in o ur f irst c ase a re of a definitely collective na ture: t hey a re universally r ecognized he roes. Here there are two possible interpretations: either my patient's younger brother is a man of acknowledged and farreaching collective importance, or my patient is overestimating his own importance not merely in relation to his br other but in r elation to e verybody e lse a s well. F or the f irst assumption there was no support at all, while for the second there was the e vidence of o ne's o wn e yes. S ince the m an's e xtreme a rrogance affected n ot o nly h imself, b ut a f ar w ider s ocial gr oup, the c ompensation availed itself of a collective image. The same is true of the second case. The "witch" is a collective image; hence we must conclude that the blind dependence of the y.oung woman applied as much to the wider social group as it did to her mother personally. This was indeed the case, in so far as she was still living in a n e xclusively infantile w orld, w here t he w orld w as identical with her parents. These examples deal with relations within the pe rsonal or bit. T here a re, h owever, i mpersonal r elations which occasionally need unconscious compensation. In such cases collective images ap pear w ith a m ore o r less m ythological c haracter. M oral, philosophical, a nd r eligious pr oblems a re, on a ccount of their universal validity, the most likely to call for mythological compensation. In the aforementioned novel by H. G. Wells we find a classical t ype of c ompensation: M r. P reemby, a m idget personality, discovers t hat he i s r eally a r eincarnation of S argon, K ing of K ings. Happily, the genius of the author rescues poor old Sargon from pathological absurdity, and even gives the reader a chance to appreTHE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

283

284

180


THE FUNCTION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

ciate t he t ragic an d et ernal m eaning in t his l amentable af fray. M r. Preemby, a co mplete n onentity, r ecognizes himself a s t he p oint of intersection of a ll a ges pa st a nd f uture. T his k nowledge is n ot too dearly bought at the cost of a little madness, provided that Preemby is not in the end devoured by that monster of a primordial image-which is in fact what nearly happens to him. 285 The universal problem of evil and sin is another aspect of our impersonal r elations t o t he w orld. Almost m ore than a ny o ther, therefore, this problem produces collective compensations. One of my patients, a ged s ixteen, ha d a s t he initial s ymptom of a s evere compulsion neurosis the f ollowing dr eam: He is walking along an unfamiliar street. It is dark) and he hears steps coming behind him. With a feeling of fear he quickens his pace. The footsteps come nearer) and his fear increases. He begins to run. But the footsteps seem to be overtaking him. Finally he turns round) and there he sees the devil. In deathly terror he leaps into the air and hangs there suspended. This dream was repeated twice, a sign of its special urgency. 28 It is a notorious fact that the compulsion neuroses, by reason of their 6 meticulousness a nd c eremonial punctilio, n ot o nly ha ve t he surface appearance of a m oral problem but a re i ndeed br imfull of i nhuman beastliness and ruthless evil, against the integration of which the very delicately organized personality p uts up a de sperate struggle. T his explains why s o m any t hings have t o be pe rformed in c eremonially "correct" style, a s t hough t o c ounteract the e vil hovering i n t he background. After t his dr eam t he ne urosis started, a nd i ts e ssential feature w as t hat t he pa tient ha d, a s he put i t, t o ke ep hi mself i n a "provisional" or "uncontaminated" state of purity. For this purpose he either severed or m ade "invalid" a ll c ontact with the w orld a nd w ith everything that reminded him of the transitoriness of human existence, by means of lunatic formalities, scrupulous cleansing ceremonies, and the a nxious o bservance of i nnumerable r ules a nd r egulations of a n unbelievable complexity. Even before the patient had any suspicion of the hellish existence that lay before him, the dream showed him that if he wanted to come down to earth again there would have to be a pact with evil. ~87 Elsewhere I have described a dream that illustrates the coml pensation of a religious problem in a young theological student. 1 "Archetypes of the Collective Unconscious," par. 71 • 181


288

289

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS He was involved in all sorts of difficulties of belief, a not uncommon occurrence in the man of today. In his dream he was the pupil of the "white magician," who, however, was dressed in black. After having instructed him up to a certain point, the white magician told him that they now needed the "black magician." The black magician appeared, but clad in a white robe. He declared that he had found the keys of paradise, but needed the wisdom of the white magician in order to understand how to use them. This dream obviously contains the problem of opposites which, as we know, has found in Taoist philosophy a solution very different from the views prevailing in the West. The figures employed by the dream are impersonal collective images corresponding to the nature of the impersonal religious problem. In contrast to the Christian view, the dream stresses the relativity of good and evil in a way that immediately calls to mind the Taoist symbol of Yin and Yang. We should certainly not conclude from these compensations that, as the conscious mind becomes more deeply engrossed in universal problems, the unconscious will bring forth correspondingly far-reaching compensations. There i s what one might call a l egitimate a nd a n illegitimate interest in impersonal problems. Excursions of this kind are legitimate only when they arise from the deepest and truest needs of the individual; illegitimate when they are either mere intellectual curiosity or a flight from unpleasant r eality. I n t he l atter case t he u ncot;lscious produces a ll too human a nd p urely p ersonal c ompensations, wh ose manifest a im is to b ring the c onscious m ind ba ck to o rdinary reality. People who go i llegitimately mooning af ter t he i nfinite often h ave absurdly banal dr eams which endeavour to damp down their ebullience. Thus, from t he n ature of t he compensation, we c an a t o nce d raw conclusions as to the seriousness and rightness of the conscious strivings. There are certainly not a few people who are afraid to admit that the unconscious could ever have "big" ideas. They will object, "But do you r eally be lieve t hat t he un conscious is c apable of o ffering anything like a co nstructive c riticism o f o ur W estern mentality?" O f course, if we t ake t he problem i ntellectually a nd im pute r ational intentions t o t he unconscious, t he t hing becomes a bsurd. But i t would never d o to foi st our c onscious psychology u pon the un conscious. It s mentality is an instinctive

182


THE FUNCTION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

29째

one; i t h as n o d ifferentiated functions, a nd i t d oes n ot " think" a s we understand " thinking." I t s imply cr eates an image that answers t o t he conscious situation. This image contains as much thought as feeling, and is a nything ra ther t han a p roduct of ra tionalistic r eflection. Such a n image would be better described as an artist's vision. We tend to forget that a problem like the one which underlies the dream l ast m entioned cannot, e ven to the c onscious m ind o f the d reamer, b e a n intellectual problem, but is p rofoundly e motional. F or a m oral man the e thical problem i s a passionate question which ha s i ts r oots i n t he deepest instinctual p rocesses a s well as in his m ost idealistic a spirations. Th e problem for him is devastatingly real. It is not surprising, therefore, that the answer likewise springs from the depths of his nature. The fact that everyone thinks his p sychology i s t he m easure of all things, and, i f h e also h appens t o be a fool, will i nevitably think t hat such a pr oblem i s beneath his notice, should not trouble the psychologist in the least, for he has to take things objectively, as he finds them, without twisting them to fit his s ubjective s uppositions. T he richer a nd m ore c apacious natures may legitimately be gripped by an impersonal problem, and to the extent that this is so, their unconscious can answer in the same style. And just as the conscious mind can put the question, "Why is there this frightful conflict between g ood and evil?," so the un conscious can reply, " Look closer! Each needs the other. The best, just because it is the best, holds the seed of e vil, and there is nothing so bad but good can come of it." It might then dawn on the dreamer that the apparently insoluble conflict is, perhaps, a prejudice, a frame of mind conditioned by time a nd p lace. T he seemingly c omplex d ream-image m ight easily reveal it self a s plain, in stinctive common sense, a s th e ti ny germ of a rational i dea, which a maturer mind could just a s well ha ve t hought consciously. A t all e vents Ch inese ph ilosophy thought of it a ges a go. The singularly apt, plastic configuration of thought is the prerogative of that p rimitive, n atural spirit which i s alive in all of u s an d i s only obscured b y a on esided c onscious de velopment. If w e c onsider the unconscious c ompensations f rom this angle, w e mi ght ju stifiably b e accused o f j udging the un conscious too m uch f rom the c onscious standpoint. And i ndeed, in pursuing t hese r eflections, I h ave a lways started from the view that the unconscious simply reacts to the 18 3


291

29 2

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS conscious contents, albeit in a very significant way, but that it lacks initiative. It is, however, far from my intention to give the impression that the unconscious is merely reactive in all cases. On the contrary, there is a host of experiences which seem to prove that the unconscious is not only spontaneous but can actually take the lead. There are innumerable cases of people who lingered on in a pettifogging unconsciousness, only to become neurotic in the end. Thanks to the neurosis contrived by the unconscious, they are shaken out of their apathy, and this in spite of their own laziness and often desperate resistance. Yet it would, in my view, be wrong to suppose that in such cases t he unc onscious i s w orking to a de liberate a nd c oncerted pl an and is striving to realize certain definite ends. I have found nothing to support this assumption. The driving force, so far as it is possible for us to grasp it, seems to be in essence only an urge towards self-realization. If i t w ere a m atter o f s ome g eneral t eleological plan, t hen al l individuals who enjoy a surplus of unconsciousness would necessarily be driven towards higher consciousness by an irresistible urge. That is plainly n ot t he c ase. T here a re va st m asses of t he po pulation w ho, despite their n otorious unconsciousness, ne ver ge t a nywhere ne ar a neurosis. The few who are smitten by such a fate are really persons of the "higher" type who, f or one r eason or a nother, ha ve r emained too long on a primitive level. Their nature does not in the long run tolerate persistence in what is for them an unnatural torpor. As a re~ult of their narrow c onscious o utlook a nd t heir c ramped e xistence t hey s ave energy; b it by bi t i t a ccumulates i n t he un conscious a nd f inally explodes in t he f orm of a m ore or l ess a cute ne urosis. T his s imple mechanism d oes n ot n ecessarily co nceal a " plan." A p erfectly understandable ur ge t owards s elf-realization w ould pr ovide a qui te satisfactory explanation. We could also speak of a retarded maturation of the personality. Since it is highly probable that we are still a long way from the summit of absolute consciousness, presumably everyone is capable of w ider co nsciousness, an d w e m ay as sume acco rdingly t hat the unconscious pr ocesses a re c onstantly s upplying us with c ontents which, if c onsciously r ecognized, w ould e xtend the r ange of consciousness. L ooked a t in t his w ay, t he unc onscious a ppears a s a field of experience of unlimited extent. If it were merely reactive to the conscious mind, we might aptly call it a 18

4


THE FUNCTION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

psychic mirror-world. In that case, the real source of all contents and activities would lie in the conscious mind, and there would be absolutely nothing in the unconscious except the distorted reflections of conscious contents. The creative process would be shut up in the conscious mind, and anything new would be nothing but conscious invention or cleverness. The empirical facts give the lie to this. Every creative man knows that spontaneity is the very essence of creative thought. Because the unconscious is not just a reactive mirror-reflection, but an independent, productive activity, its realm of experience is a selfcontained world, having its own reality, of which we can only say that it affects us as we affect it-precisely what we say about our experience of the outer world. And just as material objects are the constituent elements of this world, so psychic factors constitute the objects of that other world. 293 The idea of psychic objectivity is by no means a new discovery. It is in fact one of the earliest and most universal acquisitions of humanity: it is nothing less than the conviction as to the concrete existence of a spirit-world. The spirit-world was certainly never an invention in the sense that fire-boring was an invention; it was far rather the experience, the conscious acceptance of a reality in no way inferior to that of the material world. I doubt whether primitives exist anywhere who are not acquainted with magical influence or a magical substance. ("Magical" is simply another word for "psychic.") It would also appear that practically all primitives are aware of the existence of spirits.2 "Spirit" is a psychic fact. Just as we distinguish our own bodiliness from bodies that are strange to us, so primitives-if they have any notion of "souls" at all-distinguish between their own souls and the spirits, which are felt as strange and as "not belonging." They are objects of outward perception, whereas their own soul (or one of several souls where a plurality is assumed), though believed to be essentially akin to the spirits, is not usually an object of so-called sensible perception. After death the soul (or one of the plurality of souls) becomes a spirit which survives the dead man, and often it shows a marked dete2 In cases of reports t o t he contrary, it must always be bor ne in mind that t he fear of spirits is sometimes so great that people will actually deny that there are any spirits to fear. I have come across this myself among the d wellers on M ount Elgo n .

5

18


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS rioration

294

295

of character that partly contradicts the notion of personal immortality. The Bataks,3 of Sumatra, go so far as to assert that the people who were good in this life turn into malign and dangerous spirits. Nearly everything that the primitives say about the tricks which the spirits play on the living, and the general picture they give of the revenants) corresponds down to the last detail with the phenomena established by spiritualistic experience. And just as the communications from the "Beyond" can be seen to be the activities of broken-off bits of the psyche, so these primitive spirits are manifestations of unconscious complexes.4 The importance that modern psychology attaches to the "parental complex" is a direct continuation of primitive man's experience of the dangerous power of the ancestral spirits. Even the error of judgment which leads him unthinkingly to assume that the spirits are realities of the external world is carried on in our assumption (which is only partially correct) that the real parents are responsible for the parental complex. In the old trauma theory of Freudian psychoanalysis, and in other quarters as well, this assumption even passed for a scientific explanation. (It was in order to avoid this confusion that I advocated the term "parental imago." 5) The simple soul is of course quite unaware of the fact that his n earest r elations, w ho ex ercise i mmediate i nfluence o ver h im, create i n h im an image w hich i s o nly p artly a r eplica of t hemselves, while its other part is compounded of elements deriv~d from himself. The imago is built up of parental influences plus the specific reactions of the child; it is therefore an image that reflects the object with very considerable qualifications. Naturally, the simple soul believes that his parents are as he sees them. The image is unconsciously projected, and when the parents die, the projected image goes on working as though it were a spirit existing on its own. The primitive then speaks of parental spirits who return by night (revenants), while the modern man calls it a father or mother complex. The more limited a man's field of consciousness is, the more 3 Warnecke, Die Religion der Batak (1909). 4 CL "The P sychological Foundations of Belief in Spirits." 5 [This term was taken up by psychoanalysis, but in analytical psychology it has been largely replaced by "primordial image of the parent" or "parental archetype. "-EDITORS.]

186


THE FUNCTION OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

numerous the psychic contents (imagos) which meet him as quasi-external apparitions, either in the form of spirits, or as magical potencies projected upon living people (magicians, witches, etc.). At a rather higher stage of development, where the idea of the soul already exists, not all the imagos continue to be projected (where this happens, even trees and stones talk), but one or the other complex has come near enough to consciOllsness to be felt as no longer strange, but as somehow "belonging." Nevertheless, the feeling that it "belongs" is not at first sufficiently strong for the complex to be sensed as a subjective content of consciousness. It remains in a sort of no man's land between conscious and unconscious, in the half-shadow, in part belonging or akin to the conscious subject, in part an autonomous being, and meeting consciousness as such. At all events it is not necessarily obedient to the subject's intentions, it may even be of a higher order, more often than not a source of inspiration or warning, or of "supernatural" information. Psychologically such a content could be explained as a partly autonomous complex that is not yet fully integrated. The archaic souls, the ba and ka of the Egyptians, are complexes of this kind. At a still higher level, and particularly among the civilized peoples of the West, this complex is invariably of the feminine gender-anima and y;vxn-a fact for which deeper and cogent reasons are not lacking.

18

7


II ANIMA AND ANIMUS Among all possible spirits the spirits of the parents are in practice t he m ost i mportant; h ence t he u niversal i ncidence o f t he ancestor cult. In its original form it served to conciliate the revenants J but o n a hi gher l evel of c ulture i t be came a n e ssentially m oral a nd educational institution, a s in China. For the child, the parents are his closest a nd m ost influential r elations. B ut a s h e g rows o lder t his influence i s s plit of f; consequently the pa rental i magos be come increasingly s hut a way f rom c onsciousness, a nd on a ccount of the restrictive influence t hey s ometimes co ntinue t o ex ert, t hey eas ily acquire a n egative aspect. In this way the parental imagos remain as alien elements somewhere "outside" the psyche. In place of the parents, woman now t akes up he r p osition a s t he m ost i mmediate environmental influence in the life of the adult man. She becomes his companion, she belongs to him in so far as she shares his life and is more or less of the same age. She is not of a superior order, either by virtue of age, authority, or physical strength. She is, however, a very influential f actor a nd, like t he pa rents, she produces a n i mago of a relatively autonomous nature-not an imago to be split off like that of the parents, but one that has to be kept associated with consciousness. Woman, with her very dissimilar psychology, is and always has been a source of information about things for which a man has no eyes. She can be his inspiration; her intuitive capacity, often superior to man's, can give him timely warning, and her feeling, always directed towards the pe rsonal, c an s how him w ays w hich his ow n l ess pe rsonally accented f eeling w ould n ever h ave d iscovered. W hat T acitus s ays about the Germanic women is exactly to the point in this respect.! 297 Here, without a doubt, is one of the main sources for the feminine quality of the soul. But it does not seem to be the only ! 296

Germania (Loeb edn.), pars. 18, 19.

188


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

298

299

source. No man is so entirely masculine that he has nothing feminine in him. The fact is, rather, that very masculine men havecarefully guarded and hidden-a very soft emotional life, often incorrectly described as "feminine." A man counts it a virtue to repress his feminine traits as much as possible, just as a woman, at least until recently, considered it unbecoming to be "mannish." The repression of feminine traits and inclinations naturally causes these contrasexual demands to accumulate in the unconscious. No less naturally, the imago of woman (the soulimage) becomes a receptacle for these demands, which is why a man, in his love-choice, is strongly tempted to win the woman who best corresponds to his own unconscious femininity-a woman, in short, who can unhesitatingly receive the projection of his soul. Although such a choice is often regarded and felt as altogether ideal, it may turn out that the man has manifestly married his own worst weakness. This would explain some highly remarkable conjunctions. It seems to me, therefore, that apart from the influence of woman there is also the man's own femininity to explain the feminine nature of the soul-complex. There is no question here of any linguistic "accident," of the k ind that m akes the s un f eminine i n G erman a nd masculine in other languages. We have, in this matter, the testimony of art from all ages, and besides that the famous question: habet mulier animam? Most men, probably, who have any psychological insight at all will know what Rider Haggard means by "She-who-must-be-obeyed," and will also recognize the chord that is struck when they read Benoit's description of Antinea.2 Moreover they know a t o nce t he kind of woman w ho m ost r eadily e mbodies this mysterious factor, of which they have so vivid a premonition. The wide recognition accorded to such books shows that there m ust be s ome s upra-individual qua lity i n this image of t he anima,3 something that does not owe a fleeting existence simply to its individual uniqueness, but is far more typical, with roots that go deeper than t he ob vious s urface a ttachments I have po inted ou t. B oth R ider Haggard and Benoit give unmistak2 Cf. Rider Haggard. She; Benolt, L'Atlantide. 3 Cf. Psychological Types, DeL 48, "Soul." [Also "Concerning the Archetypes, with Special Reference to the Anima Concept" and "The Psychological Aspects of the Kore."-EDITORS.] 18

9


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

able

utterance to this supposition in the historical aspect of their anima 00

\01

102

figures. As we know, there is no human experience, nor would experience be possible a t a ll, without the i ntervention of a s ubjective aptitude. What is this subjective aptitude? Ultimately it c onsists in an innate psychic structure which allows man to have experiences of this kind. T hus t he whole nature of man pr esupposes w oman, both physically and spiritually. His system is tuned in to woman from the start, just a s i t is pr epared f or a q uite definite w orld where t here is water, light, a ir, salt, c arbohydrates, e te. The f orm of t he world i nto which he is born is already inborn in him as a virtual image. Likewise parents, w ife, c hildren, birth, a nd death a re i nborn i n him a s v irtual images, as psychic aptitudes. These a priori categories have by nature a collective character; they are images of parents, wife, and children in general, a nd a re n ot individual pr edestinations. W e m ust t herefore think of these images as lacking in solid content, hence as unconscious. They only acquire solidity, influence, and eventual consciousness in the e ncounter w ith e mpirical f acts, w hich touch the un conscious aptitude and quicken it to life. They are in a sense the deposits of all our ancestral experiences, but they are not the experiences themselves. So at least it seems to us, in the present limited state of our knowledge. (I must confess that I have never yet found infallible evidence for the inheritance of m emory i mages, but I do not r egard it as po sitively precluded t hat i n addition to t hese c ollective de posits which c ontain nothing specifically individual, there may also be inherited memories that are individually determined.) An inherited collective image of woman exists in a man's unconscious, with t he help of w hich he a pprehends t he nature of woman. T his inherited image i s t he t hird i mportant source f or the femininity of the soul. As the reader will have grasped, we are not concerned here with a philosophical, m uch less a r eligious, concept of t he s oul, bu t with the psychological recognition of the existence of a semiconscious psychic c omplex, having partial a utonomy of f unction. C learly, t his recognition ha s a s m uch or a s l ittle to do with philosophical or religious c onceptions o f t he so ul, a s p sychology ha s a s m uch or a s little to do with philosophy or religion. I have no wish to embark here on a "battle of the facul190


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

ties," nor do I seek to demonstrate either to the philosopher or to the theologian what exactly he means by "soul." I must, however, restrain both of them from prescribing what the psychologist ought to mean by "soul." The quality of personal immortality so fondly attributed to the soul by religion is, for science, no more than a psychological indicium which is already included in the idea of autonomy. The quality of personal immortality is by no means a constant attribute of the soul as the primitive sees it, nor even immortality as such. But setting this view aside as altogether inaccessible to science, the immediate meaning of "immortality" is simply a psychic activity that transcends the limits of consciousness. "Beyond the grave" or "on the other side of death" means, psychologically, "beyond consciousness." There is positively nothing else it could mean, since statements about immortality can only be made by the living, who, as such, are not exactly in a position to pontificate about conditions "beyond the grave." 3째3 The autonomy of the soul-complex naturally lends support to the notion of an invisible, personal entity that apparently lives in a world very different from ours. Consequently, once the activity of the soul is felt to be that of an autonomous entity having no ties with our mortal substance, it is but a step to imagining that this entity must lead an entirely independent existence, perhaps in a world of invisible things. Yet it is not immediately clear why the invisibility of this independent entity should simultaneously imply its immortality. The quality of immortality might easily derive from another fact to which I have already alluded, namely the characteristically historical aspect of the soul. Rider Haggard has given one of the best descriptions of this in She. When the Buddhists say that progressive perfection through meditation awakens memories of former incarnations, they are no doubt referring to the same psychological reality, the only difference being that they ascribe the historical factor not to the soul but to the Self (atman). It is altogether in keeping with the thoroughly extraverted attitude of the Western mind so far, that immortality should be ascribed, both by feeling and by tradition, to a soul which we distinguish more or less from our ego, and which also differs from the ego on account of its feminine qualities. It would be entirely logical if, by deepening that neglected, introverted side of our spiritual culture, there 191


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS were to take place in us a transformation more akin to the Eastern frame of mind, where the quality of immortality would transfer itself from the ambiguous figure of the soul (anima) to the self. For it is essentially the overvaluation of the material object without that constellates a spiritual and immortal figure within (obviously for the purpose of compensation and selfregulation). Fundamentally, the historical factor does not attach only to the archetype of the feminine, but to all archetypes whatsoever, i.e., to every inherited unit, mental as well as physical. Our life is indeed the same as it ever was. At all events, in our sense of the word it is not transitory; for the same physiological and psychological processes that have been man's for hundreds of thousands of years still endure, instilling into our inmost hearts this profound intuition of the "eternal" continuity of the living. But the self, as an inclusive term that embraces our whole living organism, not only contains the deposit and totality of all past life, but is also a point of departure, the fertile soil from which all future life will spring. This premonition of futurity is as clearly impressed upon our innermost feelings as is the historical aspect. The idea of immortality follows legitimately from these psychological premises. 304 In the Eastern view the concept of the anima, as we have stated it here, is lacking, and so, logically, is the concept of a persona. This i s cer tainly no acci dent, f or, as I h ave al ready i ndicated, a compensatory relationship exists between persona and an1ma. 305 The persona is a complicated system of relations between the individual consciousness and society, fittingly enough a kind of mask, designed o n the one ha nd to m ake a de finite impression upon o thers, and, on the other, to conceal the true nature of the individual. That the latter function is superfluous could be maintained only by one who is so identified with his persona that he no longer knows himself; and that the former is unnecessary could only occur to one who is quite unconscious of t he t rue nature of his f ellows. S ociety e xpects, a nd i ndeed m ust expect, every individual to play the part assigned to him as perfectly as possible, s o t hat a m an w ho i s a pa rson m ust not o nly c arry out hi s official f unctions objectively, but m ust a t a ll times a nd in a ll circumstances p lay the r ole o f p arson i n a f lawless m anner. So ciety demands this as a kind of surety; each must stand at his

192


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

306

post, here a cobbler, there a poet. No man is expected to be both. Nor is it advisable to be both, for that would be "odd." Such a man would be "different" from other people, not quite reliable. In the academic world he w ould be a d ilettante, in p olitics a n " unpredictable" q uantity, in religion a f ree-thinker-in s hort, he w ould a lways be suspected of unreliability and incompetence, because society is persuaded that only the c obbler w ho i s n ot a poe t c an s upply w orkmanlike s hoes. T o present a n u nequivocal f ace t o t he w orld i s a m atter o f p ractical importance: t he av erage m an-the onl y k ind society kn ows a nything aboutmust ke ep hi s nose to one thing i n or der to a chieve a nything worth while, two would be too much. Our society is undoubtedly set on such an ideal. It is therefore not surprising that everyone who wants to get o n m ust take t hese e xpectations into a ccount. Obviously n o o ne could c ompletely submerge h is individuality i n these e xpectations; hence t he c onstruction of a n a rtificial p ersonality b ecomes an unavoidable ne cessity. The de mands of pr opriety a nd g ood m anners are an added inducement to assume a becoming mask. What p.;oes on behind the m ask is t hen c alled " private lif e." T his p ainfully f amiliar division of c onsciousness i nto t wo f igures, often p reposterously different, is an incisive psychological operation that is bound to have repercussions on the unconscious. The construction of a collectively suitable persona means a formidable c oncession t o the e xternal w orld, a genuine s elfsacrifice which dr ives the e go straight in to identification w ith th e persona, s o that people really do exist who believe they are what they pretend to be. The "soullessness" of such an attitude is, however, only apparent, for under no c ircumstances will the unc onscious tolerate this shifting of the centre of gravity. When we examine such cases critically, we find that t he ex cellence o f t he m ask i s co mpensated b y t he "private l ife" going on behind i t. T he pious D rummond onc e l amented t hat " bad temper i s the v ice of the virtuous." W hoever b uilds up t oo go od a persona f or himself naturally ha s t o pa y f or it with i rritability. Bismarck ha d hys terical w eeping f its, W agner i ndulged i n correspondence a bout the be lts of s ilk dr essing-gowns, N i etzsche wrote l etters to h is " dear l ama," G oethe h eld c onversations w ith Eckermann, e tc. B ut there a re subtler things than the ba nal lapses of heroes. I once made the acquaintance of a very venerable personage-in 193


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

fact, one m ight e asily c all h im a saint. I stalked r ound him f or three whole days, but never a mortal failing did I find in him. My feeling of inferiority gr ew om inous, a nd I w as be ginning to t hink s eriously of how I might better myself. Then, 'on the fourth day, his wife came to consult me .... Well, nothing of the sort has ever happened to me since. But this I did learn: that any man who becomes one with his persona can ch eerfully l et al l d isturbances m anifest t hemselves t hrough hi s wife without her noticing it, though she pays for her self-sacrifice with a bad neurOSIS. These identifications with a social role are a very fruitful source of neuroses. A m an c annot ge t r id of hi mself i n f avour o f a n a rtificial ~0 7 personality without punishment. Even the attempt to do so brings on, in all or dinary c ases, u nconscious r eactions in the f orm o f ba d m oods, affects, phobi as, obs essive i deas, ba ckslidings, v ices, et c. T he s ocial "strong m an" is i n his pr ivate life often a m ere c hild w here his ow n states of f eeling a re c oncerned; hi s d iscipline i n pub lic ( which he demands q uite particularly of o thers) g oes m iserably t o p ieces in private. His "happiness in his work" assumes a woeful countenance at home; his "spotless" public morality looks strange indeed behind the mask-we will not mention deeds, but only' fantasies, and the wives of such men would have a pretty tale to tell. As to his selfless altruism, his children have decided views about that. To the degree that the world invites the individual to identify with the mask, he is delivered over to influences from within. "High rests on low," s ays L ao-tzu. A n opposite f orces i ts way u p f rom i nside; it is 3째8 exactly a s though the u nconscious s uppressed the e go with t he ve ry same p ower w hich d rew the eg o i nto t he p ersona. T he ab sence o f resistance o utwardly ag ainst t he l ure o f t he p ersona m eans a s imilar weakness inwardly against the i nfluence of the unconscious. Outwardly an effective and powerful role is played, while inwardly an effeminate weakness develops in face of every influence coming from the unc onscious. M oods, vagaries, t imidity, e ven a l imp s exuality (culminating in impotence) gradually gain the upper hand. The persona, the ideal picture of a man as he should be, is inwardly compensated by feminine weakness, and as the individual outwardly plays the strong man, so he becomes inwardly a woman, i.e., the anima, for it is the anima that reacts to the 309 194


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

310

311

persona. B ut be cause t he inner w orld i s da rk a nd i nvisible t o t he extraverted consciousness, and because a man is all the less capable of conceiving his weaknesses the more he is identified with the persona, the persona's counterpart, t he anima, remains completely in the da rk and is at once projected, so that our hero comes under the heel of his wife's slipper. I f this r esults in a c onsiderable increase of he r power, she w ill a cquit herself none t oo w ell. S he be comes i nferior, t hus providing her husband with the welcome proof that it is not he, the hero, who is inferior in private, but his wife. In return the wife can cherish the illusion, so attractive to many, that at least she has married a hero, unperturbed by her own uselessness. This little game of illusion is often taken to be the whole meaning of life. Just a s, f or t he pur pose of i ndividuation, or s elf-realization, i t is essential f or a m an t o distinguish be tween w hat he i s a nd how he appears to himself a nd to o thers, so it i s a lso ne cessary f or the same purpose t hat he s hould be come c onscious of h is i nvisible s ystem of relations to the unconscious, and especially of the anima, so as to be able to distinguish himself from her. One cannot of course distinguish oneself from something unconscious. In the matter of the persona it is easy enough to make it clear to a m an that he and his office are two different things. But it is very difficult for a man to distinguish himself from his a nima, the m ore so be cause she is i nvisible. I ndeed, he ha s first to contend with the prejudice that everything coming from inside him springs from the truest depths of his being. The "strong man" will perhaps concede that in private life he is singularly undisciplined, but that, h e says, is just h is " weakness" w ith w hich, a s it w ere, h e proclaims his solidarity. Now there is in this tendency a cultural legacy that is no t to be de spised; f or w hen a m an r ecognizes th at h is ideal persona is responsible for his anything but ideal anima, his ideals are shattered, the world becomes ambiguous, he becomes ambiguous even to himself. He is seized by doubts about goodness, and what is worse, he doubts his own good intentions. When one considers how much our private i dea of go od i ntentions i s bound up with v ast hi storical assumptions, it will readily be understood that it is pleasanter and more in ke eping w ith our pr esent vi ew of t he w orld to de plore a pe rsonal weakness than to shatter ideals. But since the unconscious factors act as determinants no less 195


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS than the factors that regulate the life of society, and are no less collective, I might just as well learn to distinguish between what I want and what the unconscious thrusts upon me, as to see what my office demands of me and what I myself desire. At first the only thing that is at all clear is the incompatibility of the demands coming from without and from within, with the ego standing between them, as between hammer and anvil. But over against this ego, tossed like a shuttlecock between the outer and inner demands, there stands some scarcely definable arbiter, which I would on no account label with the deceptive name "conscience," although, taken in its best sense, the word fits that arbiter very aptly indeed. What we have made of this "conscience" Spitteler has described with unsurpassable humour.4 Hence we should strenuously avoid this particular signification. We should do far better to realize that the tragic counterplay between inside and outside (depicted in Job and Faust as the wager with God) represents, at bottom, the energetics of the life process, the polar tension that is necessary for self-regulation. However different, to all intents and purposes, these opposing forces may be, their fundamental meaning and desire is the life of the individual: they always fluctuate round this centre of balance. Just because they are inseparably related through opposition, they also unite in a mediatory meaning, which, willingly or unwillingly, is born out of the individual and is therefore divined by him. He has a strong feeling of what should be and what could be. To depart from this divination means error, aberration, illness. 12 It is probably no accident that our modern notions of "personal" and "personality" derive from the word persona. I can assert that my ego is personal or a personality, and in exactly the same sense I can say that my persona is a personality with which I identify myself more or l ess. The f act t hat I then possess t wo pe rsonalities i s not so remarkable, s ince ev ery a utonomous or e ven r elatively a utonomous complex has the peculiarity of appearing as a personality, i.e., of being personified. T his c an be observed m ost r eadily i n the s o-called spiritualistic m anifestations of a utomatic w riting a nd the l ike. T he sentences produced are always personal statements and are propounded in the first person singular, as though behind every utterance there stood 4 Psychological Types (1923 edn .• pp. 212f.).

196


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

313

~1 4

315

316

an actual personality. A naIve intelligence at once thinks of spirits. The same sort of thing is also observable in the hallucinations of the insane, although these, more clearly than the first, can often be recognized as mere t houghts or f ragments of thoughts w hose c onnection w ith t he conscious personality is immediately apparent to everyone. The t endency of t he r elatively a utonomous c omplex t o d irect personification a lso e xplains w hy the pe rsona e xercises s uch a "personal" effect that the ego is all too easily deceived as to which is the "true" personality. Now, everything that is true of the persona and of all autonomous complexes i n general also h olds true of the an ima. She likewise is a personality, and this is why she is so easily projected upon a woman. So l ong a s the a nima i s u nconscious s he i s a lways projected, f or everything unconscious is projected. The first bearer of the soul-image is always the mother; later it is borne by those women who arouse the man's feelings, whether in a positive or a negative sense. Because the mother is t he f irst be arer of the soul-image, separation from her is a delicate and important matter of the greatest educational significance. Accordingly among primitives we find a large number of rites designed to or ganize t his separation. The m ere f act of becoming adult, a nd of outward s eparation, i s not e nough; i mpressive i nitiations i nto t he "men's h ouse" an d cer emonies o f r ebirth ar e s till n eeded i n o rder t o make t he s eparation f rom t he m other ( and he nce f rom c hildhood) entirely effective. Just as t he f ather act s as a p rotection ag ainst t he dangers o f t he external w orld a nd t hus s erves his s on a s a m odel pe rsona, s o t he mother protects him against the dangers that threaten from the darkness of hi s p syche. In the pube rty r ites, therefore, t he i nitiate r eceives instruction about these things of "the other side," so that he is put in a position to dispense with his mother's protection. The m odern c ivilized m an ha s to f orgo this pr imitive but nonetheless ad mirable s ystem o f ed ucation. The co nsequence i s that the anima, in the form of the mother-imago, is transferred to the wife; and t he m an, as s oon as h e m arries, b ecomes ch ildish, s entimental, dependent, a nd s ubservient, or e lse truculent, t yrannical, hypersensitive, a lways t hinking a bout t he prestige of hi s superior masculinity. The last is of course merely the reverse 197


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

of the first. The safeguard against the unconscious, which is what his mother meant to him, is not replaced by anything in the modern man's education; unconsciously, therefore, his ideal of marriage is so arranged that his wife has t o t ake ove r t he m agical role o f t he m other. U nder the cl oak o f t he ideally exclusive marriage he is really seeking his mother's protection, and thus he plays into the hands of his wife's possessive instincts. His fear of the dark i ncalculable p ower o f t he unconscious g ives his w ife a n i llegitimate authority ov er him, a nd f orges s uch a d angerously c lose union t hat t he marriage is permanently on the brink of explosion from internal tension-or else, out of protest, he flies to the other extreme, with the same results. :17 I am of the opinion that it is absolutely essential for a certain type of modern man to recognize his distinction not only from the persona, but f rom t he anima a s w ell. F or t he most p art o ur c onsciousness, in true "\\lestern style, looks outwards, and the inner world remains in darkness. But this d ifficulty c an b e o vercome ea sily en ough, i f o nly w e w ill m ake t he effort to apply the same concentration and criticism to the psychic material which manifests itself, not outside, but in our private lives. So accustomed are we to keep a shamefaced silence about this other side -we even tremble before o ur w ives, l est t hey betray u s!-and, i f f ound o ut, t o make rue ful confessions of "weakness," that there would seem to be only one method of education, namely, to crush or repress the weaknesses as much as possible or at least hide them from the public. But that gets us nowhere. p8 Perhaps I can best explain what has to be done if I use the persona as an ex ample. H ere ev erything i s p lain and s traightforward, whereas with the anima all is dark, to Western eyes anyway. When the anima continually thwarts the good intentions of the conscious mind, by contriving a private life that stands in sorry contrast to the dazzling persona, it is exactly the s ame as when a naive i ndividual, who has not t he ghost of a p ersona, encounters t he m ost p ainful d ifficulties i n his pa ssage through t he w orld. There are i ndeed p eople w ho l ack a developed p ersona"Canadians w ho know not Europe's sham politeness"-blundering from one social solecism to the next, perfectly harmless and innocent, soulful bores or appealing children, or, if t hey a re w omen, s pectral C assandras d readed f or t heir tactlessness, eternally misunderstood, never knowing what they are about, al198


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

319

320

ways taking forgiveness for granted, blind to the world, hopeless dreamers. From them we can see how a neglected persona works, and what one must do t o remedy t he e vil. S uch pe ople c an a void d isappointments and an infinity of sufferings, scenes, and social catastrophes only by learning to see how men behave in the world. They must learn to understand what society expects of them; they must realize that there are factors and persons in the world far above them; they must know that what they do has a meaning for others, and s o f orth. N aturally all t his is c hild's pl ay for one who ha s a properly developed persona. But if we reverse the picture and confront the man who possesses a brilliant persona with the anima, and, for the sake of comparison, set him beside the man with no persona, then we shall see that the l atter is j ust as well informed about t he a nima and her affairs as the former is about the world. The use which either makes of his knowledge can just as easily be abused, in fact it is more than likely that it will be. The man with the persona is blind to the existence of inner realities, just as the other is blind to the reality of the world, which for him has merely the value of an amusing or fantastic playground. But the fact of inner realities and their un qualified recognition is obvi ously the sine qua non for a serious consideration of the anima problem. If the external world is, for me, simply a phantasm, how should I take the trouble to establish a complicated. s ystem o f r elationship a nd ad aptation to i t? Equally, t he "nothing but fantasy" attitude will never persuade me to regard my anima manifestations as anything more than fatuous weakness. If, however, I take the line that the world is outside and inside, that reality falls to the share of both, I must l ogically a ccept t he u psets and a nnoyances t hat come t o m e from inside as symptoms of faulty adaptation to the conditions of that inner world. No more than the blows rained on the innocent abroad can be healed by moral r epression will it h elp h im r esignedly to catalogue hi s "weaknesses." Here are r easons, i ntentions, co nsequences, which c an b e tackled by will and understanding. Take, for example, the "spotless" man of honour a nd p ublic b enefactor, w hose t antrums a nd e xplosive m oodiness terrify his wife and children. What is the anima doing here? We can see it at once if we just allow things to take their natural course. Wife and children will become estranged; a vac199


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

3 21

uum will form about him. At first he will bewail the hardheartedness of his f amily, a nd w ill be have if possible e ven m ore vi lely than before. That will make the estrangement absolute. If the good spirits have not utterly forsaken him, he will after a time notice his isolation, and in his loneliness he will begin to understand how he caused the estrangement. Perhaps, aghast at himself, he wiIJ ask, "What sort of devil has got into me?"-without of c ourse seeing t he m eaning of this m etaphor. T hen follow remorse, reconciliation, oblivion, repression, and, in next to no time, a new e xplosion. C learly, t he a nima is t rying to e nforce a separation. T his tendency i s i n no body's interest. T he anima c omes between them like a jealous mistress who tries to alienate the man from his family. An official post or any other advantageous social position can do t he same t hing, bu t t here w e c an unde rstand t he f orce of t he attraction. W hence does t he a nima ob tain t he pow er t o w ield such enchantment? On the analogy with the persona there must be values or some other im portant a nd influential f actors lying in the ba ckground like s eductive promises. I n s uch m atters we m ust guard a gainst rationalizations. Our f irst thought is that the man of honour is on the lookout for another woman. That might be-it might even be arranged by the anima as the most effective means to the desired end. Such an arrangement s hould no t be m isconstrued a s a n e nd i n itself, f or t he blameless gentleman who is correctly married according to the law can be just as correctly divorced according to the law, which does not alter his fundamental attitude one iota. The old picture has merely received a new frame. As a matter of fact, this arrangement is a very common method of implementing a separation-and of hampering a final solution. Therefore i t is m ore r easonable n ot to a ssume t hat such a n o bvious possibility is t he e nd-purpose of t he s eparation. W e w ould be better advised to investigate what is behind the tendencies of the anima. The first step is what I would call the objectivation of the anima, that is, the strict refusal to r egard the trend towards separation a s a weakness of one's own. Only when this has been done can one face the anima with the question, "Why do you want this separation?" To put the question in this personal way has the great advantage of recognizing the anima as a pe rsonality, a nd of m aking a r elationship p ossible. T he m ore personally she is taken the better. 200


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

322

323

To anyone accustomed to proceed purely intellectually and rationally, this may seem altogether too ridiculous. It would indeed be the he ight of a bsurdity if a m an tried to ha ve a c onversation with hi s persona, w hich he r ecognized m erely a s a ps ychological m eans of relationship. But it is absurd only for the man who has a persona. If he has none, he is in this point no different from the primitive who, as we know, has on ly o ne f oot in w hat we c ommonly c all r eality. With t he other foot he stands in a world of spirits, which is quite real to him. Our model case behaves, in the world, like a modern European; but in the world of spirits he is the child of a troglodyte. He must therefore submit to living in a kind of prehistoric kindergarten until he has got the right idea of the powers and factors which rule that other world. Hence he is quite r ight t o tr eat t he an ima as an au tonomous pe rsonality a nd t o address personal questions to her. I mean this as an actual technique. We know that practically everyone has not only the peculiarity, but also the faculty, of holding a conversation with himself. Whenever we are in a predicament we ask ourselves (or whom else?), "What shall I do?" either aloud or beneath our breath, and we (or who else?) supply the answer. Since it is our intention to learn what we can about the foundations of our being, this little matter of living in a metaphor should not bother us. We have to accept it as a symbol of our primitive backwardness (or of such naturalness as is stilI, mercifully, left to us) that we can, like the Negro, discourse personally with our "snake." The psyche not being a unity but a contradictory multiplicity of complexes, the dissociation required for our dialectics with the anima is not so terribly difficult. The art of it consists only in allowing our invisible partner to make herself heard, in putting the mechanism of expression momentarily at her disposal, without being overcome by the distaste one naturally feels at playing such an apparently ludicrous game with oneself, or by doubts as to the genuineness of the voice of one's interlocutor. This latter point is technically very important: we are so in the habit of identifying ourselves with the thoughts that come to us that we invariably assume we have made them. Curiously enough, it is precisely the most impossible thoughts for which we feel the greatest subjective responsibility. If we were more conscious of the inflexible universal laws that govern even the wildest and most wanton fantasy, we 201


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS might perhaps be in a better position to see these thoughts above all others as objective occurrences, just as we see dreams, which nobody supposes to be deliberate or arbitrary inventions. It certainly requires the greatest objectivity and absence of prejudice to give the "other side" the opportunity for perceptible psychic activity. As a result of the repressive attitude of the conscious mind, the other side is driven into indirect and purely symptomatic manifestations, mostly of an emotional kind, and only in moments of overwhelming affectivity can fragments of the unconscious come to the surface in the form of thoughts or images. The inevitable accompanying symptom is that the ego momentarily identifies with these utterances, only to revoke them in the same breath. And, indeed, the things one says when in the grip of an affect sometimes seem very strange and daring. But they are easily forgotten, or wholly denied. This mechanism of deprecation and denial naturally has to be reckoned with if one wants to adopt an objective attitude. The habit of rushing in to correct and criticize is already strong enough in our tradition, and it is as a rule further reinforced by fear-a fear that can be confessed neither to oneself nor to others, a fear of insidious truths, of dangerous knowledge, of disagreeable verifications, in a word, fear of all those things that cause so many of us to flee from being alone with ourselves as from the plague. We say that it is egoistic or "morbid" to be preoccupied with oneself; one's own company is the worst, "it makes you melancholy"-such are the glowing testimonials accorded to our human make-up. They are evidently deeply ingrained in our Western minds. Whoever thinks in this way has obviously never asked himself what possible pleasure other people could find in the company of such a miserable coward. Starting from the fact that in a state of affect one often surrenders involuntarily to the truths of the other side, would it not be far better to make use of an affect so as to give the other side an opportunity to speak? It could therefore be said just as truly that one should cultivate the art of conversing with oneself in the setting provided by an affect, as though the affect itself were speaking without regard to our rational criticism. So long as the affect is speaking, criticism must be withheld. But once it has presented its case, we should begin criticizing as conscientiously as though a real person closely connected with us were our interlocutor. Nor should the matter

202


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

rest t here, bu t statement a nd a nswer m ust f ollow one a nother until a satisfactory en d t o the discussion i s r eached. W hether t he r esult is satisfactory or not, only subjective feeling can decide. Any humbug is of c ourse quite useless. Scrupulous ho nesty w ith one self a nd no r ash anticipation of w hat t he ot her s ide m ight c onceivably s ay a re t he indispensable conditions of this technique for educating the anima. 32 There is, however, something to be said for this characteris4 tically Western fear of the other side. It is not entirely without justification, quite apart from the fact that it is real. We can understand at once the fear that the child and the primitive have of the great unknown. We have the same childish fear of our inner side, where we likewise touch upon a great unknown world. All we have is the affect, the fear, without knowing that this is a world-fear-for the world of affects is invisible. We have either purely theoretical prejudices against it, or superstitious ideas. One cannot even talk about the unconscious before many educated people without being accused of mysticism. The fear is legitimate in so far as our rational Weltanschauung with its scientific and moral certitudes-so hotly believed in because so deeply questionable-is shattered by the facts of the other side. If only one could avoid them, then the emphatic advice of the Philistine to "let sleeping dogs lie" would be the only truth worth advocating. And here I would expressly point out that I am not recommending the above technique as either necessary or even useful to any person not driven to it by necessity. The stages, as I said, are many, and there are greybeards who die as innocent as babes in arms, and in this year of grace troglodytes are still being born. There are truths which belong to the future, truths which belong to the past, and truths which belong to no time. I can imagine someone using this technique out of a kind of holy inquisitiveness, some youth, perhaps, who would like to set wings to his feet, not because of lameness, but because he yearns for the sun. But a grown man, with too many illusions dissipated, will submit to this inner humiliation and surrender only . if forced, for why should he let the terrors of childhood again have t heir way with h im? I t is n o l ight m atter to stand b etween a 325 day-world of exploded ideals and discredited values, and a nightworld of apparently senseless fantasy. The weirdness of this 20 3


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

326

standpoint is in fact so gr eat that there is pr obably no body who does not r each o ut f or security, e ven t hough it be a r eaching ba ck to t he mother who shielded his childhood from the terrors of night. Whoever is afraid must needs be dependent; a weak thing needs support. That is why the primitive m ind, f rom deep psychological ne cessity, be got religious instruction a nd e mbodied i t i n m agician a nd p riest. Extra ecclesiam nulla salus is still a va lid truth today-for those who can go back to it. F or the few who cannot, there is only de pendence upon a human being, a h umbler a nd a prouder de pendence, a weaker a nd a stronger support, so it seems to me, than any other. What can one say of the Protestant? He has neither church nor priest, but only Godand even God becomes doubtful. The reader may ask in some consternation, "But what on earth does the anima do, that such double insurances are needed before one c an c ome to terms with her?" I w ould r ecommend m y r eader t o study the c omparative h istory of r eligion s o i ntently a s t o f ill these dead c hronicles with the e motional l ife of those w ho l ived t hese religions. Then he will get some idea of what lives on the other side. The old religions with their sublime and ridiculous, their friendly and fiendish s ymbols di d not dr op from t he blue, bu t w ere born of t his human soul that dwells within us at this moment. All those things, their primal forms, live on in us and may at any time burst in upon us with annihilating force, in the guise of mass-suggestions against which the individual is defenceless. Our fearsome gods have only changed their names: t hey now r hyme with ism. Or ha s a nyone the nerve t o c laim that the World War or Bolshevism was an ingenious invention? Just as outwardly w e l ive i n a w orld where a whole c ontinent m ay be submerged a t a ny m oment, or a p ole be shifted, or a n ew pe stilence break out, so i nwardly w e l ive in a w orld where a t a ny m oment something similar may occur, albeit in the form of an idea, but no less dangerous a nd untrustworthy f or t hat. F ailure t o a dapt t o t his inner world is a ne gligence e ntailing j ust a s serious co nsequences as ignorance a nd ineptitude in the outer world. I t is after a ll only a tiny fraction of humanity, living mainly on that thickly populated peninsula of Asia which juts out into the Atlantic Ocean, and calling themselves "cultured," who, be cause they l ack a ll c ontact w ith na ture, have h it upon the idea that religion is a peculiar kind of

2째4


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

mental disturbance of un discoverable pur port. V iewed f rom a s afe distance, say from central Africa or Tibet, it would certainly look as if this fraction had projected its own unconscious mental derangements upon nations still possessed of healthy instincts. 3 27 Because the things of the inner world influence us all the more powerfully for being unconscious, it is essential for anyone who intends to make progress in self-culture (and does not all culture begin with the individual?) to objectivate the effects of the anima and then try to understand what contents underlie those effects. In this way he adapts t o, a nd i s pr otected a gainst, t he invisible. No a daptation c an result without concessions to both worlds. From a consideration of the claims of t he i nner a nd o uter worlds, or r ather, f rom t he c onflict between them, the possible and the necessary follows. Unfortunately our W estern m ind, l acking a ll c ulture in this r espect, has never ye t devised a concept, nor even a name, for the union of opposites through the middle path) that m ost f undamental i tem o f i nward ex perience, which could respectably be set against the Chinese concept of Tao. It is a t once the m ost i ndividual f act a nd the m ost un iversal, the m ost legitimate fulfilment of the meaning of the individual's life. 328 In the course of my exposition so far, I have kept exclusively to masculine psychology, T he a ni m a, being of f eminine ge nder, i s exclusively a figure that compensates the masculine consciousness. In woman the c ompensating figure is of a masculine character, and can therefore appropriately be termed the animus. If it was no easy task to describe w hat is meant b y t he an ima, t he d ifficulties become almost insuperable when we set out to describe the psychology of the animus. 329 The fact that a man naIvely ascribes his anima reactions to himself, without seeing that he really cannot identify himself with an autonomous c omplex, i s r epeated i n f eminine psychology, t hough if possible in e ven m ore m arked f orm. T his i dentification w ith a n autonomous c omplex is t he e ssential r eason why it i s s o difficult t o understand a nd describe the problem, qu ite a part f rom i ts i nherent obscurity and strangeness. We always start with the naIve assumption that we are masters in our own house. Hence we must first accustom ourselves to the thought that, in our most intimate psychic life as well, we live in a kind of house which has doors and windows to the world, but that, 2째5


33掳

331

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS although the objects or contents of this world act upon us, they do not belong to us. For many people this hypothesis is by no means easy to conceive, just as they do not find it at all easy to understand and to accept the fact that their neighbour's psychology is not necessarily identical with their own. My reader may think that the last remark is something of an exaggeration, since in general one is aware of individual differences. But it must be remembered that our individual conscious psychology develops out of an original state of unconsciousness and therefore of non-differentiation (termed by Levy-Bruhl participation mystique). Consequently, consciousness of differentiation is a relatively late achievement of mankind, and presumably but a relatively small sector of the indefinitely large field of original identity. Differentiation is the essence, the sine qua non of consciousness. Everything unconscious is undifferentiated, and everything that happens unconsciously proceeds on the basis of non-differentiation-that is to say, there is no determining whether it belongs or does not belong to oneself. It cannot be established a priori whether it concerns me, or another, or both. N or does feeling give us any sure clues in this respect. An inferior consciousness cannot eo ipso be ascribed to women; it is merely different from masculine consciousness. But, just as a w oman is often clearly conscious of things which a man is s till groping for in the dark, so there are naturally fields of experience in a man w hich, f or w oman, a re s till w rapped in t he s hadows of non-differentiation, c hiefly th ings in w hich s he h as l ittle in terest. Personal relations are as a rule more important a nd interesting to her than o bjective f acts a nd their in terconnections. The w ide f ields of commerce, pol itics, technology, a nd s cience, the w hole r ealm of t he applied masculine mind, she relegates to the penumbra of consciousness; w hile, on t he o ther hand, s he de velops a m inute consciousness of personal relationships, the infinite nuances of which usually escape the man entirely. We must therefore expect the unconscious of woman to show aspects e ssentially different f rom those f ound i n m an. If I w ere t o attempt to put in a nutshell the difference between man and woman in this respect, i.e., what it is that characterizes the animus as opposed to the anima, I could only say this: as the anima produces moods, so the animus produces opinions)路 and as the

206


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

moods of a man issue from a shadowy background, so the opinions of a woman r est on e qually u nconscious prior a ssumptions. A nimus opinions very often have the character of solid convictions that are not lightly shaken, or of pr inciples w hose va lidity i s s eemingly unassailable. If we analyse these opinions, we immediately come upon unconscious assumptions whose existence must first be inferred; that is to s ay, t he o pinions a re a pparently c onceived as though such assumptions existed. But in reality the ,opinions are not thought out at all; they exist ready made, and they are held so positively and with so much conviction that the woman never has the shadow of a doubt about them. 332 One would be inclined to suppose that the animus, like the anima, personifies itself in a single figure. But this, as experience shows, is true only up to a point, because another factor unexpectedly makes its appearance, which brings about an essentially different situation from that existing in a man. The animus does not appear as one person, but as a plurality of persons. In H. G. Wells' novel Christina Alberta's Father) the heroine, in all that she does or does not do, is constantly under the surveillance of a supreme moral authority, which tells her with remorseless precision and dry matter-of-factness what she is doing and for what motives. Wells calls this authority a "Court of Conscience." This collection of condemnatory judges, a sort of College of Preceptors, corresponds to a personification of the animus. The animus is rather like an assembly of fathers or dignitaries of some kind who lay down incontestable, "rational," ex cathedra judgments. On closer examination these exacting judgments turn out to be largely sayings and opinions scraped together more or less unconsciously from childhood on, and compressed into a canon of average truth, justice, and reasonableness, a compendium of preconceptions which, whenever a conscious and competent judgment is lacking (as not infrequently happens), instantly obliges with an opinion. Sometimes these opinions take the form of so-called sound common sense, sometimes they appear as principles which are like a travesty of education: "People have always done it like this," or "Everybody says it is like that." 333 It goes without saying that the animus is just as often projected as t he an ima. T he m en w ho ar e p articularly s uited t o t hese projections are either walking replicas of God himself, who know all about everything, or else they are misunden;tood

7

20


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE

word-addicts with a vast and windy vocabulary at their command, who translate common or garden reality into the terminology of the sublime. It would be insufficient to characterize the animus merely as a conservative, collective conscience; he is also a neologist who, in flagrant contradiction to his correct opinions, has an extraordinary weakness for difficult and unfamiliar words which act as a pleasant substitute for the odious task of reflection. 334 Like the anima, the animus is a jealous lover. He is an adept at putting, in place of the real man, an opinion about him, the exceedingly disputable grounds for which are never submitted to criticism. Animus opinions are invariably collective, and they override individuals and individual judgments in exactly the same way as the anima thrusts her emotional anticipations and projections between man and wife. If the woman happens to be pretty, these animus opinions have for the man something rather touching and childlike about them, which makes him adopt a benevolent, fatherly, professorial manner. But if the woman does not stir his sentimental side, and competence is expected of her rather than appealing helplessness and stupidity, then her animus opinions irritate the man to death, chiefly because they are based on nothing but opinion for opinion's sake, and "everybody has a right to his own opinions." Men can be pretty venomous here, for it is an inescapable fact that the animus always plays up the anima-and vice versa) of course-so that all further discussion becomes pointless. 335 In intellectual women the animus encourages a critical disputatiousness a nd w ould-be hi ghbrowism, w hich, how ever, c onsists essentially in harping on some irrelevant weak point and nonsensically making it the main one. Or a perfectly lucid discussion gets tangled up in the most maddening way through the introduction of a quite different and i f possible pe rverse po int of v iew. W ithout kn owing it, s uch women a re s olely intent upon e xasperating the m an a nd a re, in consequence, t he m ore c ompletely at the m ercy o f t he an imus. "Unfortunately I a m a lways r ight," o ne of t hese c reatures onc e confessed to me. 336 However, all these traits, as familiar as they are unsavoury, are simply and solely due to the extraversion of the animus. The animus does not belong to the function of conscious relation~hip; his function is rather to facilitate relations with the unconUNCONSCIOUS

208


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

scious. Instead of the woman merely associating opinions with external situations-situations w hich s he o ught t o think a bout c onsciously-the animus, as an associative function, should be directed inwards, where it could a ssociate t he c ontents of t he unc onscious. The t echnique of coming to terms with the animus is the same in principle as in the case of the anima; only here the woman must learn to criticize and hold her opinions a t a di stance; not i n or der to r epress t hem, but , by investigating t heir or igins, t o pe netrate m ore de eply i nto t he background, where she will then discover the primordial images, just as the man does in his dealings with the anima. The animus is the deposit, as it were, of all woman's ancestral experiences of man-and not on ly that, h e i s al so a cr eative an d p rocreative b eing, n ot i n t he s ense o f masculine creativity, but in the sense that he brings forth something we might call the AO"'(OS (T7r~p,[LaTL}(6s, the spermatic word. Just as a man brings forth his work as a complete creation out of his inner feminine nature, so t he i nner m asculine s ide of a w oman br ings f orth c reative s eeds which ha ve the p ower to f ertilize the f eminine side of t he m an. This would be the femme insPiratrice who, if falsely cultivated, can turn into the w orst kind of dogm atist a nd high-handed pe dagogue-a r egular "animus hound," as one of my women patients aptly expressed it. A woman possessed by the animus is always in danger of losing her femininity, he r a dapted f eminine pe rsona, j ust a s a m an i n l ike circumstances runs the risk of effeminacy. These psychic changes of sex are due entirely to the fact that a function which belongs inside has 337 been turned outside. The reason for this perversion is clearly the failure to gi ve a dequate r ecognition t o a n i nner w orld which s tands autonomously o pposed t o t he ou ter w orld, a nd m akes j ust a s serious demands on our capacity for adaptation. With r egard t o t he pl urality of t he a nimus a s di stinguished f rom what we might call the "uni-personality" of the anima, this remarkable fact s eems t o m e t o b e a co rrelate o f t he co nscious at titude. T he conscious attitude of woman is in general far more exclusively personal than that of man. Her world is made up of fathers and mothers, brothers 338 and s isters, hu sbands a nd c hildren. T he r est of t he world c onsists likewise of f amilies, w ho n od to e ach o ther b ut are, i n the m ain, interested essentially in

9

20


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE

themselves. The man's world is the nation, the state, business concerns, etc. His family is simply a means to an end, one of the foundations of the state, and his wife is not necessarily the woman for him (at any rate not as the woman means it when she says "my man"). The general means more to him than the personal; his world consists of a multitude of co-ordinated factors, whereas her world, outside her husband, terminates in a sort of cosmic mist. A passionate exclusiveness therefore attaches to the man's anima, and an indefinite variety to the woman's animus. Whereas the man has, floating before him, in clear outlines, the alluring form of a Circe or a Calypso, the animus is better expressed as a bevy of Flying Dutchmen or unknown wanderers from over the sea, never quite clearly grasped, protean, given to persistent and violent motion. These personifications appear especially in dreams, though in concrete reality they can be famous tenors, boxing champions, or great men in far-away, unknown cities. These two crepuscular figures from the dark hinterland of the ps yche-truly t he s emi-grotesque " guardians of t he t hreshold," t o use t he pom pous jargon of t heosophy---can as sume an al most inexhaustible number of shapes, enough to f ill whole volumes. Their complicated transformations are as rich and strange as the world itself, as m anifold a s the limitless v ariety o f th eir c onscious correlate, th e persona. T hey i nhabit t he t wilight s phere, a nd w e c an j ust m ake out that the a utonomous c omplex of a nima a nd a nimus i s e ssentially a psychological f unction that ha s us urped, or r ather r etained, a "personality" on ly be cause this f unction i s i tself a utonomous a nd undeveloped. But already we can see how it is possible to break up the personifications, s ince by m aking t hem c onscious ' we c onvert t hem into br idges to t he unc onscious. I t is be cause we a re n ot using them purposefully as functions that they remain personified c omplexes. So long as t hey ar e i n t his s tate t hey m ust b e accep ted as r elatively independent pe rsonalities. T hey c annot be integrated i nto c onsciousness w hile t heir c ontents r emain u nknown. The p urpose of t he dialectical process i s t o br ing these c ontents i nto t he l ight; a nd o nly when t his t ask ha s be en c ompleted, a nd t he c onscious m ind ha s become sufficiently familiar with the unconscious processes reflected in the anima, will the anima be felt simply as a function.

UNCONSCIOUS

339

210


ANIMA AND ANIMUS

I do not expect every reader to grasp right away what is meant by animus and anima. But I hope he will at least have gained the impression that it is not a question of anything "metaphysical," but far rather of empirical facts which could equally well be expressed in rational and abstract language. I have purposely avoided too abstract a terminology because, in matters of this kind, which hitherto have been so inaccessible to our experience, it is useless to present the reader with an intellectual formulation. It is far more to the point to give him some conception of what the actual possibilities of experience are. Nobody can really understand these things unless he has experienced them himself. I am therefore much more interested in pointing out the possible ways to such experience than in devising intellectual formulae which, for lack of experience, must necessarily remain an empty web of words. Unfortunately there are all too many who learn the words by heart and add the experiences in their heads, thereafter abandoning themselves, according to temperament, either to credulity or to criticism. We are concerned here with a new questioning, a new-and yet age-oldfield of psychological experience. We shall be able to establish relatively valid theories about it only when the corresponding psychological facts are known to a sufficient number of people. The first things to be discovered are always facts, not theories. Theory-building is the outcome of discussion among many.

34째

211


III THE TECHNIQUE OF DIFFERENTIATION BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE FIGURES OF THE UNCONSCIOUS 341

34

2

I owe it to the reader to give him a detailed example of the specific activity of animus and anima. Unfortunately this material is so enormous and demands so much explanation of symbols that I cannot include such a n a ccount w ithin t he c ompass of this e ssay. I ha ve, however, publ ished s ome of t hese pr oducts w ith a ll t heir s ymbolical associations in a separate work,1 and to this I must refer the reader. In that boo k I s aid not hing a bout t he a nimus, be cause a t t hat t ime t his function was still unknown to me. Nevertheless, if I advise a woman patient to associate her unconscious contents, she will always produce the s ame ki nd of f antasy. The m asculine he ro f igure w ho a lmost unfailingly a ppears i s t he a nimus, a nd the s uccession of fantasy-experiences de monstrates t he gr adual t ransformation a nd dissolution of the autonomous complex. This transformation is the aim of the analysis of the unconscious. I f t here i s no transformation, i t m eans t hat t he de termining influence of the unconscious is unabated, and that it will in some cases persist in m aintaining n eurotic symptoms i n spite of a ll our a nalysis and a ll our u nderstanding. A lternatively, a c ompulsive t ransference will take h old, which i s j ust a s ba d a s a neurosis. O bviously i n such cases no a mount of s uggestion, goo d w ill, a nd pur ely r eductive understanding has helped to break the power of the unconscious. This is n ot to s ay-once a gain I would l ike t o e mphasize t his po int very clearly-that all psychotherapeutic methods are, by and large, useless. I merely want to stress the fact that there are not a few cases where the doctor has to make up his mind to deal fundamentally with the uncon1 Symbols of Transformation. 212


THE TECHNIQUE OF DIFFERENTIATION

343

scious, to come to a real settlement with it. This is of course something very different from interpretation. In the latter case it is taken for granted that the doctor knows beforehand, so as to be able to interpret. But in the case of a real settlement it is not a question of interpretation: it is a question of releasing unconscious processes and letting them come into the conscious mind in the form of fantasies. We can try our hand at interpreting these fantasies if we like. In many cases it may be quite important for the patient to have some idea of the meaning of the fantasies produced. But it is of vital importance that he should experience them to the full and, in so far as intellectual understanding belongs to the totality of experience, also understand them. Yet I would not give priority to understanding. Naturally the doctor must be able to assist the patient in his understanding, but, since he will not and indeed cannot understand everything, the doctor should assiduously guard against clever feats of interpretation. For the important thing is not to interpret and understand the fantasies, but primarily to experience them. Alfred Kubin has given a very good description of the unconscious in his book Die andere Seite)' that is, he has described what he, as an artist, experienced of the unconscious. It is an artistic experience which, in the deeper meaning of human experipnce, is incomplete. I would like to recommend an attentive reading of this book to everybody who is interested in these questions. He will then discover the incbmpleteness I speak of: the vision is experienced artistically, but not humanly. By "human" experience I mean that the person of the author should not just be included passively in the vision, but that he should face the figures of the vision actively and reactively, with full consciousness. I would level the same criticism at the authoress of the fantasies dealt with in the book mentioned above; she, too, merely stands opposite the fantasies forming themselves out of the unconscious, perceiving them, or at best passively enduring them. But a real settlement with the unconscious demands a firmly opposed conscious standpoint. I will try to explain what I mean by an example. One of my patients ha d the f ollowing f antasy: He sees his fiancee running down the road towards the river. It is winter) and the river is frozen. She runs out on the ice) and he follows her. She goes right out) and then the ice breaks) a dark fissure appears) and he 21 3


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

344

is afraid she is going to jump in. And that is what happens: she jumps into the crack) and he watches her sadly. This fragment, although torn out of its context, clearly shows the attitude of the conscious mind: it perceives and passively endures, the fantasy-image is merely seen and felt, it is twodimensional, as it were, because the patient is not sufficiently involved. Therefore the fantasy remains a flat image, concrete and agitating perhaps, but unreal, like a dream. T his unreality c omes f rom the f act that he h imself is n ot playing an active part. If the fantasy happened in reality, he would not be at a loss for some means to prevent his f iancee from committing suicide. He c ould, f or instance, e asily o vertake her a nd r estrain her bodily f rom jumping i nto the c rack. Were he to a ct i n reality a s he acted i n t he f antasy, he would ob viously be pa ralysed, e ither with horror, or because of the u nconscious t hought that he r eally ha s no objection to her committing suicide. The fact that he remains passive in the f antasy m erely e xpresses his a ttitude t o the a ctivity of t he unconscious in general: he is fascinated and stupefied by it. In reality he suffers from all sorts of depressive ideas and convictions; he thinks he is no good, that he has some hopeless hereditary taint, that his brain is d egenerating, et c. T hese n egative f eelings ar e s o m any auto-suggestions w hich he accepts w ithout a rgument. I ntellectually, he can understand them perfectly and recognize them as untrue, but nevertheless t he feelings pe rsist. T hey cannot be attacked by t he intellect because they have no intellectual or rational basis; they are rooted i n an u nconscious, irrational f antasy-life w hich i s not amenable to conscious criticism. In these cases the unconscious must be g iven a n opportunity to produce its f antasies, a nd t he a bove fragment is just such a product of unconscious fantasy activity. Since the case was one of psychogenic depression, the depression itself was due to fantasies of whose existence the patient w as totally unconscious. In genuine melancholia, extreme exhaustion, poisoning, etc., the situation w ould be r eversed: t he patient ha s such f antasies because he is in a depressed condition. But in a case of psychogenic depression he is depressed because he has such fantasies. My patient was a very clever young man who had been intellectually enlightened as t o t he c ause of his ne urosis b y a lengthy a nalysis. H owever, intellectual u nderstanding m ade n o difference to his d epression. I n cases of this sort the doctor 214


THE TECHNIQUE OF DIFFERENTIATION

345

346

347

should spare himself the useless trouble of delving still further into the causality; for, when a more or less exhaustive understanding is of no avail, the discovery of yet another little bit of causality will be of no avail e ither. T he unc onscious ha s simply gained a n una ssailable ascendency; it w ields an at tractive f orce that can i nvalidate a ll conscious c ontents-in o ther words, it c an withdraw l ibido f rom t he conscious world and thereby produce a "depression," an abaissement du niveau mental (Janet). But as a result of this we must, according to the law of energy, expect an accumulation of value-i.e., libido-in the unconscious. Libido can never be apprehended except in a definite form; that is to say, it is identical with fantasy-images. And we can only release it from t he gr ip of t he u nconscious by bringing u p t he c orresponding fantasy-images. T hat is why, in a c ase l ike t his, we g ive the unconscious a chance to bring its fantasies to the surface. This is how the f oregoing f ragment w as produced. I t i s a s ingle e pisode f rom a long a nd very intricate series of fantasyimages, corresponding to the quota of energy that was lost to the conscious mind and its contents. The patient's conscious world has become cold, empty, and grey; but his unconscious is activated, powerful, and rich. It is characteristic of the nature of the unconscious psyche that it is sufficient unto itself and knows n o human c onsiderations. O nce a thing has f allen i nto the unconscious it is retained there, regardless of w hether t he conscious mind suffers or not. The latter can hunger and freeze, while everything in the unconscious becomes verdant and blossoms. So at least it appears at first. But when we look deeper, we find that this u nconcern of t he u nconscious ha s a m eaning, i ndeed a pur pose and a goal. There are psychic goals that lie beyond the conscious goals; in f act, they m ay e ven b e inimical to them. B ut w e find t hat the unconscious has an inimical or ruthless bearing towards the conscious only when the latter adopts a false or pretentious attitude. The conscious attitude of my patient is so one-sidedly intellectual and rational that nature herself rises up against him and annihilates his whole world of c onscious va lues. B ut he c annot de-intellectualize himself and make himself dependent on another function, e.g., feeling, for the very simple reason that he has not got it. The unconscious has it. Therefore we ha ve no a lternative but to hand Over the leadership to the unconscious 21 5


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS and

348

349

350

351

give

it the opportunity of becoming a conscious content in the form of fantasies. If, formerly, my patient clung to his intellectual world and defended himself with rationalizations against what he regarded as his illness, he must now yield himself up to it entirely, and when a fit of depression comes upon him, he must no longer force himself to some kind of work in order to forget, but must accept his depression and give it a hearing. Now this is the direct opposite of succumbing to a mood, which i s s o t ypical of neurosis. I t i s n o w eakness, no s pineless surrender, but a hard ach ievement, the es sence of which co nsists i n keeping your objectivity de spite the temptations of the mood, and in making the mood your object, instead of allowing it to become in you the d ominating s ubject. S o the patient m ust try to get hi s m ood to speak to him; his mood must tell him a ll about itself a nd show him through what kind of fantastic analogies it is expressing itself. The foregoing fragment is a bit of visualized mood. If he had not suceeded in ke eping his ob jectivity i n r elation t o his m ood, he would have had, in place of the fantasy-image, only a crippling sense that everything was going to the devil, that he was incurable, ete. But because he gave his mood a chance to e xpress itself in an image, he succeeded in converting at least a small sum of libido, of unconscious creative e nergy i n e idetic f orm, i nto a c onscious c ontent a nd t hus withdrawing it from the sphere of the unconscious. But this effort is not enough, for the fantasy, to be completely e xperienced, de mands not just perception a nd passivity, b ut active participation. The patient would comply with this demand if he conducted himself i n t he f antasy a s he would doubtless c onduct himself in reality. He would never remain an idle spectator while his fiancee tried to drown he rself; he w ould l eap u p a nd s top he r. T his should a lso ha ppen i n t he f antasy. I f he s ucceeds i n behaving i n t he fantasy as he would behave in a similar situation in reality, he would prove that he was taking the fantasy seriously, i.e., assigning absolute reality value t o t he unconscious. I n t his w ay he w ould ha ve won a victory over hi s one sided intellectualism and, indirectly, would have asserted the validity of the irrational standpoint of the unconscious. That would be the complete experience of the unconscious 216


THE TECHNIQUE OF DIFFERENTIATION

demanded of him. But one must not underestimate what that actually means: your whole world is menaced by fantastic irreality. It is almost insuperably difficult to forget, even for a moment, that all this is only fantasy, a figment of the imagination that must strike one as altogether arbitrary and artificial. How can one assert that anything of this kind is "real" and take it seriously? 352 We can hardly be expected to believe in a sort of double life, in which we c onduct our selves o n o ne p lane a s m odest av erage citizens, w hile on a nother w e have u nbelievable a dventures a nd perform heroic deeds. I n o ther w ords, w e m ust n ot concretize our fantasies. But there is in man a strange propensity to do just this, and all his aversion to fantasy and his critical depreciation of the unconscious come solely from the deep-rooted fear of this tendency. Concretization and the fear of it are both primitive superstitions, but they still survive in the liveliest form among socalled enlightened people. In his civic life a man may follow the trade of a shoemaker, but as the member of a sect he puts on the dignity of an archangel. To all appearances he is a small tradesman, but among the freemasons he is a mysterious grandee. Another s its a ll day in h is office; a t e vening, i n h is c ircle, he is a reincarnation of J ulius C aesar, f allible a s a m an, but in h is official capacity infallible. These are all unintentional concretizations. 353 As against this, the scientific credo of our time has developed a superstitious phobia about fantasy. But the real is what works. And the fantasies of the unconscious work, there can be no doubt about that. Even the cleverest philosopher can be the victim of a thoroughly idiotic agoraphobia. Our famous s cientific reality doe s no t a fford us t he slightest protection a gainst t he s ocalled i rreality of the unc onscious. Something works behind the veil of fantastic images, whether we give this something a good name or a bad. It is something real, and for this reason its manifestations must be taken seriously. But first the tendency to concretization must be overcome; in other words, we must not take the fantasies l iterally w hen w e approach t he question of interpreting them. While we are in the grip of the actual experience, the fantasies cannot be taken literally enough. But when it comes to understanding them, we must on no account mistake 21

7


354

355

356

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS the semblance, the fantasy-image ,,~ such, for the operative process underlying it. The semblance is not the thing itself, but only its expression. Thus my patient is not experiencing the suicide scene "on another plane" (though in every other respect it is just as concrete as a real suicide); he experiences something real which looks like a suicide. The two opposing "realities," the world of the conscious and the world of the unconscious, do not quarrel for supremacy, but each makes the other r elative. T hat the r eality of the unc onscious is very r elative indeed w ill presumably a rouse n o vi olent c ontradiction; bu t t hat t he reality of the conscious world could be doubted will be accepted with less alacrity. And yet both "realities" are psychic experience, psychic semblances painted on an inscrutably dark back-cloth. To the critical intelligence, nothing is left of absolute reality. Of the essence of things, of absolute being, we know nothing. But we experience various effects: from "outside" by way of the senses, from "inside" by way of f antasy. We would ne ver think of a sserting that t he c olour " green" ha d a n i ndependent e xistence; s imilarly w e ought never to imagine that a fantasyexperience exists in and for itself, and i s therefore t o be t aken q uite literally. I t i s a n e xpression, a n appearance s tanding f or s omething unknown b ut r eal. T he fantasy-fragment I have mentioned c oincides in time with a wave of depression a nd de speration, a nd th is e vent f inds e xpression i n t he fantasy. The patient really does have a fiancee; for him she represents the one emotionallink with the world. Snap that link, and it would be the e nd of hi s r elation t o t he w orld. T his w ould be an a ltogether hopeless aspect. But his fiancee is also a symbol for his anima, that is, for his relation to the unconscious. Hence the fantasy simultaneously expresses the fact that, without any hindrance on his part, his anima is disappearing again into the unconscious. This aspect shows that once again his mood is stronger than he is. It throws everything to the winds, while he looks on without lifting a hand. But he could easily step in and arrest the an1ma. I give preference to this latter aspect, because the patient is an introvert whose life-relationship is ruled by inner facts. Were he an extravert, I would have to give preference to the first aspect, because for the extravert life is governed primarily by his

218


THE TECHNIQUE OF DIFFERENTIATION

relation to human beings. He might in the trough of a mood do away with his fiancee and himself too, whereas the introvert harms himself most w hen he c asts of f hi s r elation t o the a nima, i .e., t o t he obj ect within. 357 So my patient's fantasy clearly reveals the negative movement of the unconscious, a tendency to recoil from the conscious world so energetically that it sucks away the libido from consciousness and leaves the latter empty. But, by making the fantasy conscious, we stop this process from happening unconsciously. If the patient were himself to pa rticipate a ctively i n t he w ay de scribed a bove, he w ould p ossess himself of the libido invested in the fantasy, and would thus gain added influence over the unconscIOUS. 358 Continual conscious realization of unconscious fantasies, together with active participation in the fantastic events, has, as I have witnessed in a very large number of cases, the effect firstly of extending the c onscious hor izon by t he i nclusion of num erous unc onscious contents; secondly of gradually diminishing the dominant influence of the unconscious; and thirdly of bringing about a change of personality. 359 This change of personality is naturally not an alteration of the o riginal hereditary d isposition, b ut r ather a tr ansformation of t he general at titude. Those s harp c leavages an d an tagonisms b etween conscious an d u nconscious, such as w e see s o c learly i n t he en dless conflicts o f n eurotic natures, n early al ways r est o n a n oticeable one-sidedness of the c onscious a ttitude, w hich gives a bsolute precedence t o one or t wo f unctions, w hile t he ot hers a re unj ustly thru,,>t into the background. Conscious realization and experience of fantasies a ssimilates t he u nconscious inferior f unctions t o the conscious mind-a process which is na turally not without far-reaching effects on the conscious attitude. 3 60 For the moment I will refrain from discussing the nature of this change of personality, since I only want to emphasize the fact that an important change does take place. I have called this change, which is the aim of our analysis of the unconscious, the transcendent function. This remarkable capacity of the human psyche for change, expressed in the t ranscendent f unction, is the pr incipal o bject of late m edieval alchemical philosophy, where it was expressed in terms of alchemical symbolism. H erbert S ilberer, i n hi s very a ble bo ok Problems of Mysticism and Its Sym21 9


361

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

bolism) has already pointed out the psychological content of alchemy. It would be an unpardonable error to accept the current view and reduce these "alchymical" strivings to a mere matter of alembics and melting-pots. This side certainly existed; it represented the tentative beginnings of exact chemistry. But alchemy also had a spiritual side which must not be underestimated and whose psychological value has not yet been sufficiently appreciated: there was an "alchymical" philosophy, the groping precursor of the most modern psychology. The secret of alchemy was in fact the transcendent function, the transformation of 362 personality through the blending and fusion of the noble with the base components, of the differentiated with the inferior functions, of the conscious with the unconscious. But, ju st as the b eginnings o f s cientific c hemistry w ere h opelessly distorted and c onfused b y fa ntastic c onceits and w himsicalities, s o alchemical philosophy, hampered b y t he inevitable c oncretizations o f the still crude and undifferentiated intellect, never advanced to any clear psychological formulation, despite the fact that the liveliest intuition of profound t ruths kept the medieval thinker passionately attached t o the problems of a lchemy. N o o ne who has u ndergone the p rocess o f assimilating the unconscious will deny that it gripped his very vitals and changed him. I would not blame my reader at all if he shakes his head dubiously a t this p oint, be ing q uite un able to imagine how s uch a quantite negligeable as the footling fantasy given above could ever have the slightest influence on anybody. I admit at once that in considering the transcendent function and the extraordinary influence attributed to it, the fragment we have quoted is anything but illuminating. But it is-and here I must appeal to the benevolent understanding of my reader-exceedingly difficult to g ive any e xamples, b ecause ev ery e xample has the unfortunate characteristic of being impressive and significant only to the individual c oncerned. T herefore I a lways advise m y p atients not to cherish the naive belief that what is of the greatest significance to them personally also has objective significance. The vast majority of people are quite incapable of putting themselves individually into the mind of another. This is indeed a singularly rare art, and, truth to tell, it does not take us very far. Even the man whom we 6 3 3 think we know best and who assures 220


THE TECHNIQUE OF DIFFERENTIATION

us h imself that we understand h im through and through i s a t bottom a stranger to u s. He i s different. The m ost w e c an do, and t he be st, is to have a t l east some in kling of h is otherness, t o r espect it, an d t o guard against the outrageous stupidity of wishing to interpret it. I can, therefore, produce nothing convincing, n othing that would 364 convince the reader as it convinces the man whose deepest experience it is. We m ust simply believe i t b y reason of its analogy with our own experience. Ultimately, when all else fails, the end-result is plain beyond a doubt: the perceptible change of personality. With these reservations in mind, I would like to present the reader with another fantasy-fragment, this time from a woman. The difference from the previous example leaps to the eye: here the experience is total, the observer takes an active part and thus m akes the p rocess h er own. T he material i n t his case is very extensive, culminating in a profound transformation of personality. The fragment c omes f rom a late p hase o f p ersonal d evelopment a nd is a n organic pa rt of a long and c ontinuous s eries of t ransformations wh ich have as their goal the attainment of the mid-point of the personality. It may not be immediately apparent what is meant by a "mid-point of the p ersonality." I will th erefore tr y to outline th is p roblem in a few words. If we pi cture the c onscious m ind, with th e ego a s its centre, as 365 being op posed to the un conscious, and if we now add to our m ental picture the process of assimilating the unconscious, we can think of this assimilation as a kind of a pproximation of c onscious and unconscious, where the centre of the total personality no longer coincides with the ego, but with a point m idway between t he conscious a nd t he u nconscious. This would be the point of new equilibrium, a new centering of the total personality, a v irtual c entre w hich, o n account of i ts focal p osition between c onscious and un conscious, ensures for the personality a new and more solid foundation. I freely admit that visualizations of this kind are n o more t han t he clumsy a ttempts of t he unskilled mind to give expression to inexpressible, and well-nigh indescribable, psychological facts. I could say the same thing in the words of St. Paul : "Yet not I live, but Christ liveth in me." Or I might invoke Lao-tzu and appropriate his concept of Tao, the Middle Way and creative centre of all things. In all these the same thing is meant. Speak221


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS ing as a psychologist with a scientific conscience, I must say at once that these things are psychic factors of undeniable power; they are not the inventions of an idle mind, but definite psychic events obeying definite laws and having their legitimate causes and effects, which can be found among the most widely differing peoples and races today, as thousands of years ago. I have no theory as to what constitutes the nature of these processes. One would first have to know what constitutes the nature of the psyche. I am content simply to state the facts. 366 Coming now to our example: it concerns a fantasy of intensely vi sual c haracter, s omething w hich i n t he l anguage of t he ancients would be called a "vision." Not a "vision seen in a dream," but a vi sion pe rceived by i ntense c oncentration on t he b ackground of consciousness, a technique that is pe rfected only a fter long pr actice.2 Told in her own words, this is what the patient saw: "I climbed the mountain and came to a place where I saw seven red stones in front of me) seven on either side) and seven behind me. I stood in the middle of this quadrangle. The stones were flat like steps. I tried to lift the four stones nearest me. In doing so I discovered that these stones were the pedestals of four statues of gods buried upside down in the earth. I dug them up and arranged them about me so that I was standing in the middle of them. Suddenly they leaned towards one another until their heads touched) forming something like a tent over me. I myself fell to the ground and said) 'Fall upon me if you must! I am tired.' Then I saw that beyond) encircling the four gods) a ring of flame had formed. After a time I got up from the ground and overthrew the statues of the gods. Where they fell) four trees shot up. A t that blue flames leapt up from the ring of fire and began to burn the foliage of the trees. Seeing this I said) 'This must stop. I must go into the fire myself so that the leaves shall not be burned.' Then I stepped into the fire. The trees vanished and the fiery ring drew together to one immense blue flame that carried me up from the earth." 367 Here the vision ended. Unfortunately I cannot see how I can make conclusively clear to the reader the extraordinarily inter-

[This t echnique i s e lsewhere called " active imagination." C f. " The T ranscendent Function," pars. l66ff., and Mysterium Coniunctionis, pars. 7 06 and 749ff • -EDlTORS.]

2

222


THE TECHNIQUE OF DIFFERENTIATION

368

369

esting meaning of this vision. The fragment is an excerpt from a long sequence, and one w ould ha ve t o e xplain e verything t hat ha ppened before and afterwards, in order to grasp the significance of the picture. At all events the unprejudiced reader will recognize at once the idea of a "mid-point" that is reached by a kind of climb (mountaineering, effort, struggle, e tc.). H e w ill a lso r ecognize w ithout di fficulty t he f amous medieval conundrum of the squaring of the circle, which belongs to the field of alchemy. Here it takes its rightful place as a symbol of individuation. The total personality is indicated by the four cardinal points, the four gods, i.e., the four functions which give bearings in psychic space, and also by t he circle enclosing the whole. Overcoming the four gods who t hreaten t o s mother t he i ndividual signifies lib eration f rom identification with the four functions, a fourfold nirdvandva ("free from opposites") f ollowed by a n a pproximation t o the c ircle, t o undi vided wholeness. This in its turn leads to further exaltation. I m ust c ontent myself w ith t hese hi nts. A nyone w ho takes t he trouble to reflect upon t he matter will be able to form a rough idea of how t he t ransformation of p ersonality pr oceeds. T hrough he r a ctive participation the pa tient m erges he rself in the unc onscious pr ocesses, and she gains possession of them by a llowing them to possess her. In this w ay s he j oins t he c onscious t o the unc onscious. The r esult i s ascension in the flame, transmutation in the alchemical heat, the genesis of the "subtle spirit." That is the transcendent function born of the union of opposites. I must recall at this point a serious misunderstanding to which my readers of ten succumb, a nd doctors m ost c ommonly. They invariably assume, for reasons unknown, that I never write about anything except my method of treatment. This is far from being the case. I write about psychology. I m ust therefore expressly em phasize t hat my m ethod of treatment does not consist in causing my patients to indulge in strange fantasies f or t he pur pose of c hanging t heir p ersonality, a nd ot her nonsense of that kind. I m erely put it on r ecord that there a re c ertain cases where such a development occurs, not because I force anyone to it, but be cause it springs f rom inner ne cessity. F or m any of m y pa tients these things are and must remain double Dutch. Indeed, even if it were possible for them to tread this path, it 223


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS would be a disastrously wrong turning, and I would be the first to hold them back. The way of the transcendent function is an individual destiny. But on no account should one imagine that this way is equivalent to the life of a psychic anchorite, to alienation from the world. Quite the contrary, for such a way is possible and profitable only when the specific worldly tasks which these individuals set themselves are carried out in reality. Fantasies are no substitute for living; they are fruits of the spirit which fall to him who pays his tribute to life. The shirker experiences nothing but his own morbid fear, and it yields him no meaning. Nor will this way ever be known to the man who has found his way back to Mother Church. There is no doubt that the mysterium magnum is hidden in her forms, and in these he can live his life sensibly. Finally, the normal man will never be burdened, either, with this knowledge, for he is everlastingly content with the little that lies within his reach. Wherefore I entreat my reader to understand that I write about things which actually happen, and am not propounding methods of treatment. 37째 These two examples of fantasy represent the positive activity of anima and animus. To the degree that the patient takes an active part, the personified f igure of a nima or animus will disappear. It becomes the f unction of relationship be tween conscious a nd unconscious. But when t he unconscious c ontents-these s ame f antasies-are n ot "realized," they give rise to a negative activity and personification, i.e., to the a utonomy of a nimus a nd a nima. P sychic a bnormalities t hen develop, states of possession ranging in degree from ordinary moods and "ideas" to psychoses. All these states are characterized by one and the same fact that an unknown "something" has taken possession of a smaller or gr eater p ortion of the ps yche a nd a sserts its ha teful a nd harmful e xistence u ndeterred by a ll o ur i nsight, r eason, a nd e nergy, thereby proclaiming the power of the unconscious over the conscious mind, the sovereign po wer of po ssession. In this state the possessed part of the psyche generally develops an animus or anima psychology. The w oman's i ncubus c onsists of a h ost of m asculine de mons; the man's succubus is a vampire. !l71 This particular concept of a soul which, according to the conscious attitude, either exists by itself or disappears in a func 224


THE TECHNIQUE OF DIFFERENTIATION

tion, has, as anyone can see, not the remotest connection with the Christian concept of the soul. 372 The second fantasy is a typical example of the kind of content pr oduced b y the c ollective u nconscious. A lthough t he f orm is entirely subjective and i ndividual, t he s ubstance i s none t he l ess collective, being composed of universal images and ideas common to the generality of men, components, therefore, by which the individual is as similated t o the r est o f m ankind. I f t hese co ntents r emain unconscious, t he i ndividual is, i n them, u nconsciously c ommingled with o ther individuals-in other w ords, he i s n ot differentiated, n ot individuated. 373 Here one may ask, perhaps, why it is so desirable that a man should be individuated. Not only is it desirable, it is absolutely indispensable because, through his contamination with others, he falls into situations and commits actions which bring him into disharmony with himself. From all states of unconscious contamination and non-differentiation there is begotten a compulsion to be and to act in a way contrary to one's own nature. Accordingly a man can neither be at one with himself nor accept responsibility for himself. He feels himself to be in a degrading, unfree, unethical condition. But the disharmony with himself is precisely the neurotic and intolerable condition from which he seeks to be delivered, and deliverance from this condition will come only when he can be and act as he feels is conformable with his true self. People have a feeling for these things, dim and uncertain at first, but growing ever stronger and clearer with progressive development. When a man can say of his states and actions, "As I am, s'o I act," he can be at one with himself, even though it be difficult, and he can accept responsibility for himself even though he struggle against it. We must recognize that nothing is more difficult to bear with than oneself. CY ou sought the heaviest burden, and found yourself," says Nietzsche.) Yet even this most difficult of achievements becomes possible if we can distinguish ourselves from the unconscious contents. The introvert discovers these contents in himself, the extravert finds them projected upon human objects. In both cases the unconscious contents are the cause of blinding illusions which falsify ourselves and our relations to our fellow men, making both unreal. For these reasons individuation is indispen225


sable for certain people, not only as a therapeutic necessity, but as a high ideal, an idea of the best we can do. Nor should I omit to remark that it is at the same time the primitive Christian ideal of the Kingdom of Heaven which "is within you." The idea at the bottom of this ideal is that right action comes from right thinking, and that there is no cure and no improving of the world that does not begin with the individual himself. To put the matter drastically: the man who is pauper or parasite will never solve the social question. THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND' THE UNCONSCIOUS

226


IV THE MANA-PERSONALITY 374

375

My initial material for the discussion that now follows is taken from cases w here t he condition t hat w as pr esented i n t he previous chapter as the immediate goal has been achieved, namely the conquest of the a nima a s a n a utonomous c omplex, a nd he r transformation i nto a f unction of r elationship between the c onscious and the u nconscious. With t he a ttainment of this g oal it be comes possible to disengage t he e go f rom a ll i ts e ntanglements w ith collectivity a nd the c ollective u nconscious. Through t his pr ocess t he anima forfeits the daemonic power of an autonomous complex; she can no longer exercise the power of possession, since she is depotentiated. She is no longer the guardian of treasures unknown; no longer Kundry, daemonic M essenger of t he Grail, half divine a nd half a nimal; n o longer is the soul to be called "Mistress," but a psychological function of an intuitive nature, akin to what the primitives mean when they say, "He has gone into the forest to talk with the spirits" or "My snake spoke with me" or, in the mythological language of infancy, "A little bird told me." Those of my r:eaders who know Rider Haggard's description of "She-who-must-be-obeyed" will surely recall the magical power of this p ersonality. " She" i s a m ana-personality, a be ing f ull of some occult and bewitching quality (mana), endowed with magical knowledge and power. All these attributes naturally have their source in t he na Ive pr ojection of an unconscious s elf-knowledge w hich, expressed in le ss poetic te rms, w ould r un s omewhat as f ollows: "I recognize that there is some psychic factor active in me which eludes my c onscious w ill i n t he m ost incredible m anner. I t c an put extraordinary i deas i nto m y h ead, i nduce in m e unwanted an d unwelcome m oods a nd e motions, lead m e t o a stonishing a ctions f or which I c an a ccept no r esponsibility, upset m y r elations with o ther people in a very irritating 227


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS way, etc. I feel powerless against this fact and, what is worse, I am in love with it, so that all I can do is marvel." (Poets often call this the "artistic temperament," un poetical folk excuse themselves in other ways.) 376 Now when the anima loses her mana, what becomes of it? Clearly t he m an w ho h as m astered t he an ima acq uires h er m ana, i n accordance w ith th e p rimitive b elief th at w hen a man k ills th e mana-person he assimilates his mana into his own body. 377 Well then: who is it that has integrated the anima? Obviously the conscious ego, and therefore the ego has taken over the mana. Thus the ego becomes a mana-personality. But the manapersonality is a dominant of the collective unconscious, the wellknown archetype of the mighty man in the form of hero, chief, magician, medicine-man, saint, the ruler of men and spirits, the friend of God. 378 This masculine collective figure who now rises out of the dark ba ckground a nd t akes pos session of t he c onscious pe rsonality entails a psychic danger of a subtle nature, for by inflating the conscious mind it can destroy everything that was gained by coming to terms with the anima. It is therefore of no little practical importance to know that in the hi erarchy of t he unconscious t he anima oc cupies t he l owest r ank, only one of many possible figures, and that her subjection constellates another collective figure which now takes over her mana. Actually it is the figure of the magician, as I will call it for short, who attracts the man a to himself, i.e., the autonomous valency of the anima. Only in so far as I unc onsciously i dentify w ith hi s f igure c an I i magine that I m yself possess th e a nima's mana. B ut I w ill in fallibly do s o unde r t hese circumstances. 379 The figure of the magician has a no less dangerous equivalent in w omen: a s ublime, matriarchal figure, th e Great M other, th e All-Merciful, w ho unde rstands e verything, f orgives e verything, w ho always acts for the best, living only for others, and never seeking her own interests, the discoverer of the great love, just as the magician is the mouthpiece of t he ul timate t ruth. A nd just a s t he gr eat love i s ne ver appreciated, so the great wisdom is never understood. Neither, of course, can stand the sight of the other. 380 Here is cause for serious misunderstanding, for without a doubt it is a question of inflation. The ego has appropriated 228


THE MANA-PERSONALITY

something that doe s not be long to it. But how has it a ppropriated the mana? If it was really the ego that conquered the anima, then the mana does indeed belong to it, and it would be correct to conclude that one has be come i mportant. B ut w hy doe s not t his i mportance, t he m ana, work upon others? That would surely be an essential criterion! It does not work because one has not in fact become important, but has merely become ad ulterated w ith a n a rchetype, a nother unc onscious f igure. Hence we must conclude that the ego never conquered the anima at all and therefore has not acquired the mana. All that has happened is a new adulteration, this time with a figure of the same sex corresponding to the father-imago, and possessed of even greater power. From the power that binds all creatures none is free Except the man who wins self-mastery! 1

381

Thus he becomes a superman, superior to all powers, a demigod at the very least. "I and the Father are one"-this mighty avowal in all its awful ambiguity is born of just such a psychological moment. In the face of this, our pitiably limited ego, if it has but a spark of self-knowledge, c an onl y dr aw ba ck a nd r apidly dr op a ll pr etence of power and importance. It was a delusion: the conscious mind has not become master of t he unc onscious, a nd t he a nima h as f orfeited he r tyrannical pow er on ly to th e e xtent th at the e go w as able to c ome to terms with the unconscious. This accommodation, however, was not a victory of the conscious over the unconscious, but the establishment of a balance of power between the two worlds. Hence the "magician" could take possession of the ego only because the e go dr eamed of vi ctory ove r t he a nima. T hat dr eam w as a n encroachment, and every encroachment of the ego is fol. lowed by a n encroachment from the unconscious:

382

Changing shape from hour to hour I employ my savage power.2 1

Goethe, "Die G eheimnis~e: Ein Fragment," 1ine~ 191-9%. trans. by Louis MacNeice, p. 282 (Part 11, Act V), modified.

2 Faust,

229


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE

383

384

UNCONSCIOUS Consequently, if the ego drops its claim to victory, possession by the magician ceases automatically. But what happens to the mana? Who or what becomes mana when even the magician can no longer work magic? So far we only know that neither the conscious nor the unconscious has mana, for it is certain that when the ego makes no claim to power there is no possession, that is to say, the unconscious too loses its ascendency. In this situation the inana must have fallen to something that is both conscious and unconscious, or else neither. This something is the desired "mid-point" of the personality, that ineffable something betwixt the opposites, or else that which unites them, or the result of conflict, or the product of energic tension: the coming to birth of personality, a profoundly individual step forward, the next stage. I do not expect the reader to have followed this rapid survey of t he whole problem in a ll i ts parts. He may r egard i t a s a kind of preliminary statement leading up to the more closely reasoned analysis which now follows. The starting-point of our problem is the condition which results when the unconscious contents that are the efficient cause of the animus and anima phenomenon have become sufficiently assimilated to the conscious mind. This can best be represented in the following way: the unconscious contents are, in the first instance, things belonging to the personal sphere, similar perhaps to the fantasy of the male patient quoted above. Subsequently, fantasies from the impersonal unconscious develop, containing essentially collective symbols more or less similar to the vision of m y woman patient. These fantasies are not so wild and unregulated as a naive intelligence might think; they pursue definite, unconscious lines of direction which converge upon a definite goal. We could therefore most fittingly describe these later series of fantasies as processes of initiation, since these form the closest analogy. All primitive groups and tribes that are in any way organized have their rites of initiation, often very highly developed, which play an extraordinarily important part in their social and religious life.3 Through these ceremonies boys are made men, and girls women. The Kavirondos stigmatize those who do not submit to circumcision and excision as "animals." This shows that the initiation ceremonies are a lllag3 Cf. Webster,

primitive Secret Societies (1908).

23째


THE MANA-PERSONALlTY

ical m eans o f leading m an f rom the a nimal s tate t o the human s tate. They a re clearly t ransformation m ysteries of t he greatest spiritual significance. Very often t he i nitiands a re subjected t o e xcruciating treatment, and at the same time the tribal mysteries are imparted to them, the laws and hierarchy of the tribe on the one hand, and on the other the cosmogonic and mythical doctrines. Initiations have survived among all cultures. In Greece the ancient Eleusinian m ysteries were preserved, i t seems, right into the seventh century of our era. Rome was flooded with mystery religions. Of these Christianity was one, and even in its present form it still preserves the old initiation ceremonies, somewhat faded and degenerated, in the rites o f b aptism, c onfirmation, a nd c ommunion. Hence n obody is i n a position to deny t he enormous h istorical importance of initiations. 385 Modern men have absolutely nothing to compare with this (consider t he t estimonies of t he a ncients i n r egard t o th e Eleusinian mysteries). F reemasonry, l' Eglise gnostique de la France} legendary Rosicrucians, theosophy, and s o f orth are all fe eble s ubstitutes for something t hat were b etter m arked u p in red letters o n the historical casualty list. The fact is that the whole symbolism of initiation rises up, clear and unmistakable, in the unconscious contents. The objection that this is an tiquated s uperstition a nd a ltogether u nscientific is ab out as intelligent as remarking, in the presence of a cholera epidemic, that it is merely a n infectious disease a nd e xceedingly unhygienic. The p oint i s not-I cannot be t oo e mphatic about this-whether th e initiation symbols are o bjective truths, but whether these unconscious c ontents are or a re not the equivalents of initiation practices, and whether they do or do not influence t he h uman psyche. Nor is i t a question of whether t hey a re desirable or not. It is enough that they exist and that they work. 386 Since it is not possible in this connection to put before the reader i n d etail t hese sometimes very l engthy sequences o f i mages, I trust he will be content with the few examples already given and, for the rest, accept my statement that they are logically c onstructed, pur posive sequences. I m ust ow n that I us e the w ord "purposive" with s ome hesitation. This word needs to be used cautiously and with reserve. For in mental c ases w e c ome a cross d ream-sequences, and i n n eurotics fantasy-

231


'tHE RELAT10NS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS sequences,

which run on in themselves with no apparent aim or purpose. The young man whose suicide fantasy I gave above was in a fair way to produce a string of aimless fantasies, unless he could learn to take an active part and to intervene consciously. Only thus could there be orientation to a goal. From one point of view the unconscious is a purely natural process without design, but from another it has that potential directedness which is characteristic of all energy processes. When the conscious mind participates actively and experiences each stage of the process, or at least understands it intuitively, then the next image always starts off on the higher level that has been won, and purposiveness develops. 387 The immediate goal of the analysis of the unconscious, therefore, is to reach a state where the unconscious contents no longer remain unconscious and no longer express themselves indirectly as animus and anima phenomena; that is to say, a state in which animus and anima become functions of relationship to the unconscious. So long as they are not this, they are autonomous complexes, disturbing factors that break through the conscious control and act like true "disturbers of the peace." Because this is such a well-known fact my term "complex," as used in this sense, has passed into common speech. The more "complexes" a man has, the more he is possessed; and when we try to form a picture of the personality which expresses itself through his complexes we must admit that it resembles nothing so much as an hysterical woman-i.e., the animal But if such a man makes himself conscious of his unconscious contents, as they appear firstly in the factual contents of his personal unconscious, and then in the fantasies of the collective unconscious, he will get to the roots of his complexes, and in this way rid himself of his possession. With that the anima phenomenon comes to a stop. 388 That superior power, however, which caused the possession -for w hat I c annot s hake of f m ust i n s ome s ense be s uperior t o me-should, l ogically, d isappear w ith t he a nima. O ne should t hen be "complex-free," ps ychologically h ouse-trained, so to s peak. N othing more should happen that is not sanctioned by the ego, and when the ego wants something, n othing s hould be c apable of i nterfering. The e go would thus be assured of an impregnable position, the steadfastness of a superman or t he sublimity of a p erfect sage. Both f igures are ideal images: Napoleon

232


THE MANA-PERSONALITY

389

on the one hand, Lao-tzu on the other. Both are consistent with the idea of "the extraordinarily potent," which is the term that Lehmann, in his celebrated monograph,4 uses for his definition of mana. I therefore call such a pe rsonality simply the manapersonality. It c orresponds to a dominant of t he c ollective u nconscious, t o a n a rchetype w hich has taken shape in the human psyche through untold ages of just that kind of experience. Primitive man does not analyse and does not work out why another is superior to him. If another is cleverer and stronger than he, then he has mana, he is possessed of a stronger power; and by the same t oken h e can l ose t his p ower, p erhaps b ecause someone h as walked over him in his sleep, or stepped on his shadow. Historically, the mana-personality evolves into the hero and the godlike being,5 whose earthly form is the priest. How very much the doctor is still mana is the whole plaint of the analyst! But in so far as the ego apparently draws to itself the power belonging to the anima, the e go doe s be come a m ana-personality. T his de velopment i s a n almost regular phenomenon. I have never yet seen a f airly advanced development of this kind where at least a temporary identification with the archetype of the mana-personaJity did not take place. It is the most natural thing in the world that this should happen, for not only does one expect it oneself, but everybody else expects it too. One can scarcely help admiring oneself a little for having seen more deeply into things than others, a nd the ot hers ha ve such a n ur ge to f ind a tangible he ro somewhere, o r a s uperior w ise m an, a l eader an d father, s ome undisputed authority, that they build temples to little tin gods with the greatest promptitude and burn incense upon the altars. This is not just the l amentable s tupidity of i dolaters incapable of j udging f or themselves, but a natural psychological law which says that what has once be en w ill a lways be i n t he f uture. A nd so i t w ill be , u nless consciousness puts an end to the naIve concretization of primordial images. I do not know whether it is de sirable that consciousness should alter the eternal laws; I only know that occasionally it does alter them, and t hat this m easure i s a vi tal ne cessity f or s ome pe ople-which, however, does not always prevent these 4 Lehmann,

Mana (1922).

According to popular belief, the Most Christian King could cure epilepsy with his mana by the laying on of hands.

5

233


390

391

392

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS same people from setting themselves up on the father's throne and making the old rule come true. It is indeed hard to see how one can escape the sovereign power of the primordial images. Actually I do not believe it can be escaped. One can only alter one 's a ttitude a nd t hus s ave oneself f rom naively f alling i nto a n archetype and being forced to act a part at the expense of one's humanity. Possession by a n archetype turns a man into a flat collective figure, a mask be hind w hich he c an no l onger de velop a s a hum an be ing, but becomes increasingly stunted. One must therefore beware of the danger of falling victim to the dominant of the mana-personality. The danger lies not onl y i n one self be coming a f ather-mask, but i n be ing overpowered by this mask when worn by another. Master and pupil are in the same boat in this respect. The dissolution of the anima means that we have gained insight into the dr iving f orces of the unc onscious, but no t that we ha ve made t hese f orces i neffective. T hey can at tack u s at any t ime i n new form. And they will infallibly do so if the conscious attitude has a flaw in it. It's a question of might against might. If the ego presumes to wield power over the unconscious, the unconscious reacts with a subtle attack, deploying t he dom inant of t he mana-personality, w hose e normous prestige casts a spell over the ego. Against this the only defence is full confession of one's 'weakness in face of the powers of the unconscious. By opposing no force to the unconscious we do not provoke it to attack. It may sound rather comical to the reader if I speak of the unconscious in this personal way. I hope I shall not arouse the prejudice that I regard the unconscious as something personal. The unconscious consists of na tural pr ocesses t hat l ie out side t he s phere of t he hum an personality. Only our conscious mind is "personal." Therefore when I speak of "provoking" the unconscious I do not mean that it is offended and-like the gods of old-rises up to smite the offender in jealous anger or revenge. What I mean is more like an error in psychic diet which upsets the equilibrium of my digestion. The unconscious reacts automatically like m y s tomach w hich, i n a manner of s peaking, w reaks i ts r evenge upon me. When I presume to have power over the unconscious, that is like a dietary solecism, an unseemly a ttitude which in the interests of one's own well-being were better avoided. My unpoetical comparison is, if anything, far too 234


THE MAN A-PERSONALITY

393

394

mild in v iew o f th e far-reaching a nd d evastating m oral e ffects of a disordered unconscious. In this regard it would be more fitting to speak of the wrath of offended gods. In differentiating the ego from the archetype of the manapersonality one is now f orced, exactly a s in the case of the a nima, to make conscious t hose c ontents w hich a re s pecific of t he m anapersonality. Historically, the mana-personality is always in possession of t he s ecret na me, or of s ome e soteric know ledge, or ha s t he prerogative o f a s pecial way of acting-quod licet Jovi, non licet bovi-in a word, it has an individual distinction. Conscious realization of the c ontents c omposing i t m eans, f or t he m an, t he s econd a nd r eal liberation f rom t he f ather, a nd, f or t he w oman, l iberation f rom t he mother, and w ith i t c omes t he first ge nuine s ense of h is o r h er t rue individuality. This part of the process corresponds exactly to the aim of the c oncretistic p rimitive in itiations up t o a nd including ba ptism, namely, severance from the "carnal" (or animal) parents, and rebirth in novam infantiam, into a c ondition o f im mortality and s piritual childhood, a s f ormulated by certain m ystery r eligions of t he a ncient world, among them Christianity. It is now quite possible that, instead of identifying with the man a-personality, one will concretize it as an extramundane "Father in Heaven," c omplete w ith t he a ttribute of a bsoluteness -something t hat many people seem very prone to do. This would be tantamount to giving the unc onscious a s upremacy t hat w as j ust a s a bsolute (if one 's f aith could be pushed that far!), so that all value would flow over to that side.6 The logical result is that the only thing left behind here is a miserable, inferior, worthless, and sinful little heap of humanity. This so6 "Absolute" means "cut off," "detached." To assert that God is absolute amounts to placing him outside all connection w ith m ankind. M an c annot a ffect him, or he m an. S uch a G od w ould be of no consequence at all. We can in fairness only speak of a God who is relative to man, as man is to God. The Christian idea of God as a "father in Heaven" puts God's relativity in exquisite form. Quite apart from the fact that a man can know even less about God than an ant can know of the contents of the British Museum, this urge to regard God as "absolute" derives solely from the fear that G od m ight be come " psychological." T his w ould na turally be da ngerous. A n absolute God, on the other hand, does not concern us in the least, whereas a "psychological" God would be real. This kind of God could reach man. The Church seems to be a magical instrument for protecting man against this eventuality, since it is written: "It is a fearful thing to fall into the hands of the living God."

235


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

lution, a s w e know , ha s become a n hi storical w orld vi ew. A s I a m moving he re on ps ychological gr ound onl y, a nd f eel no i nclination whatever to d ictate my eternal tr uths to th e w orld a t l arge, I must observe, by way of criticizing this solution, that if I shift all the highest values ove r t o t he s ide of t he unc onscious, t hus c onverting i t i nto a summum bonum, I am then placed in the unfortunate position of having to discover a devil of equal weight and dimensions who could act as the psychological c ounterbalance t o m y summum bonum. Under no circumstances, however, will my modesty allow me to identify myself with the devil. That would be altogether too presumptuous and would, moreover, br ing m e into unbe arable c onflict with m y hi ghest va lues. Nor, with my moral deficit, can I possibly afford it. On psychological gr ounds, therefore, I would recommend that no God be c onstructed out of t he a rchetype of t he manapersonality. I n 395 other w ords, he m ust not be concretized, for onl y t hus c an I avoid projecting my values and non-values into God and Devil, and only thus can I preserve my human dignity, my specific gravity, which I need so much if I am not to become the unresisting shuttlecock of unconscious forces. In his dealings with the visible world, a man must certainly be mad to suppose that he is master of this world. Here we follow, quite naturally, the principle of non-resistance to all superior forces, up to a certain i ndividual l imit, be yond w hich t he m ost pe aceful c itizen becomes a bl oody r evolutionary. O ur bow ing dow n b efore l aw a nd order i s a c ommendable e xample of w hat our ge neral a ttitude t o t he collective unconscious should be. ("Render unto Caesar. ... ") Thus far our obeisance would not be too difficult. But there are other factors in the world to which our conscience does not give unqualified assent-and yet we bow to them. Why? Because in practice it is more expedient than the reverse. Similarly there are factors in the unconscious with regard to which we must be worldly-wise ("Resist not eviL" "Make to yourselves friends of t he m ammon of unr ighteousness." " The c hildren of t his world are in their generation wiser than the children of light." Ergo: "Be ye therefore wise as serpents and harmless as doves.") The mana-personality is on one side a being of superior wis236

396


THE MANA-PERSONALITY

dom, on t he ot her a being of s uperior w ill. B y m aking conscious t he contents that underlie this personality, we find ourselves obliged to face the fact that we have learnt more and want more than other people. This uncomfortable kinship with the gods, as we know, struck so deep into poor A ngelus S ilesius' bone s t hat it s ent h im f lying out of hi s super-Protestantism, past the precarious halfway house of the Lutherans, back t o t he ne thermost w omb of t he da rk M other-unfortunately ve ry much to the detriment of his lyrical gifts and the health of his nerves. And yet Christ, and Paul after him, wrestled with these same 397 problems, as a number of clues still make evident. Meister Eckhart, Goethe in his Faust, Nietzsche in his Zamthustm, have again brought this problem somewhat closer to us. Goethe and Nietzsche try to solve it by the idea of mastery, the former through the figure of the magician and ruthless man of will who makes a pact with the devil, the latter through the masterman and supreme sage who knows neither God nor devil. With Nietzsche man stands alone, as he himself did, neurotic, financially dependent, godless, and worldless. This is no ideal for a real man who has a family to support and taxes to pay. Nothing can argue the reality of the world out of existence, there is no miraculous way round it. Similarly, nothing can argue the effects of the unconscious out of existence. Or can the neurotic philosopher prove to us that he has no neurosis? He cannot prove it even to himself.' Therefore we stand with our soul suspended between formidable influences from within and from without, and somehow we must be fair to both. This we can do only after the measure of our individual capacities. Hence we must bethink ourselves not so much of what we "ought" to do as of what we can and must do. Thus t he di ssolution of t he m ana-personality t hrough conscious assimilation of i ts c ontents l eads us , by a na tural r oute, ba ck t o ourselves a s a n a ctual, l iving s omething, poi sed be tween t wo 398 world-pictures and their darkly discerned potencies. This "something" is strange to us and yet so near, wholly ourselves and yet unknowable, a virtual c entre of s o m ysterious a constitution th at it can cl aim anything-kinship w ith be asts a nd gods , w ith c rystals a nd w ith stars-without m oving us t o w onder, w ithout e ven exciting our disapprobation. This "something" 237


399

400

THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS claims all that and more, and having nothing in our hands that could fairly be opposed to these claims, it is surely wiser to listen to this voice. I have called this centre the self. Intellectually the self is no more t han a p sychological c oncept, a c onstruct that s erves t o ex press a n unknowable essence which we cannot grasp as such, since by definition it transcends our powers of comprehension. It might equally well be called the "God within us ." The b eginnings of our w hole p sychic life s eem t o b e inextricably rooted in this point, and all our highest and ultimate purposes seem to be striving towards it. This paradox is unavoidable, as always, when we try to define something that lies beyond the bourn of our understanding. I hope it has become sufficiently clear to the attentive reader that the self has as much to do with the ego as the sun with the earth. They are not interchangeable. N or d oes i t i mply a d eification of m an or a dethronement of G od. W hat i s be yond our un derstanding i s i n any c ase beyond its reach. When, therefore, we make use of the concept of a God we are simply formulating a definite p sychological fact, namely the independence an d sovereignty of ce rtain p sychic c ontents which e xpress themselves b y t heir p ower t o thwart our will, t o obsess ou r consciousness and to influence our moods and actions. We may be outraged at the idea of an inexplicable mood, a nervous disorder, or an un controllable vice being, so to speak, a manifestation of G od. But it would be an irreparable loss for religious e xperience i f s uch t hings, pe rhaps e ven e vil t hings, w ere artificially segregated from the sum of autonomous psychic contents. It is an apotropaic euphemism7 to dispose of these things with a "nothing but" explanation. In that way t hey a re m erely r epressed, and a s a rule only a n apparent advantage is gained, a new twist given to illusion. The personality is not enriched by it, only impoverished and smothered. What seems evil, or at least meaningless an d v alueless t o c ontemporary e xperience a nd knowledge, might on a higher level of experience and knowledge appear as the s ource o f t he b est-everything d epending, naturally, o n the u se o ne makes o f one's s even d evils. To e xplain t hem as meaningless r obs t he personality of its proper shadow, and with this it loses its form. The living form needs deep shadow if it is to 7 Giving a bad thing a good name in order to avert

its disfavour.

238


THE MANA-PERSONALITY

4째1

4째2

4째3

4째4

appear plastic. Without shadow it remains a two-dimensional phantom, a more or less well brought-up child. Here I am alluding to a problem that is far more significant than t hese f ew s imple w ords w ould s eem t o s uggest: mankind i s, in essentials, psychologically still in a state of childhood-a stage that cannot be skipped. The vast majority needs authority, guidance, law. This fact cannot be overlooked. The Pauline overcoming of the law falls only to the man who knows how to put his soul in the place of conscience. Very few are capable of t his ( "Many ar e c alled, but few ar e chosen"). And t hese few t read this path only from inner necessity, n ot t o say suffering, for it is sharp a s the edge of a razor. The conception of God as an autonomous psychic content makes G od into a moral pr oblem-and th at, a dmittedly, is very uncomfortable. Bu t if t his pr oblem d oes n ot e xist, G od i s not real, f or nowhere ca n he t ouch o ur l ives. H e i s t hen ei ther a n historical an d intellectual bogey or a philosophical sentimentality. If we leave the idea of "divinity" quite out of account and speak o nly o f " autonomous c ontents," w e mai ntain a p osition t hat is intellectually an d em pirically c orrect, b ut w e s ilence a note w hich, psychologically, s hould not be m issing. B y u sing the c oncept of a di vine being we give apt expression to the peculiar way in which we experience the workings of t hese a utonomous c ontents: W e c ould a lso u se t he t erm "daemonic," provided that this does not imply that we are still holding u p our sleeves some concretized God who conforms exactly to our wishes and ideas. Our intellectual conjuring tricks do not help us to make a reality of the God we d esire, an y m ore t han the w orld a ccommodates i tself t o o ur expectations. Therefore, by affixing the attribute "divine" to the workings of autonomous contents, we are admitting their relatively superior force. And it is this superior force which has at all times constrained men to ponder the inconceivable, and even to impose the greatest sufferings upon themselves in order to give these workings their due. It is a force as real as hunger and the fear of death. The self could be characterized as a kind of compensation of the c onflict between inside and o utside. T his formulation would n ot be unfitting, s ince t he s elf h as s omewhat t he character of a r esult, of a g oal attained, something that has come to pass very 239


THE RELATIONS BETWEEN THE EGO AND THE UNCONSCIOUS

405

406

gradually and is experienced with much travail. So too the self is our life's g oal, f or it i s t he c ompletest e xpression of t hat f ateful combination we c all i ndividuality, the f ull f lowering not only of the single individual, but of the group, in which each adds his por tion to the whole. Sensing the self as something irrational, as an indefinable existent, to which the e go is ne ither opposed nor subjected, but merely attached, and about which it revolves very much as the earth revolves round the sun-thus we come to the goal of individuation. I use the word "sensing" in order to indicate the apperceptive character of the relation between ego and self. In this relation nothing is knowable, because we can s ay nothing a bout t he c ontents of the s elf. The e go i s the only content of the self that we do know. The individuated ego senses itself as the object of an unknown and supraordinate subject. It seems to me that our psychological inquiry must come to a stop here, for the idea of a s elf i s i tself a tr anscendental p ostulate w hich, a lthough j ustifiable psychologically, does not a llow of scientific proof. This step beyond science i s a n unc onditional r equirement of the psychological development I have sought to depict, because without this postulate I could give no adequate formulation of the psychic processes that occur empirically. At the very least, therefore, the self can claim the value of an hypothesis analogous to that of the structure of the atom. And even though we should once again be enmeshed in an image, it is none the less powerfully alive, and its interpretation quite exceeds my powers. I have no do ubt at all that i t i s an i mage, but one i n w hich w e are contained. I am deeply conscious that in this essay I have made no ordinary demands on the understanding of my reader. Though I have done my utmost to smooth the path of understanding, there is one great difficulty which I could not eliminate, namely the fact that the experiences which form the basis of my discus- . sion are unknown to most people and are bound to seem strange. Consequently I cannot expect my readers to follow all my conclusions. Although every author naturally prefers to be understood by his public, yet the interpretation of my observations is of less moment to me than the disclosure of a wide field of experience, at present hardly explored, which it is the aim of this book to bring within reach of many. In this field, hitherto so

24째


THE MANA-PERSONALITY

dark, it seems to me that there lie the answers to many riddles which the psychology of consciousness has never even approached. I would not pr etend to have f ormulated these a nswers with a ny degree of finality. I shall, therefore, be well satisfied if my essay may be counted as a tentative attempt at an answer.

241





I NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGYl 407

Like all sciences, psychology has gone through its epoch of scholasticism, and something of this spirit has lasted on into the present. Against this kind of philosophical psychology it must be objected that it decides ex cathedra how t he ps yche s hall be constituted, a nd w hat qualities m ust be long to it in this world a nd in the ne xt. The spirit of modern scientific investigation has to a large extent disposed of these fantasies and put in their place an exact empirical method. From this there arose the experimental psychology of today, or what the French call " psychophysiology." T he f ather of t his movement w as t he dual-minded Fechner, who, in his Elemente der Psychophysik, dared to introduce t he phys ical poi nt of vi ew i nto t he c onception of ps ychic phenomena. This idea [, and not least the brilliant errors in this 1 [First published a s " Neue B ahnen d er P sychologie" i n Raschers Jahrbuch fur Schweizer Art und

Kunst (Zurich, 1912); trans. a s " New P aths i n Psychology," Collected Papers on Analytical Psychology (1St e dn., L ondon, 19 16). S ubsequently r evised a nd e xpanded ( more t han threefold) a nd pu blished und er t he t itle Die Psychologie der unbewussten Prozesse (Zurich, 1917); t rans. a s " The P sychology of the Unconscious P rocesses," Collected Papers on Analytical Psychology (2nd edn .• London. 1917; Ne w York, 1920). This work, after further revision a nd e xpansion ( see P refaces, s upra, p p. 3 -7), f inally ap peared a s Ueber die Psychologie des Unbewussten (Zurich, 1943). a translation of which forms Part I of the present volume. [In r e working " Neue Bahnen d er P sychologie" f or t he f irst ( 1917) e dition o f Die Psychologie der unbewussten Prozesse, the author deleted or modified a number of passages, and t hese passages were s imilarly t reated in t he t ext o f "New P aths i n Psychology" a s i t appeared in t he first e dition of t he pr esent v olume. ( It s hould be n oted t hat, e xcept f or pa rs. 440 and 4 41 and a few other brief pa ssages, they were n ot d eleted in t he equivalent opening section of " The P sychology of t he Unconscious P rocesses" i n the 1 917 e dition of Collected Papers on Analytical Psychology.) In t his r evised e dition of Collected Works, vo!. 7, the deleted passages have been restored and are indicated by square brackets. They are similarly but not identically treated in Vo!. 7 of the Gesammelte Werke (Zurich, 1964).-EDlTORS.]

245


APPENDICES

408

4<>9

work,] was a fertilizing force. Fechner's younger contemporary and, we might say, the perfecter of his work, was Wundt, whose great erudition, industry, a nd ge nius f or de vising ne w m ethods of e xperimental research have created the dominant trend in modern psychology. Until quite recently experimental psychology was essentially academic. T he f irst n otable a ttempt t o en list at least s ome o f i ts numerous experimental methods in the service of practical psychology came from the psychiatrists of the former Heidelberg school (Kraepelin, Aschaffenburg, a nd ot hers); f or, a s m ay e asily be i magined, t he psychiatrist was the first to feel the pressing need for exact knowledge of t he ps ychic pr ocesses. N ext c ame pe dagogy, m aking its ow n demands on ps ychology. From t his t here ha s r ecently gr own up a n "experimental pe dagogy," i n w hich f ield M eumann i n Germany a nd Binet in France have rendered signal service. If he wants to help his patient, the doctor, and above all the "specialist for nervous diseases," must have psychological knowledge; for ne rvous di sorders a nd a ll t hat i s e mbraced by t he t erms "nervousness," h ysteria, e tc. a re of ps ychic or igin and t herefore logically r equire p sychic treatment. C old water, l ight, f resh a ir, electricity, and so forth have at best a transitory effect and sometimes none at al l. O ften they ar e disreputable ar tifices, cal culated to w ork upon suggestibility. But the patient is sick in mind, in the highest and most complex of the mind's functions, and these can hardly be said to belong any more to the province of medicine. Here the doctor must also be a ps ychologist, w hich m eans t hat he m ust ha ve kno wledge of t he human psyche. The doctor cannot evade this demand. So he naturally turns f or he lp t o ps ychology, since his ps ychiatry te xt-books ha ve nothing to offer him. The experimental psychology of today, however, does not e ven begin t o give hi m a ny c oherent insight into w hat a re, practically, the most important psychic processes. That is not its aim: it tries to isolate the very simplest and most elementary processes which border on ph ysiology, a nd studies them in isolation. I t is il l-disposed towards the infinite variety and mobility of individual psychic life, and for th is r eason its f indings a nd its f acts a re so m any d etails la cking organic c ohesion. T herefore a nyone who wants t o kno w t he h uman psyche w ill learn ne xt t o no thing f rom e xperimental psychology. H e would be better ad246


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

410

411

vised to [ abandon e xact science] pu t a way h is scholar's gow n, bid farewell to his study, and wander with human heart through the world. There, in the horrors of prisons, lunatic asylums and hospitals, in drab suburban pubs, i n br othels a nd ga mbling-hells, i n the s alons of the elegant, the Stock Exchanges, Socialist meetings, churches, revivalist gatherings a nd e cstatic sects, t hrough l ove a nd ha te, t hrough t he experience of pa ssion in e very f orm in his own bo dy, h e would r eap richer stores of knowledge than text-books a foot thick could give him, and he will know ho w t o d octor the sick with r eal kn owledge of the human s oul. H e m ay be pa rdoned i f his r espect f or the s o-called cornerstones of e xperimental p sychology i s no l onger e xcessive. F or between what science calls psychology and what the practical needs of daily life demand from psychology there is a great gulf fixed. This deficiency became the starting-point for a new psychology, whose inception we owe first and foremost to Sigmund Freud of Vienna, t he br illiant ph ysician a nd investigator of f unctional ne rvous disorders. One c ould de scribe t he ps ychology i naugurated by hi m a s "analytical p sychology." B leuler ha s suggested t he na me "depth psychology," 2 in or der t o indicate t hat F reudian p sychology w as concerned w ith t he de eper r egions or hi nterland of t he ps yche, a lso called t he unconscious. F reud himself was c ontent just t o name hi s method of i nvestigation: he c alled it p sychoanalysis. A nd such is the name by which this movement is generally known. Before we enter upon a closer presentation of our subject, something must be said about its relation to science as known hitherto. Here we encounter a curious spectacle which proves yet again the truth of Anatole France's remark, "Les savants ne sont pas curieux." The first work of any magnitude3 in this field awakened only the faintest echo, in spite o f t he f act th at i t in troduced a n e ntirely ne w a nd f undamental conception of the neuroses. A few writers spoke of it appreciatively and then, on the next page, proceeded to explain their hysterical cases in the same ol d way. They behaved very m uch like a m an w ho, ha ving eulogized the idea or fact that the earth was a sphere, calmly continues to represent it as flat. Freud's next publications4 re2 ["Die Psychoanalyse Freuds" (191O).J 3 Breuer and Freud, Studies on Hysteria (orig. 18 95). 4 Early Psycho-Analytic Publications (orig. 1906), Standard Edition, vo!. 3.

247


APPENDICES

mained absolutely unnoticed, although they put forward observations which were of incalculable importance for psychiatry. When, in the year 1899, Freud wrote the first real psychology of dreams5 (a Stygian darkness had hitherto reigned over this field), people began to laugh, and when about the middle of the last decade he started to throw light on the psychology of sexuality itself, 6 [and at the same time the Zurich school decided to range itself on his side,] laughter turned to insult, sometimes of the nastiest kind, and this has lasted until very recently. [Even a layman like Forster insinuated himself among the denigrators. (I hope the ugliness and impertinence of his tone came from his ignorance of the actual facts.) At the last South-West German Congress of Alienists the adherents of the new psychology also had the pleasure of hearing Hoche, University Professor of Psychiatry at Freiburg im Breisgau, describe the movement in a long and loudly applauded address as an epidemic of insanity among doctors. The old adage "Medicus medicum non decimat" was here quite put to shame.] How carefully the works had been studied is shown by the naive remark of one of the most eminent neurologists of Paris at an International Congress in 190 7, which I heard with my own ears: "I have not read Freud's works" (he knew no German) "but as for his theories, they are nothing but a mauvaise pZaisanterie." [Freud, the dignified old master, once said to me: "I first became clearly conscious of what I had discovered when it was met everywhere with resistance and indignation, and since that time I have learnt to judge the value of my work by the degree of resistance it provoked. It is the sexual theory that raises the greatest outcry, so it would seem that therein lies my best work. Perhaps after all the real benefactors of m ankind are its false teachers, for opposition to the false teachings pushes men willy-nilly into truth. Your truth-teller is a pernicious fellow, he drives men into error."] 412 [The reader must now calmly accept the idea that in this psychology h e is dealing with s omething q uite u nique, i f not indeed some a ltogether irrational, s ectarian, o r o ccult w isdom; f or what e lse could possibly provoke all the scientific authorities to pooh-pooh it from the start?] 413 Accordingly we must look more closely into this new psy5

The Interpretation ot Dreams (orig. 1900 ).

6 "Three

Essays on the Theory of Sexuality" (orig. 19째5)'

248


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

414 .

chology. Already i n Charcot's t ime it was known t hat t he ne urotic symptom is " psychogenic," i.e., o riginates in tne psyche. It was also known, th anks m ainly to th e work of th e N an cy school, th at all hysterical s ymptoms c an b e p roduced in e xactly t he s ame w ay b y suggestion. But it was not known how an hysterical symptom originates in the psyche; the psychic causal factors were completely unknown. In the e arly e ighties D r. B reuer, an o ld V iennese p ractitioner, m ade a discovery which became the real starting-point of the new psychology. He had a young, very intelligent woman patient suffering from hysteria, who m anifested t he f ollowing s ymptoms am ong o thers: s he had a spastic (r igid) paralysis of the r ight arm, and occasional fits of a bsentmindedness o r twilight states; s he had also lost t he p ower o f s peech inasmuch as she could no longer command her mother tongue but could only express herself in English (systematic aphasia). They tried at that time, and still try, to account for these disorders with anatomical theories, although the cortical centre for the arm function is as little disturbed here as in the corresponding centre of a normal person [who gives somebody a box on the ears]. The symptomatology of hysteria is full of anatomical impossibilities. One lady, who had completely lost her hearing because of a n h ysterical a ffection, oft en u sed to s ing. O nce, w hen s he w as singing, h er d octor seated h imself unobserved a t the pi ano and s oftly accompanied h er. I n passing from one stanza to the n ext h e made a sudden change of key, whereupon th e patient, without noticing it, went on singing in the changed ke y. Thus she hears-and d oes n ot hear. T he various f orms of s ystematic blindness o ffer similar ph enomena: a man suffering from total h ysterical blindness r ecovered h is s ight i n t he course of treatment, but it was only partial at first and remained so for a long time. He could see everything with the exception of people's heads. He saw all the people round him without heads. Thus he sees-and does not s ee. F rom a large number o f l ike e xperiences it has long b een concluded that only the conscious m ind of the patient does not see and hear, but that the sense-function is otherwise in working order. This state of affairs directly c ontradicts the nature of a n organic d isorder, which always affects the function in some way. After this digression, let us come back to the Breuer case. There were no organic causes for the disorder, so it had to be 249


APPENDICES

regarded a s h ysterical, i .e., ps ychogenic. Breuer ha d observed t hat i f, during her twilight states (whether spontaneous or artificially induced), he got th e p atient t o t ell h im of the reminiscences a nd f antasies that thronged i n upo n h er, he r condition was eased for several h ours afterwards. H e m ade s ystematic use o f this d iscovery f or f urther treatment. The patient devised the appropriate name "talking cure" for it, or, jokingly, "chimneysweeping." 415 The patient had become ill when nursing her father in his fatal illness. N aturally her fantasies were c hiefly c oncerned with these disturbing days. Reminiscences of this period came to the surface during her twilight states with photographic fidelity; so vivid were they, down to the last detail, that we can hardly assume the waking memory to have been c apable o f s uch p lastic and e xact reproduction. (The name "hypermnesia" ha s been given t o t his i ntensification of t he powers of memory which may e asily occur in restricted states o f c onsciousness.) Remarkable things now came to light. One of the many stories told ran somewhat as follows: One night, watching by the sick man, who had a high fever, she was tense with a nxiety because a surgeon was e xpected f rom V ienna t o perform an operation. Her mother ha d l eft t he r oom for a while, and Anna, the patient, sat b y th e sick-bed with h er right arm hanging over the ba ck o f the c hair. S he fe ll i nto a s ort of waking dr eam and s aw a black snake coming, apparently out of the wall, towards the sick man as though to bite him. (It is quite likely that there really were snakes in the meadow a t t he back of t he h ouse, which ha d a lready given t he girl a fright and which now provided the material for the hallucination.) She wanted t o drive the creature a way, but felt paralysed; he r ri ght arm, hanging ov er the ba ck of the chair, had " gone to sleep": it had become anaesthetic and paretic, and as she looked at it, the fingers changed into little s erpents w ith death's-heads [t he fingernails]. P robably s he m ade efforts to drive away the snake with her paralysed right hand, so that the anaesthesia a nd p aralysis became as sociated with t he s nake hallucination. When the snake had disappeared, she was so frightened that she wanted to pr ay; bu t all speech failed her, she c ould not utter a word until finally she remembered an English nursery rhyme, and then she was able to go on thinking and praying in English.

250


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

Such was the scene in which the paralysis and the speech disturbance originated, and with the narration of this scene the disturbance itself was removed. In this manner the case was finally cured. 417 I must content myself with this one example. In the book I have m entioned by Breuer and F reud t here is a wealth o f s imilar examples. It can readily be understood that scenes of this kind m ake a powerful impression, and people are therefore inclined to impute causal significance to them in the genesis of the symptom. The view of hysteria then current, which de rived from t he E nglish t heory of the " nervous shock" e nergetically c hampioned b y C harcot, w as well qualified to explain B reuer's d iscovery. H ence t here arose the s o-called t rauma theory, which says th at th e h ysterical symptom, a nd, i n so far as t he symptoms constitute the illness, hysteria in general, derive from psychic injuries o r traumata whose imprint pe rsists u nconsciously fo r years. Freud, now c ollaborating w ith B reuer, was a ble to f urnish a bundant confirmation of this discovery. It turned out that none of the hundreds of hysterical s ymptoms arose b y c hance-they were a lways c aused b y psychic occurrences. So far the new conception opened up an extensive field for e mpirical w ork. Bu t Freud's inquiring m ind c ould not remain long on t his s uperficial l evel, for a lready deeper a nd more difficult problems were beginning to emerge. It is obvious enough that moments of e xtreme a nxiety s uch as B reuer's patient e xperienced m ay leave a n abiding i mpression. But h ow did s he come t o experience th em a t all, since they a lready c learly b ear a m orbid s tamp? C ould the s train o f nursing bring this about? If so, there ought to be many more occurrences of t he ki nd, for there are un fortunately very m any e xhausting c ases to nurse, and the nervous health of the nurse is not always of the best. To this problem m edicine g ives a n e xcellent answer: " The x in th e calculation is pr edisposition." O ne is j ust "predisposed" that w ay. But for F reud the problem w as: what c onstitutes the pr edisposition? T his question leads logically to an examination of the previous history of the psychic t rauma. I t i s a matter of common observation t hat e xciting scenes have q uite different e ffects on the various p ersons involved, or that things which are indifferent or even agreeable to one person arouse the greatest horror in others-witness frogs, snakes, mice, cats, etc. There are cases of women who will assist 416

251


APPENDICES

418

419

at bloody operations without turning a hair, while they tremble all over with fear and loathing at the touch of a cat. I remember a young woman who suffered from acute hysteria following a sudden fright. She had been to an evening party and was on her way home about midnight in the c ompany of s everal a cquaintances, w hen a cab cam e u p b ehind them a t f ull t rot. T he o thers g ot ou t of t he w ay, bu t s he, a s t hough spellbound with terror, kept to the middle of the road and ran along in front of the horses. The cabman cracked his whip and swore; it was no good, she ran down the whole length of the r oad, which led across a bridge. There her strength deserted her, and to avoid being trampled on by the horses she would in her desperation have leapt into the river had not the passers-by prevented her. Now, this same lady had happened to be in St. Petersburg on the bloody twenty-second of January [1905J, in the ve ry s treet w hich w as c leared by t he vol leys of t he s oldiers. A ll round he r pe ople w ere f alling t o the gr ound de ad or w ounded; s he, however, quite calm and clear-headed, espied a gate leading into a yard through which she made her escape into another street. These dreadful moments cau sed h er n o f urther ag itation. Sh e f elt p erfectly w ell afterwards-indeed, rather better than usual. This failure to react to an apparent shock can frequently be observed. Hence it ne cessarily f ollows that t he intensity of a trauma has very little pathogenic significance in itself; everything depends on the p articular ci rcumstances. H ere w e h ave t he k ey t o t he predisposition [, or at least to one of its anterooms]. We have therefore to as k o urselves: w hat ar e t he p articular ci rcumstances o f t he s cene with the cab? T he patient's tear began with t he sound of the trotting horses; for an instant it seemed to her that this portended some terrible doom-her death, or something as dreadful; the next moment she lost all sense of what she was doing. The real shock evidently came from the horses. The patient's predisposition to react in so unaccountable a way to this unremarkable incident m ight therefore c onsist i n t he f act t hat h orses ha ve some special significance for her. We might conjecture, for instance, that she once had a dangerous accident with horses. This was actually found to be the case. As a child of about seven she was out for a drive with the coachman, when suddenly the horses took fright and at a wild gallop made for the precipitous

252


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

420

bank of a deep river-gorge. The coachman jumped down and shouted to he r to do likewise, bu t she was i n such de adly f ear that she c ould hardly make up her mind. Nevertheless she jumped in the nick of time, while the horses crashed with the carriage into the depths below. That such an event would leave a very deep impression scarcely needs proof. Yet it d oes not explain why at a l ater date such an insensate reaction should folIowa perfectly harmless stimulus. So far we know only that the l ater s ymptom ha d a pr elude i n c hildhood, bu t t he pa thological aspect of it still remains in the dark. In order to penetrate this mystery, further knowledge is needed. For it had become clear with increasing experience that in all the cases analysed so far, there existed, apart from the traumatic experiences, another, special class of disturbance which can onl y be de scribed a s a di sturbance i n the province of l ove. Admittedly "love" is an elastic concept that stretches from heaven to hell a nd c ombines i n i tself g ood a nd e vil, h igh a nd low.7 With th is discovery Freud's views underwent a considerable change. If, more or less under the spell of Breuer's trauma theory, he had formerly sought the cause of the neurosis in traumatic experiences, now the centre of gravity of the problem shifted to an entirely different point. This may be be st i llustrated by o ur c ase: w e c an unde rstand well e nough w hy horses should play a special part in the life of the patient, but we do not understand t he later r eaction, so e xaggerated a nd uncalled f or. T he pathological peculiarity of this story does not lie in the fact that she is frightened of horses. Remembering the empirical discovery mentioned above, t hat b esides t he traumatic ex periences t here i s [ invariablyJ a disturbance in the province of love, we might inquire whether perhaps there is something not quite in order in this connection. The lady knows a young man to whom she thinks of becoming engaged; she loves him and hopes to be happy with him. At first nothing m ore i s di scoverable. B ut i t w ould ne ver d o t o be de terred from i nvestigation by the ne gative r esults of the pr eliminary questioning. T here a re i ndirect w ays of r eaching the g oal when t he direct way fails. We therefore return to that sin7 We

may apply to love the old mystic saying: "Heaven above, heaven below, sky above, sky below, all a bove, a ll be low, a ccept this a nd r ejoice." [Mephistopheles ex presses t he same idea when he speaks of the "power that produces good whilst ever scheming evil."]

253


APPENDICES

gular moment when the lady ran headlong in front of the horses. We inquire about her companions and what sort of festive occasion it was in which she had just taken part. It had been a farewell party for her best friend, who was going abroad to a health resort on account of her nerves. This friend is married and, we are told, happily; she is also the mother of a child. We may take leave to doubt the statement that she is happy; for, were she really so, she would presumably have no reason to be "nervous" and in need of a cure. Shifting my angle of approach, I learned that after her friends had rescued her they brought the patient back to the house of her host, as this was the nearest shelter. There she was hospitably received in her exhausted state. At this point the patient broke off her narrative, became embarrassed, fidgeted, and tried to change the subject. Evidently some disagreeable reminiscence had suddenly bobbed up. After the most obstinate resistance had been overcome, it appeared that yet another very remarkable incident had occurred that nigh t: the amiable host had made her a fiery declaration of love, thus precipitating a situation which, in the absence of the lady of the house, might well be considered both difficult and distressing. Ostensibly this declaration of love came to her like a bolt from the blue. [A small dose of criticism teaches us that these things never do drop from the sky but always have their previous history.] It was now the task of the next few weeks to dig out bit by bit a long love story, until at last a complete picture emerged which I attempt to outline somewhat as follows: As a child the patient had been a regular tomboy, caring only for wild boys' games, scorning her own sex and avoiding all feminine ways and occupations. After puberty, when the erotic problem might have come too close, she began to shun all society, hated and despised everything that even remotely reminded her of the biological destiny of woman, and lived in a world of fantasies which had nothing in common with rude reality. Thus, until about her twenty-fourth year, she evaded all those little adventures, hopes, and expectations which ordinarily move a girl's heart at this age. (In these matters women are often amazingly insincere with themselves and with the doctor.) Then she got to know two men who were destined to break through the thorny hedge that had grown up around her. Mr. A was her best friend's husband, and Mr. B was his bachelor friend. She liked 254


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

them both. Nevertheless it soon began to look as though she liked Mr. B a v ast de al b etter. A n intimacy qu ickly s prang up b etween them and before long there w as talk of a p ossible e ngagement. T hrough h er relations with Mr. B and through her friend she often came into contact with M r. A , w hose p resence s ometimes d isturbed her in the m ost unaccountable way a nd m ade her nervous. A bout th is ti me the patient went to a large p arty. Her friends w ere also t here. S he b ecame lost in thought and was dreamily playing with her ring when it suddenly slipped off h er finger and r olled under the table. Both gentlemen l ooked for i t and Mr. B succeeded in finding it. He placed the ring on her finger with an arch s mile and s aid, "You k now what that m eans!" O vercome b y a strange and i rresistible feeling, s he tore t he ring f rom he r f inger and flung it through the open window. A painful moment ensued, as may be imagined, and s oon she l eft the party i n d eep d ejection. N ot long after this, so-called chance brought it about that she should spend her summer holidays at a health resort where Mr. and Mrs. A were also staying. Mrs. A then began to gr ow vi sibly nervous, a nd frequently stayed i ndoors because she felt out of sorts. The patient was thus in a position to go out for w alks alone with M r. A . O n o ne o ccasion they went boating. So boisterous was she i n her m erriment that she s uddenly fe ll ov erboard. She co uld not s wim, an d it was o nly with g reat d ifficulty th at M r. A pulled her half-unconscious into the boat. And then it was that he kissed her. W ith this romantic e pisode the bo nds w ere tied f ast. To e xcuse herself in her ow n e yes s he pu rsued her e ngagement t o Mr. B al l th e more energetically, telling herself every day that it was Mr. B whom she loved. Naturally t his curious l ittle game h ad n ot escaped t he keen glances of wifely jealousy. Mrs. A, her friend, had guessed the secret and fretted accordingly, so that her nerves only got worse. Hence it became necessary for Mrs. A to g o abroad for a cure. A t the fa rewell pa rty the evil spirit stepped up to our patient and whispered in her ear, "Tonight he is alone. Something must happen to you so that you can go to his house." And so indeed it happened: through her own strange behaviour she came back to his house, and thus she attained her .desire. After this explanation everyone will probably be inclined to assume that only a devilish subtlety could devise such a chain of 255

421


APPENDICES

42 2

423

circumstances and set it to work. There is no doubt about the subtlety, but its m oral e valuation r emains a doubtful m atter, because I m ust emphasize that the motives leading to this dramatic denouement were in no s ense c onscious. To the pa tient, the w hole s tory s eemed t o happen of itself, without he r be ing c onscious of any m otive. B ut the previous hi story m akes i t pe rfectly cl ear t hat ev erything w as [ most ingeniously] di rected t o t his e nd, w hile t he c onscious m ind w as struggling to br ing about the engagement to Mr. B. The unconscious drive in the other direction was stronger. So once more we return to our original question, namely, whence comes t he pa thological ( i.e., pe culiar or e xaggerated) nature of the reaction t o t he t rauma? O n the basis o f a co nclusion dr awn f rom analogous experiences we conjectured that in this case too there must be, in a ddition to the trauma, a disturbance in the erotic sphere. This conjecture has been entirely confirmed, and we have learned that the trauma, the ostensible cause of the illness, is no more than an occasion for s omething pr eviously not c onscious t o m anifest itself, i.e., a n important erotic conflict. Accordingly the trauma loses its pathogenic significance and is replaced by a much deeper and more comprehensive conception which sees the pathogenic agent as an erotic conflict. [This conception might be called the sexual theory of neurosis.] I of ten he ar t he que stion: why should t he e rotic c onflict be t he cause of the neurosis rather than any other conflict? To this we can only answer: no one asserts that it must be so, but in point of fact it [always] is so [, notwithstanding all the cousins and aunts, parents, godparents, and teachers who rage against it]. In spite of all indignant protestations to t he c ontrary, the f act r emains t hat 10ve ,8 i ts problems a nd i ts conflicts, is of fundamental irriportance in human life, and, as careful inquiry c onsistently s hows, i s of f ar gr eater s ignificance t han t he individual suspects. The trauma theory has therefore been abandoned as antiquated; for with the discovery that not the trauma but a hidden erotic conflict is the [ true] root of the neurosis, the trauma completely loses its pathogenic significance.

8 Using the word in the wider sense which belongs to it by right and embraces mOre than 424 sexuality.,

256


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

42 5

426

[The theory was thus shifted onto an entirely different plane.] The question of the trauma was solved and disposed of; but in its place the investigator was faced with the problem of the erotic conflict, which, as our e xample s hows, c ontains a w ealth o f ab normal elements an d cannot at first sight be compared with an ordinary erotic conflict. What is peculiarly striking and almost incredible is that only the pose should be conscious, while the patient's real passion remained hidden from her. In th is c ase c ertainly, i t is b eyond d ispute th at th e r eal e rotic relationship w as s hrouded i n darkness, w hile t he pose l argely dominated t he f ield o f co nsciousness. I f w e f ormulate t hese f acts theoretically, we arrive at the following result: there are in a neurosis two [erotic] tendencies standing in strict opposition to one another, one of w hich a t least is unc onscious. [ Against this f ormula i t m ight be objected t hat it o bviously f its o nly t his pa rticular c ase and t herefore lacks ge neral va lidity. T he objection w ill be urged the more r eadily because no one is willing to admit that the erotic conflict is of universal prevalence. On the contrary, it is assumed that the erotic conflict belongs m ore pr operly to the s phere of nove ls, s ince i t i s ge nerally understood as something in the nature of such extra-marital adventures as are described in the novels of Karin Michaelis, or by Forel in The Sexual Question. But this is not so at all, for we know that the wildest and most moving dramas are played not in the theatre but in the hearts of or dinary m en a nd women who pa ss by w ithout e xciting a ttention, and who betray to the world nothing of the conflicts that rage within them except possibly by a nervous breakdown. What is so difficult for the l ayman t o gr asp is th e f act th at in m ost c ases th e p atients themselves have no suspicion whatever of the internecine war raging in their u nconscious. I f w e r emember t hat t here ar e m any p eople who understand nothing at all about themselves, we shall be less surprised at the realization that there are also people who are utterly unaware of their actual conflicts.] [N ow even if the reader is ready to admit the possible existence of pathogenic, a nd pe rhaps e ven of unc onscious c onflicts, he w ill s till protest t hat t hey a re no t erotic conflicts. I f this k ind r eader s hould happen hi mself t o be s omewhat ne rvous, t he m ere s uggestion w ill arouse h is indignation; f or we ar e al l accu stomed, t hrough our education at school and at home, to cross

257


APPENDICES

ourselves three times when we meet words like "erotic" and "sexual"-and so we are conveniently able to think that nothing of the sort exists, or at least very s eldom, and at a g reat d istance f rom o urselves. B ut it i s j ust t his attitude that brings about neurotic conflicts in the first place.] 427 The growth of culture consists, as we know, in a progressive subjugation of t he an imal i n m an. I t is a p rocess of d omestication which cannot be accomplished without rebellion on the part of the animal nature that thirsts for freedom. From time to time there passes as it were a wave of frenzy through the ranks of men too long constrained within the limitations of their culture. Antiquity experienced it in the Dionysian orgies that surged over from the East and became an essential and characteristir ingredient of classical culture. Th e spirit of th ese orgies contributed not a little towards the d evelopment of t he s toic ideal of a sceticism i n the i nnumerable s ects and philosophical schools of the last century before Christ, which produced from t he p olytheistic c haos o f t hat ep och the t win ascetic r eligions o f Mithraism and C hristianity. A second wave of Dionysian licentiousness swept over the West at the Renaissance. It is difficult to gauge the spirit of one's own time; bu t, if we o bserve t he trend of a rt, of s tyle, and of p ublic taste, and see what people read and write, what sort of societies they found, what "questions" are the order of the day, what the Philistines fight against, we shall find that in the long catalogue of our present social questions by no means the last is the so-called "sexual question." This is discussed by men and w omen w ho c hallenge the e xisting s exual morality a nd w ho s eek t o throw off the burden of moral guilt which past centuries have heaped upon Eros. O ne can not s imply d eny t he ex istence o f t hese e ndeavours nor condemn them a s indefensible; t hey exist, a nd p robably have a dequate grounds for t heir e xistence. I t is more i nteresting an d more u seful t o examine carefully the underlying causes of these contemporary movements than to j oin in t he lamentations of t he pr ofessional mourners of m orality who [with hysterical unction] prophesy the moral downfall of humanity. It is the way of moralists not to put the slightest trust in God, as if they thought that the good tree of humanity flourished only by dint of being pruned, tied back, and trained on a trellis; whereas in fact Father Sun and Mother

258


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

428

Earth have allowed it to grow for their delight in accordance with deep, wise laws. Serious-minded people know that there is something of a sexual problem today. They know that the rapid development of the towns, with the specialization of work brought about by the extraordinary division of labour, the increasing industrialization of the countryside, and the growing sense of insecurity, deprive men of many opportunities for giving vent to their affective energies. The peasant's alternating rhythm of work secures him unconscious satisfactions through its symbolical content-satisfactions which the factory workers and office employees do not know and can never enjoy. What do these know of his life with nature, of those grand moments when, as lord and fructifier of the earth, he drives his plough through the soil, and with a kingly gesture scatters the seed for the future harvest; of his rightful fear of the destructive power of the elements, of his joy in the fruitfulness of his wife who bears him the daughters and sons who mean increased working-power and prosperity? [Alas!] From all this we city-dwellers, we modern machineminders, are far removed. Is not the fairest and most natural of all satisfactions beginning to fail us, when we can no longer regard with unmixed joy the harvest of our own sowing, the "blessing" of children? [Marriages where no artifices are resorted to are rare. Is not this an all-important departure from the joys which Mother Nature gave her first-born son?] Can such a state of affairs bring satisfaction? See how men slink to work, only observe the faces in trains at 7: 30 in the morning! One man makes his little wheels go round, another writes things that interest him not at all. What wonder that nearly every man belongs to as many clubs as there are days in the week, or that there are flourishing little societies for women where they can pour out, on the hero of the latest cult, those inarticulate longings which the man drowns at the pub in big talk and small beer? To these sources of discontent there is added a further and graver difficulty. Nature has armed defenceless and weaponless man with a vast store of energy, to enable him not only passively to endure the rigours of existence but also to overcome them. She has equipped her son for tremendous hardships [and has placed a costly premium on the overcoming of them, as Scho-

259


APPENDICES

[29

30

penhauer well un derstood when he said t hat ha ppiness is m erely the cessation of u nhappiness]. A s a r ule we a re pr otected f rom the m ost pressing necessities, and for that reason we are daily tempted to excess; for the animal in man always becomes rampant unless hard necessity presses. But if we are high-spirited, in what orgiastic feasts and revels can w e l et of f o ur s urplus of e nergy? O ur m oral v iews f orbid t his outlet. [Let us reckon up the many sources of discontent: the denial of continual procreation and giving birth, for which purpose nature has endowed us with vast quantities of energy; the monotony of our highly differentiated m ethods of labour, w hich e xclude a ny i nterest i n t he work itself; our effortless security against war, lawlessness, robbery, plague, ch ild an d f emale m ortality-all t his g ives a s um of s urplus energy w hich ne eds m ust f ind a n ou tlet. B ut h ow? R elatively f ew create q uasi-natural da ngers f or t hemselves in r eckless s port; m any more, seeking for some equivalent of the hard life in or der to siphon off dangerous accumulations of energy that might burst out even more crazily, a re dr iven t o a lcoholic e xcess, or e xpend themselves i n the rush of money-making, or in the frenzied performance of duties, or in perpetual overwork. It is for such reasons that we have today a sexual question. The pent-up energy would like to get out here, as it has done since t ime immemorial in pe riods of security a nd a bundance. Under such circumstances it is not only rabbits that multiply; men and women, too, a re m ade t he s port of these w hims of na ture-the s port, be cause their moral views have shut them up i n a narrow cage, the excessive narrowness of which was no t f elt s o long a s ha rsh necessity pr essed with ev en g reater co nstraint. B ut n ow i t i s t oo t ight even f or t he city-dweller. T emptation surrounds h im on a ll s ides, a nd l ike a n invisible pr ocurer t here s links t hrough society t he k nowledge of t he preventive methods that make everything unhappened.] Why then the moral restriction? Out of religious consideration for a wrathful God? Irrespective of the widespread unbelief, even the be liever m ight quietly a sk h imself w hether, i f he were G od, he would punish every Jack-and-Jill escapade with everlasting damnation. Such ideas are no longer compatible with our comfortable conception of G od. O ur G od i s f ar t oo tolerant t o m ake a gr eat f uss a bout i t. [Mean-mindedness and hypocrisy are a thousand times worse.] Thus the ascetically in.

260


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

431

spired and markedly hypocritical 9 sexual morality of our time is robbed of any effective background. Or can we say that we are protected from excess by our superior wisdom and our insight into the nullity of human behaviour? Unfortunately w e a re very f ar f rom t hat. [ The hy pnotic power of t radition still h olds us i n t hrall, a nd o ut of c owardice a nd thoughtlessness the he rd goe s trudging a long t he same old pa th.] B ut man possesses in the unconscious a fine flair for the spirit of his time; he d ivines h is possibilities a nd f eels in his h eart t he in stability o f present-day morality, no longer supported by l iving r eligious conviction. Here is the source of most of our [erotic] conflicts. The urge to freedom beats upon the weakening barriers of morality: we are in a state of temptation, we want and do not want. And because we want and yet c annot th ink out what it is we r eally want, the [ erotic] c onflict is largely unconscious, and thence comes neurosis. Neurosis, therefore, is intimately bound up with the problem of our time and really represents an uns uccessful a ttempt on t he pa rt of t he i ndividual t o s olve the general problem in his own person. Neurosis is self-division. In most people the c ause of t he di vision i s t hat the c onscious mind w ants t o hang on to its moral ideal, while the unconscious strives after its-in the contemporary sense-unmoral ideal which the conscious mind [steadfastly] tries to deny. Men of this type want to be more respectable than they really are. But the conflict can easily be the other way about: there are men who to all appearances are very disreputable and do not put the least restraint upon [their sexuality] , but at bottom this is only a pose of wickedness [assumed for heaven knows what reasons], for in the background they have [a highly respectable soul] which has fallen into the unconscious just as surely as the immoral side in the case of the moral man. (Extremes should therefore be avoided as far as possible, because they always arouse suspicion of their opposite.) This general discussion was necessary in order to clarify the idea of an "erotic conflict" [in analytical psychology, for it is the 9 [The abolition of houses of prostitution is also one of the hypocritical pests of Our famous sexual morality. P rostitution e xists a nyway; the less it i s or ganized a nd l ooked a fter, t he m ore scandalous and dangerous it becomes. Since this evil nevertheless exists and always will, we should be more tolerant and make the thing as hygienic as possible. If people had not worn moral blinkers, syphilis would have been put down long ago.] [Note omitted in both editions of Collected Papers.-EDIToRS.] 261


APPENDICES

432

433

434

key t o the w hole c onception o f neurosis]. Thence w e c an proceed t o discuss firstly the t echnique of psychoanalysis and s econdly t he question of therapy. [Obviously the latter question would involve us in details and complicated case material which far exceed the scope of this short introduction. We must therefore be content to cast a glance at the technique of psychoanalysis.] Obviously the great question for this technique is: How are we to a rrive b y t he s hortest and b est p ath a t a k nowledge o f what i s happening in the unconscious of the patient? The original method was hypnotism: either i nterrogation i n a state of h ypnotic c oncentration or else the spontaneous production of fantasies by the patient while in this state. This method is still occasionally employed, but compared with the present t echnique i t is t oo primitive an d th erefore unsatisfactory. A second m ethod was e volved by the P sychiatric C linic, in Zurich, the so-called association method,IO the value of which is primarily theoretical a nd experimental. I ts r esults give one a comprehensive though s uperficial gr asp of t he un conscious c onflict o r " complex." 11 The m ore p enetrating m ethod is that of dream-analysis, discovered b y [the genius of Sigmund] Freud. Of the dream it can indeed be said that "the stone which the builders rejected has be come t he head of t he c orner." It is on ly in modern t imes t hat t he d ream, t his fleeting and i nsignificantlooking product of the psyche, has met with such profound contempt. Formerly it was esteemed as a ha rbinger of fate, a portent a nd c omforter, a messenger of the gods. Now we see it as an emissary of the unconscious, whose task it is to reveal the secrets [which our unconscious jealously hides] from t he c onscious m ind, a nd this it d oes with astounding completeness. From the analytical study of the dream it was found that the dream, as it appears to us, is only a fa<;ade which conceals the interior of t he house. If, however, while ob serving c ertain t echnical r ules, we induce t he dreamer t o ta lk ab out t he details of h is dream, i t s oon becomes evident that his associations tend in a particular direction and group themselves round particular topics. These appear to be of personal significance and yield a 10 11

Jung and others, Studies in Word Association, trans. by M. D. Eder. The theory of complexes is set out in Jung, "The Psychology of Dementia Praecox."

262


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

meaning which could never have been conjectured to lie behind the dream, but which, as careful comparison has shown, stands in an extremely delicate and meticulously exact [symbolic] relation to the dream fa<;:ade. 12 This particular complex of ideas, wherein are united all the threads of the dream, is the conflict we are looking for, or rather a variation of it conditioned by circumstances. The painful and incompatible elements in the conflict are in this way so covered up or obliterated that one may speak of a "wish-fulfilment"; though we must immediately add that the wishes fulfilled in the dream do not seem to be ours, but are of a kind that often runs directly counter to them. Thus, for instance, a daughter loves her mother tenderly, but dreams to her great distress that her mother is dead. Such dreams, in which there is apparently no trace of wish-fulfilment, are innumerable, and are a constant stumbling-block to our learned critics, for [-incredible to relate-] they still cannot grasp the elementary distinction between the manifest and the latent content of the dream. We must guard against this error: the conflict worked out in the dream is unconscious, and so is the resultant wish for a solution. Our dreamer does in fact have the wish to be rid of her mother; expressed in the language of the unconscious, she wants her mother to die. Now we know that a tertain compartment of the unconscious contains everything that has passed beyond the recall of memory, including all those infantile instinctual impulses which could find no outlet in adult life, that is, a succession of ruthless childish desires. We can say that the bulk of what comes out of the unconscious has an infantile character, as for instance this wish, which is simplicity itself: "When Mummy dies you will marry me, won't you, Daddy?" This expression of an infantile wish is the substitute for a recent desire to marry, a desire in this case painful to the dreamer, for reasons still to be discovered. The idea of marriage, or rather the seriousness of the corresponding impulse, is, as they say, "repressed into the unconscious" and from there must necessarily express itself in an infantile fashion, because the material at the disposal 12 [The r ules of d ream a nalysis. the laws g overning the s tructure of the d ream, a nd i ts symbolism together form almost a science, or at any rate one of the most important chapters of the psychology of the unconscious and one requiring particularly arduous study.] 26

3


APPEND1C1<:S

435

436

437

of the unconscious consists largely of infantile remmiscences. [As the latest researches of the Zurich school have shownp besides the infantile reminiscences there are also "race memories" extending far beyond the limits of the individual.] [This is not the place to elucidate the extraordinarily complicated f ield of dr eam a nalysis. W e m ust c ontent our selves w ith t he results of r esearch: dr eams are a s ymbolic s ubstitute f or a pe rsonally important wish which was not sufficiently a ppreciated during the da y and w as " repressed." In consequence of t he pr edominant m oral tendencies, t he i nsufficiently ap preciated w ishes t hat s trive t o r ealize themselves s ymbolically i n d reams ar e, as a r ule, er otic o nes. I t i s therefore inadvisable to tell one's dreams to a knowledgeable person, for the symbolism is of ten quite transparent to one who knows the r ules. The clearest in this respect are anxiety dreams, which are so common, and which invariably symbolize a strong erotic wish.] The dream is often occupied with apparently very silly details, t hus pr oducing a n i mpression of a bsurdity, or e lse i t i s on t he surface so unintelligible as to leave us thoroughly bewilddered. Hence we al ways h ave t o o vercome a c ertain r esistance b efore w e can seriously s et a bout di sentangling t he [ symbolic] w eb t hrough pa tient work. B ut w hen at la st w e p enetrate to its r eal m eaning, w e f ind ourselves deep in the dreamer's secrets and discover with astonishment that a n a pparently qui te s enseless d ream is i n t he hi ghest de gree significant, and that in reality it speaks only of extraordinarily important and s erious t hings of t he s oul. T his di scovery c ompels r ather m ore respect for the old superstition that dreams have a meaning, to which the rationalistic temper of our age has hitherto given short shrift. As Freud says, dream-analysis is the via regia to the unconscious. It leads straight to the deepest personal secrets, and is, therefore, an invaluable instrument in the hand of the physician and educator of the soul. The attacks of the opposition against this method are, as might be e xpected, ba sed upon a rguments w hich-setting a side th e undercurrents of pe rsonal f eelingderive c hiefly f rom t he ve ry s trong scholastic s treak th at s till e xists in the l earned t hought of our da y. Dream-analysis above all else mercilessly uncovers the lying morality and hypocritical pretences of man, showing him, for once, the other side of his 13 Uung, Wandlungen und Symbole der Libido.] 264


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

438

character in the most vivid light; can we wonder if many feel that their toes have been heavily trodden upon? In this connection I am always reminded of t he s triking s tatue of C arnal P leasure out side B asel Cathedral, the front exhibiting the sweet archaic smile, the rear covered with toads and serpents. Dreamanalysis reverses the picture and shows the other side. The ethical value of this reality-corrective can hardly be denied. It is a painful but extremely useful operation which makes great demands on bot h doc tor a nd pa tient. P sychoanalysis, c onsidered a s a therapeutic technique, consists in the main of numerous dream-analyses. In the course of treatment the dreams successively throw up the dregs of the unconscious in order to expose them to the disinfecting power of daylight, a nd i n t his w ay m uch t hat i s va luable a nd b elieved l ost i s found a gain. I t i s a c atharsis of a s pecial ki nd, s omething l ike t he maieutics of Socrates, the "art of the midwife." It is only to be expected that for many people who have adopted a certain pose towards themselves, i n w hich t hey vi olently be lieve, ps ychoanalysis i s a ve ritable torture. For, in accordance with the old mystical saying, "Give up what thou hast, then shalt thou receive!" they are called upon to abandon all their c herished i llusions i n or der t hat s omething de eper, f airer, and more embracing may arise within them. Only through the m ystery of self-sacrifice can a man find himself anew. It is a genuine old wisdom that c omes t o l ight a gain i n ps ychoanalytical tr eatment, a nd it is especially cu rious t hat t his ki nd of ps ychic e ducation should pr ove necessary in the heyday of our culture. In more than one respect it may be c ompared w ith t he Socratic m ethod, t hough i t m ust be s aid t hat psychoanalysis penetrates to far greater depths. We always find in the patient a conflict which at a certain point is connected with the great problems of society. Hence, when the analysis is pushed to this point, the apparently individual conflict of the patient is revealed as a universal conflict of his environment and epoch. Neurosis i s t hus not hing l ess t han a n i ndividual a ttempt, how ever unsuccessful, t o s olve a uni versal pr oblem; i ndeed i t c annot be otherwise, for a general problem, a "question," is not an ens per se, but exists only in the hearts of individuals. ["The question" that troubles the patient iswhether you like it or not-the "sexual" question, or more precisely, the problem of present-day sexual morality. His increased 26 5


APPENDICES

439

demand for life and the joy of life, for glowing reality, can stand the necessary limitations that reality itself imposes, but not the arbitrary, ill-supported prohibitions of present-day morality, which would curb too much the creative spirit rising up from the depths of the animal darkness.] The neurotic has the soul of a child who bears ill with arbitrary restrictions whose meaning he does not see; he tries to make this morality his own, but falls into profound division and disunity with himself: one side of him wants to suppress, the other longs to be free-and this struggle goes by the name of neurosis. Were the conflict clearly conscious in all its parts, it would never give rise to neurotic symptoms; these occur only when we cannot see the other side of our nature and the urgency of its problems. Only under these conditions does the symptom appear, and it helps to give expression to the unrecognized side of the psyche. The symptom is therefore an indirect expression of unrecognized desires which, when conscious, come into violent conflict with our moral convictions. As already observed, this shadow-side of the psyche, being withdrawn from conscious scrutiny, cannot be dealt with by the patient. He cannot correct it, cannot come to terms with it, nor yet disregard it; for in reality he does not "possess" the unconscious impulses at all. Thrust out from the hierarchy of the conscious psyche, they have become autonomous complexes which can be brought under control again through the analysis of the unconscious, though not without great resistances. There are very many patients who boast that for them the erotic conflict does not exist; they assure us that the sexual question is all nonsense, for they say they possess no sexuality whatever. These people do not see that other things of unknown origin cumber their pathhysterical moods, underhand tricks which they play on themselves and their neighbours, a nervous catarrh of the stomach, pains in various places, irritability for no reason, and a whole host of nervous symptoms. [That is where the trouble lies. Only a few especially favoured by fate escape the great conflict of modern man; the majority are caught in it from sheer necessity.] Psychoanalysis has been accused of liberating man's (fortunately) repressed animal instincts and thus causing incalculable harm. This [ childish] a pprehension s hows ho w l ittle t rust w e pl ace i n t he efficacy of our m oral pr inciples. P eople pr etend t hat only morality holds men back from unbridled licence; but a 266


NEW PATHS IN PSYCHOLOGY

440

441

much more effective regulator is necessity, which sets bounds far more real an d p ersuasive t han an y m oral p recepts. I t i s true t hat an alysis liberates the animal instincts, though not, as many would have it, with a view to giving them unbridled power, but rather to put them to higher uses, so far as this is possible for the individual concerned and so far as he r equires s uch " sublimation." I t is u nder a ll c ircumstances a n advantage to be in full possession of one's personality, otherwise the repressed portions of the personality will only crop up as a hindrance elsewhere, not just a t s ome uni mportant po int, bu t a t t he ve ry s pot where we are most sensitive: this worm always rots the core. [Instead of waging war on himself it is surely better for a man to learn to tolerate himself, an d t o co nvert h is inner difficulties i nto r eal ex periences instead of expending them in useless fantasies. Then at least he lives, and doe s n ot w aste hi s l ife i n f ruitless s trugg]es.] I f p eople c an be educated to see the lowly side of their own natures, it may be hope d that t hey w ill a lso l earn t o u nderstand a nd t o l ove t heir f ellow m en better. A little less h ypocrisy an d a l ittle m ore t olerance t owards oneself can only have good results in respect for our neighbour; for we are all too prone to transfer to our fellows the injustice and violence we inflict upon our own natures. [This funnelling of the individual conflict into the general moral problem puts psychoanalysis far outside the confines of a merely medical therapy. It gives the patient a working philosophy of life based on empirical insights, which, besides affording him a knowledge of his own nature, also make it possible for him to fit himself into this scheme of t hings. ' Wherein t hese ve ry va ried insights c onsist c annot be discussed here. It is also not at all easy to form an adequate picture of an act ual an alysis f rom t he ex isting l iterature, s ince by n o m eans everything has been pub lished that relates to the technique of a deep analysis. V ery great p roblems s till r emain to b e s olved in this f ield. Unfortunate]y t he num ber of s cientific w orks on t his subject i s still rather s mall, b ecause too m any p rejudices still prevent m ost o f th e specialists f rom c ollaborating in this i mportant e ndeavour. M any, especially in Germany, are also held back by the fear of ruining their careers if they venture to set foot on this territory.] [All these weird and wonderful phenomena that congregate round psychoanalysis allow us to conjecture-in accordance with 26

7


APPENDICES

psychoanalytic pr inciples-that something e xtremely s ignificant is going on here, which the learned public will (as usual) first combat by displays of th e liveliest a ffect. B ut: magna est vis veritatis et praevalebit.]

268


II THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

i

1. The Distinction between the Personal and the Impersonal Unconscious

442

Since we pa rted c ompany w ith t he Viennese s chool o n the question of t he i nterpretive pr inciple i n p sychoanalysis, namely, whether it be sexuality or simply energy) our concepts have undergone considerable development. Once the prejudice regarding t he explanatory c ause had been r emoved by a ccepting a p urely a bstract one, the nature of w hich was n ot postulated in a dvance, our i nterest was directed to the concept of the unconSCIOUS. 1 [First d elivered as a lecture t o the Z urich S chool f or A nalytical Psychology, 1916, a nd published the same year, in a French translation by M. Marsen, in the Archives de Psychologie (XVI, pp" 152-79) under t he title " La S tructure de l'inconscient." T he lecture a ppeared i n English with the title "The Conception of the Unconscious" in Collected Papers on Analytical Psychology (2nd e dn., 19 1 7), an d h ad evidently b een t ranslated from a G erman M S, w hich subsequently disappeared. For the first edition of the present volume a translation was made by Philip Mairet from the French version. The German MS, titled "Dber das Unbewusste und seine Inhalte," came to light again only after Jung's death in 1961. It contained a stratum of revisions and additions, in a later hand of the author's, most of which were incorporated in the revised and expanded version, titled Die Beziehungen zwischen dem Ich und dem Unbewussten (1928), a translation of which forms Part. II of the present volume. The MS did not, however, contain all the new material that was added in the 1928 version. In particular, section 5 (infra, pars. 480-521) was replaced by Part II of that essay. [The text that now follows is a new translation from the newly discovered German MS. Additions that found their way into the 1928 version have not been included; additions that are n ot represented i n t hat ve rsion a re gi ven i n square br ackets. To facilitate c omparison between the 1916 and the final versions, the corresponding paragraph numbers of the latter are likewise gi ven i n squ:ue b rackets. A similar bu t not identical pr esentation of t he rediscovered MS is given in Vo!. 7 of the Swiss edition.-EolToRs.]

26

9


APPENDICES

In Freud's view, as most people know, the contents of the unconscious are reducible to infantile tendencies which are repressed because o f t heir i ncompatible ch aracter. R epression i s a p rocess t hat begins in early childhood under the moral influence of the environment and continues throughout life. By means of analysis the repressions are removed and t he repressed w ishes ar e m ade co nscious ag ain. Theoretically the unconscious would thus find itself emptied and, so to speak, done away with; but in reality the production of infantile-sexual wish-fantasies continues right into old age. [203) 444 According to this theory, the unconscious would contain only those elements of the personality which could just as well be conscious, and have in fact been suppressed only through the process of education. It follows that the essential content of the unconscious would be of a personal character. Although from one point of view the infantile tendencies of the unconscious are the most conspicuous, it would none the less be a mistake to define or evaluate the unconscious entirely in these terms. The unconscious has still another side to it: it includes not only repressed contents, but also all psychic material that lies below the threshold of consciousness. It is impossible to explain the subliminal nature of all this material on the principle of repression, for in that case the removal of repression ought to endow a person with a prodigious memory which would thenceforth forget nothing. No doubt repression plays a part, but it is not the only factor. If what we call a bad memory were always only the result of repression, those who enjoy an excellent memory ought never to suffer from repression, nor in consequence be neurotic. But experience shows that this is not the case at all. There are certainly cases of abnormally bad memory where it is obvious that the lion's share must be attributed to repression, but these are relatively rare. [204] 445 We therefore affirm that in addition to the repressed material the unconscious contains all those psychic components that have fallen b elow the threshold, as well as subliminal s enseperceptions. Moreover, w e know , f rom a bundant e xperience a s w ell a s f or theoretical reasons, that be sides t his t he unc onscious contains all t he material that has not yet reached the threshold of consciousness. These are the seeds of future conscious con[202) 443

270


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

tents. Equally we have every reason to suppose that the unconscious is never qui escent in t he s ense of be ing i nactive, but presumably i s ceaselessly e ngaged i n t he grouping a nd r egrouping of s o-called unconscious fantasies. This activity should be thought of as relatively autonomous only in pa thological c ases; normally i t is c o-ordinated with consciousness in a compensatory relationship. 6 [ 5] 44 It is to be assumed that all these contents are of a personal nature in so far as they are acquired during the individual's life. Since this life is limited, the number of acquired contents in the unconscious must a lso b e l imited. T his b eing s o, it m ight b e th ought p ossible to empty t he u nconscious e ither by a nalysis or b y m aking a c omplete inventory of t he unc onscious c ontents, on t he gr ound t hat t he unconscious cannot produce anything more than what is already known and assimilated into consciousness. We should also have to suppose, as we have said, that if one could arrest the descent of conscious contents into t he unconscious by do ing a way w ith r epression, u nconscious productivity would be paralysed. This is possible only to a very limited extent, as we know from experience. We urge our patients to hold fast to repressed contents that have been re-associated with consciousness, and to assimilate them into their plan of life. But this procedure, as we may daily convince ourselves, m akes, no impression on t he unconscious, s ince i t c almly goe s on pr oducing a pparently t he same infantile-sexual fantasies which, according to the earlier theory, should be the effects of personal repressions. If in such cases the analysis be continued s ystematically, one uncovers l ittle by l ittle a m edley of incompatible wishfantasies of a most surprising composition. Besides all t he s exual perversions o ne f inds ev ery co nceivable kind of criminality, a s w ell a s the n oblest d eeds a nd the loftiest id eas imaginable, the existence of which one would never have suspected in the subject under analysis. [228] 447 By way of example I would like to recall the case of a schizophrenic patient of Maeder's, who used to declare that the world was his picture-book.2 He was a wretched locksmith's apprentice who fell i ll at an ear ly ag e an d h ad n ever b een blessed w ith m uch intelligence. This notion of his, that the world was 2 Maeder, "La Langue 20

d'un aliene," Archives de Psychologie, IX,

212.

271


APPENDICES

his picture-book, the leaves of which he was turning over as he looked around him, is exactly the same as Schopenhauer's "world as will and idea," but expressed in primitive picture language. His vision is just as sublime a s S chopenhauer's, the only d ifference be ing that with t he patient it r emained a t a n e mbryonic s tage, whereas i n Schopenhauer the same i dea i s t ransformed f rom a vi sion into a n a bstraction a nd expressed in a language that is universally valid. [229] 448 It would be quite wrong to suppose that the patient's vision had a personal character and value, for that would be to endow the patient with the dignity of a philosopher. But, as I have indicated, he a lone is a p hilosopher w ho c an transmute a vi sion b orn of na ture into a n ab stract i dea, t hereby translating i t i nto a u niversally valid language. Schopenhauer's philosophical c onception r epresents a personal value, but the vision of the patient is an impersonal value, a merely natural growth, the proprietary right to which can be acquired only by him who abstracts it in to an idea and expresses it in universal terms. It would, however, be wrong to attribute to the philosopher, by exaggerating the va lue of hi s a chievement, the a dditional m erit of having actually created or invented the vision itself. It is a primordial idea that grows up quite as naturally in the philosopher and is simply a part of the c ommon property of m ankind, in w hich, i n pr inciple, everyone has a s hare. The g olden a pples drop f rom t he same tree, whether t hey be gathered by a locksmith's a pprentice or by a Schopenhauer. [218] 449 These primordial ideas, of which I have given a great many examples in my work on libido,S oblige one to make, in regard to unconscious m aterial, a d istinction o f q uite a d ifferent c haracter from t hat be tween "preconscious" a nd " unconscious" or "subconscious" and "unconscious." The justification for these distinctions need not be discussed here. They have their specific value and a re w ell w orth e laborating f urther a s points o f vi ew. The fundamental distinction which experience has forced upon me claims to be no more than that. It should be evident from the foregoing that we have to distinguish in the unconscious a layer which we may call the personal unconscious. The co ntents of t his layer ar e of a p ersonal nature in so far as they have the character partly of acquisitions derived from the indi8 Psychology of the Unconscious. 272


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

vidual's life and partly of psychological factors4 which could just as well be conscious. [218] 450 It can readily be understood that incompatible psychological el ements ar e liable t o r epression an d therefore become unconscious. B ut this i mplies the p ossibility, on t he o ther ha nd, of making and keeping the repressed c ontents conscious once they have been recognized. We recognize them as personal contents because their effects, or their partial manifestation, or their source can be discovered in our personal past. They are integral components of the personality, they belong to its inventory, and their loss to consciousness produces an i nferiority in o ne r espect or a nother. T his inferiority has t he psychological character not so much of an organic lesion or an inborn defect as of a l ack which gives rise to a feeling of m oral resentment. The sense of m oral i nferiority a lways indicates that t he m issing element is s omething which, to ju dge b y th is feeling about it, really ought not to be missing, or which could be made conscious if only one took s ufficient trouble. The m oral inferiority d oes n ot c ome f rom a collision with the generally a ccepted a nd, i n a sense, a rbitrary moral law, but f rom t he c onflict with one's o wn self, w hich for r easons of psychic equilibrium demands that the deficit be redressed. Whenever a sense of m oral inferiority a ppears, i t i ndicates n ot only a ne ed t o assimilate an unconscious component, but also the possibility of such assimilation. In the last resort it is a man's moral qualities which force him, either through direct recognition of the need or indirectly through a painful neurosis, to assimilate his unconscious self and keep himself fully conscious. Whoever progresses along this path of self-realization must inevitably br ing into consciousness the contents of his personal unconscious, thus enlarging considerably the scope of his personality. 2. Phenomena Resulting from the Assimilation of the Unconscious [221]

The process of assimilating the unconscious gives rise to some very remarkable phenomena. It pr oduces in some patients 451

4

For

instance, repressed wishes or tendencies that are incompatible with the moral or aesthetic sentiments of the subject.

273


APPENDICES

an unmistakable and often unpleasant increase of self-confidence and conceit: t hey a re f ull of themselves, t hey know e verything, they imagine themselves to be fully informed of everything concerning their unconscious, a nd a re pe rsuaded t hat they unde rstand p erfectly everything that comes out of it. At every interview with the doctor they get m ore an d m ore ab ove t hemselves. O thers o n the contrary f eel themselves m ore a nd m ore c rushed unde r t he c ontents of t he unconscious, t hey l ose t heir s elfconfidence a nd a bandon t hemselves with dull r esignation to a ll t he e xtraordinary things t hat t he unconscious produces. The former, overflowing with feelings of their own importance, assume a responsibility for the unconscious that goes much too far, beyond all reasonable bounds; the others finally give up all sense of responsibility, overcome by a sense of the powerlessness of the ego against the fate working through the unconscious. [222] 452 If we analyse these two modes of reaction more deeply, we find that the optimistic self-confidence of the first conceals a profound sense o f impotence, f or w hich t heir co nscious o ptimism act s as an unsuccessful co mpensation; while t he p essimistic resignation o f th e others masks a defiant will to power, far surpassing in cocksureness the conscious optimism of the first type. [224] 453 Adler has employed the term "godlikeness" to characterize certain basic features of neurotic power psychology. If I likewise borrow the same term from Faust) I use it here more in the sense of that well known passage where Mephisto writes "Eritis sicut Deus, scientes bonum e t m alum" i n the s tudent's a lbum, a nd m akes t he f ollowing aside: Just follow the old advice Of my cousin the snake. There'll come a time when your godlikeness Will make you quiver and quake.5 454

Godlikeness is certainly not a scientific concept, although it aptly characterizes the psychological state in question. It has yet to be seen w hence t his at titude ar ises an d w hy i t d eserves the n ame o f godlikeness. A s the term i ndicates, t he a bnormality o f th e p atient's condition consists in his attributing to himself qualities or values which obviously do not belong to him, for to 5

Faust, Part I, 3rd scene in Faust's study.

274


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

be "godlike" is to be like a spirit superior to the spirit of man. If, with a psychological aim in view, we dissect this notion of godlikeness, we find that the term comprises not only the dynamic phenomenon I have discussed in my book on libido, but also a certain psychic f unction ha ving a c ollective c haracter s upraordinate to t he individual mentality. Just as the individual is not merely a unique and separate being, but is also a social being, so the human mind is not a self-contained and wholly individual phenomenon, but also a collective one. And just as certain social functions or instincts are opposed to the egocentric interests of the individual, so certain functions or tendencies of t he hum an m ind a re oppos ed, b y t heir c ollective nature, to th e personal mental functions.6 The reason for this is that every man is born with a brain that is highly differentiated. This makes him capable of a wide r ange of m ental f unctioning w hich i s neither de veloped ontogenetically nor a cquired. B ut, i nasmuch a s hum an br ains a re uniformly differentiated, the mental functioning thereby made possible is collective and universal. This explains, for example, the interesting fact t hat t he unconscious p rocesses of t he m ost w idely s eparated peoples a nd r aces s how a q uite r emarkable co rrespondence, w hich displays itself, a mong ot her t hings, i n t he e xtraordinary but w ellauthenticated an alogies between the f orms and motifs of au tochthonous myths. [235] 456 The universal similarity of human brains leads to the universal possibility of a uniform mental functioning. This functioning is the collective psyche. This can be subdivided into the collective mind and the collective soul.7 Inasmuch as t here are d ifferentiations corresponding to race, tribe, and even family, there is also a collective psyche limited to race, tribe, and family over and above the "universal" collective psyche. To borrow an [235] 455

6 This conflict arises, for instance, when it is a question of subordinating personal desires or opinions to social laws. Cf. Rousseau, Emile, Book I: "What can one do ... when, instead of educating a man f or hi mself, pe ople w ant t o e ducate hi m f or ot hers? H armony i s then impossible. Obliged to fight either against nature or against the social institutions, one has to choose between making a man or a citizen; for one cannot make the one and the other at the same time." 7 By the collective mind I mean collective thinking; by the collective soul collective feeling; and by the collective psyche the collective psychological functions as a whole.

275


APPENDICES

expression fro m P ierre J anet, t he collective psyche co mprises t he parties injerieures of t he m ental f unctions, t hat i s to s ay t hose deep-rooted, w ell-nigh a utomatic por tions of t he i ndividual ps yche which a re i nherited a nd a re t o be f ound e verywhere, a nd a re t hus impersonal or suprapersonal. Consciousness plus the personal unconscious constitutes the parties superieures of the mental functions, those portions, t herefore, t hat a re de veloped on togenetically a nd acquired as a result of personal differentiation. [235] 457 Consequently, the individual who annexes the unconscious heritage of the c ollective psyche t o what has a ccrued to h im i n t he course of h is o ntogenetic de velopment e nlarges the scope of h is personality in an illegitimate way and suffers the consequences. In so far as t he co llective p syche co mprises t he parties inferieures of t he mental f unctions a nd thus f orms the ba sis of e very pe rsonality, it ha s the effect of crushing and devaluing the latter. This shows itself in the aforementioned s tifling of s elfconfidence a nd i n a n unc onscious heightening of the ego's importance to the point of a pathological will to power. O n the ot her ha nd, in s o f ar a s t he c ollective ps yche i s supraordinate t o the pe rsonality, be ing the m atrix of a ll pe rsonal differentiations a nd the m ental f unction c ommon t o a ll individuals, i t will have the effect, if annexed to the personality, of producing a hypertrophy of s elf-confidence, w hich i n t urn is c ompensated by a n extraordinary sense of inferiority in the unconscious. [237] 458 If, through assimilation of the unconscious, we make the mistake of including the collective psyche in the inventory of personal mental f unctions, a dissolution of t he pe rsonality into its pa ired opposites i nevitably f ollows. B esides t he pa ir of opp osites al ready discussed, m egalomania a nd t he s ense of i nferiority, which a re s o painfully evident in neurosis, there are many others, from which I will single ou t on ly t he specifically m oral pair of op posites, na mely goo d and e vil (scientes bonum et malum!). The f ormation of t his pa ir goe s hand in hand with the increase and diminution of self-confidence. The specific virtues a nd v ices of humanity a re c ontained i n the c ollective psyche like e verything e lse. O ne m an a rrogates c ollective virtue t o himself as his p ersonal m erit, an other t akes co llective v ice as h is personal guilt. Both are as illusory as the megalomania and the inferiority, because the imaginary virtues and the imaginary wickedness

276


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

are s imply the m oral pa ir of o pposites c ontained i n t he c ollective psyche, w hich h ave b ecome p erceptible o r h ave b een r endered conscious artificially. How much these paired opposites are contained in the collective psyche is exemplified by primitives: one observer will extol the greatest virtues i n t hem, while a nother w ill r ecord the very worst impressions of t he selfsame t ribe. F or t he primitive, w hose personal d ifferentiation i s, a s w e k now, only j ust beginning, both judgments are true, because his mentality is essentially collective. He is still m ore o r le ss id entical w ith th e c ollective ps yche, a nd f or t hat reason s hares e qually in t he c ollective v irtues a nd v ices w ithout a ny personal attribution and without inner contradiction. The contradiction arises onl y w hen t he pe rsonal de velopment of the m ind be gins, a nd when r eason di scovers t he i rreconcilable na ture of t he oppos itesThe consequence of this discovery is the conflict of repre. We want to be good, and therefore must repress evil; and that the paradise of the collective psyche comes to an end. [237] 459 Repression of the collective psyche was absolutely n'ecessary f or t he de velopment of t he pe rsonality, s ince c ollective ps ychology a nd pe rsonal p sychology e xclude o ne a nother up t o a point. History t eaches us that w henever a ps ychological a ttitude a cquires a collective v alue, s chisms be gin t o break ou t. Nowhere i s t his m ore evident than in the history of religion. A collective attitude is always a threat to the in dividual, e ven w hen it is a n ecessity. I t is d angerous because it is very apt to check and smother all personal differentiation. It derives this characteristic from the collective psyche, which is itself a product of the psychological differentiation of the powerful gregarious instinct in man. Collective thinking and feeling and collective effort are relatively easy i n c omparison w ith i ndividual f unctioning a nd pe rformance; and from this may arise, all too easily, a dangerous threat to the development of personality through enfeeblement of the personal function. T he da mage done to the pe rsonality is c ompensated-for everything is compensated in psychology-by a compulsive union and unconscious identity with the collective psyche. [240] 4 60 There i s no w a da nger t hat i n the a nalysis of the unc onscious the collective a nd the pe rsonal psyche m ay be f used together, with, a s I have intimated, highly unfortunate results. These results are injurious both to the patient's life-feeling and

277


APPENDICES

to hi s f ellow m en, i f he ha s a ny pow er a t a ll ove r hi s environment. Through his identification with the collective psyche he will infallibly try to force the demands of his unconscious upon others, for identity with the collective psyche always brings with it a feeling of universal validity-"godlikeness"-which completely ignores all differences in the psychology of his fellows. 461 The worst abuses of this kind can be avoided by a clear understanding a nd a ppreciation of t he f act t hat t here a re di fferently oriented psychological types whose psychology cannot be forced into the mould of one's own type. It is hard enough for one type completely to unde rstand a nother t ype, bu t pe rfect un derstanding of a nother individuality is totally impossible. Due regard for the individuality of another is not only advisable but absolutely essential in analysis if the development of the patient's personality is not to be stifled. Here it is to be obs erved that, f or one type of individual, t o show r espect f or another's freedom is to grant him freedom of action, while for another it i s to grant h im f reedom of thought. I n a nalysis both must be safeguarded so far as the analyst's own self-preservation permits him to do so. An excessive desire to understand and enlighten is just as useless and injurious as a lack of understanding. [241] 462 The collective instincts and fundamental forms of thinking a nd f eeling br ought to light by a nalysis of t he unc onscious constitute, for the conscious personality, an acquisition which it cannot assimilate completely without injury to itself.s It is 8 Here I would pause to r emark that I intentionally abstain from discussing the question of how this problem presents itself from the point of view of the psychology of types. A special and somewhat complicated study would be required to formulate this in the language of type psychology. I must content myself here with indicating the difficulties that such a task would involve. The word "person," for instance, signifies one thing to the introvert and another to the extravert. During childhood the conscious function of adaptation to reality is archaic and collective, but it soon acquires a personal character which it may maintain henceforth if the individual feels no particular need to develop his type towards the ideal. If such an eventuality arises, the function of adaptation to reality may attain a perfection which pretends to universal validity, and therefore bears a collectivistic character as contrasted with its primitive collective character. To pursue this terminology, the collective psyche would be identical with the "herd soul" i n t he i ndividual, whereas a collectivistic psychology would represent a highly differentiated attitude to society. Now in the introvert the conscious function of adaptation to reality is thinking, which in the early stages of development is personal, but which tends to acquire a 8

27


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

therefore of the utmost importance in practical treatment to keep the goal of the individual's development constantly in view. For, if the collective psyche is taken to be the personal possession of the individual or as a personal burden, it will result in a distortion or an overloading of the personality which is very difficult to deal with. Hence it is imperative to make a clear distinction between the personal unconscious and the contents of the collective psyche. This distinction is far from easy, because the personal grows out of the collective psyche and is intimately bound up with it. So it is difficult to say exactly what contents are to be called personal and what collective. There is no doubt, for instance, that archaic symbolisms such as we frequently find in fantasies and dreams are collective factors. All basic instincts and basic forms of thinking and feeling are collective. Everything that all men agree in regarding as universal is collective, likewise everything that is universally understood, universally found, universally said and done. On closer examination one is always astonished to see how much of our so-called individual psychology is really collective. So much, indeed, that the individual traits are completely overshadowed by it. Since, however, individuation is an ineluctable psychological necessity, we can see from the ascendency of the collective what very special attention must be paid to this delicate plant "individuality" if it is not to be completely smothered. [242] 4 63 Human beings have one faculty which, though it is ot the greatest u tility f or c ollective pur poses, i s m ost pe rnicious f or i ndividuation, and that is the faculty of imitation. Collective psygeneral character of a collectivistic nature, while his feeling remains markedly personal in so far as it is conscious, and collective-archaic in so far as it is unconscious or is repressed. In the extravert, precisely t he reverse h appens. Besides this important difference t here is a nother, and one which is much more profound, between the role and meaning of the "person" for the extravert a nd for the i ntrovert. T he w hole e ndeavour o f the introvert i s d irected to wards preserving the integrity o f h is e go, w hich m akes h im a ssume a n attitude towards h is o wn person entirely different from that of the extravert, whose adaptation is made through feeling, even at the cost of his own person. These observations show what extraordinary difficulties we s hould ha ve t o s urmount if w e w ished t o c onsider our problem from the a ngle of type psychology, and justify us in abstaining from the attempt. [This theme w as gr eatly de veloped i n Psychological Types, where t he identification o f thinking with introversion and feeling with extraversion was given Up.-EDITORS.]

279


APPENDICES

chology c annot di spense with imitation, f or w ithout i t a ll m ass organizations, the S tate a nd t he s ocial or der, a re s imply i mpossible. Society is or ganized, i ndeed, less by l aw t han b y the propensity to imitation, im plying e qually s uggestibility, suggestion, a nd m ental contagion. But we see every day how people use, or rather abuse, the mechanism of i mitation f or the p urpose of personal di fferentiation: they a re c ontent t o a pe some e minent pe rsonality, some s triking characteristic or m ode of be haviour, t hereby a chieving a n o utward distinction from the circle in which they move. We could almost say that as a punishment for this the uniformity of their minds with those of their neighbours, already real enough, is still further increased until it b ecomes a n u nconscious e nslavement t o their s urroundings. A s a rule these specious attempts at differentiation stiffen into a pose, and the imitator remains at the same level as he always was, only several degrees more sterile than before. To find out what is truly individual in ourselves, profound reflection is needed; and suddenly we realize how uncommonly difficult the discovery of individuality is. ' 3. The Persona as a Segment of the Collective Psyche Here we come to a problem which, if overlooked, is liable to c ause the gr eatest c onfusion. It will be r emembered that in t he analysis of t he personal u nconscious the f irst things to be a dded t o consciousness a re the personal c ontents, a nd I suggested t hat these contents, which ha ve been r epressed b ut a re c apable of be ing m ade conscious a gain, s hould be c alled the personal unconscious. I a lso showed that t o annex t he de eper l ayers of the unc onscious, w hich I have called the impersonal unconscious) produces an enlargement of the personality leading to the state of "godlikeness." This state is reached by simply c ontinuing t he a nalytical w ork w hich h as r estored t o consciousness the repressed portions of the personality. By continuing the analysis we add to the personal consciousness certain fundamental, general, and impersonal characteristics of humanity, thereby bringing about the condition I have described, which might be

[243J 464

280


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

regarded as one of the disagreeable consequences of analysis.9 [245] 465 From this point of view the conscious personality looks to us l ike a m ore or l ess a rbitrary segment of the c ollective p syche. It owes i ts e xistence s imply t o the f act t hat i t is f rom t he outset unconscious of t hese f undamental a nd u niversal c haracteristics of humanity, a nd in a ddition ha s r epressed, m ore or l ess a rbitrarily, psychic or characterological elements of which it could just as well be conscious, in or der to build up that segment of the collective psyche which we c all t he persona. The t erm persona is a ve ry a ppropriate expression f or this, f or originally it m eant t he m ask once w orn b y actors to indicate t he r ole t hey played. I f we e ndeavour t o dr aw a precise distinction between what p sychic m aterial s hould be considered personal, and what impersonal, we soon find our selves in the greatest dilemma, for by definition we have to say of the persona's contents w hat we ha ve s aid of t he i mpersonal u nconscious, namely, that they ar e co llective. It is o nly because t he persona r epresents a more or less arbitrary and fortuitous segment of the collective psyche that we can make the mistake of regarding it in toto as something individual. It is, as its name implies, only the mask worn by the collective psyche, a m ask that feigns individuality) making o thers an d o neself believe t hat o ne i s i ndividual, w hereas o ne is simply acting a r ole through which the collective psyche speaks. [246J 466 When we analyse the persona we strip off the mask, and discover that what seemed to be individual is at bottom collective. We thus trace t he "petty go d of t his w orld" ba ck t o hi s or igin i n t he universal god w ho i s a personification of the c ollective p syche. Whether we r educe t he personality t o the f undamental in stinct o f sexuality, l ike F reud, or t o the e go's e lementary w ill to p ower, l ike Adler, or t o the ge neral pr inciple of the collective ps yche w hich embraces both the Freudian and the Adlerian principles, we arrive at the same result: the dissolution of In a ce rtain s ense t his feeling o f " godlikeness" ex ists a priori, even be fore a nalysis, not only in the neurotic but also in the normal person, the only difference being that the normal individual is effectively shielded from any perception of his unconscious, while the neurotic is l ess an d l ess so. O n acco unt o f h is q uite p eculiar sensibility, th e latter p articipates to a greater e xtent in t he life o f t he unc onscious t han doe s t he no rmal pe rson. Consequently, "godlikeness" manifests itself more clearly in the neurotic and it is heightened still further by the realization of unconscious contents through analysis.

9

281


APPENDICES

the p ersonality in the c ollective. T hat is w hy, in a ny a nalysis th at is pushed f ar enough, t here c omes a m oment w hen t he s ubject experiences that feeling of "godlikeness" of which we have spoken. 6 [250J 4 7 This condition frequently announces itself by very peculiar symptoms, a s f or e xample dr eams in which t he dr eamer is f lying through space like a comet, or feels that he is the earth, the sun, or a star, or that he is of immense size, or dwarfishly small, or that he is dead, is in a strange place, is a stranger to himself, confused, mad, ete. He may also experience bodysensations, such as being too large for his skin, or too fat; or hypnagogic sensations of falling or rising endlessly, of the body growing larger, or of vertigo. Psychologically this state is marked by a peculiar disorientation in regard to one's own personality; one no longer knows who one is, or one is absolutely certain that one actually is w hat o ne s eems t o h ave b ecome. I ntolerance, d ogmatism, self-conceit, self-depreciation, and contempt for "people who have not been an alysed," an d f or t heir v iews an d activities, ar e common symptoms. Often enough I have observed an increase in the liability to physical illness, but only when the patients r elish their c ondition a nd dwell on it too long. [251J 468 The forces that burst out of the collective psyche are confusing and blinding. One result of the dissolution of the persona is the release of f antasy, w hich i s a pparently not hing l ess t han t he s pecific activity of the collective psyche. This outburst of fantasy throws up into consciousness materials and impulses whose existence one had never before suspected. All the treasures of mythological thinking and feeling are unlocked. It is not always easy to hold one's own against such an overwhelming impression. This phase must be reckoned one of the real dangers of analysis, a danger that ought not tobe minimized. 469 It will readily be understood that this condition is so insupportable that one would like to put an end to it as speedily as possible, since the analogy with mental derangement is too close. As we know, the c ommonest form of i nsanity, de mentia pr aecox or schizophrenia, consists e ssentially in th e f act th at th e u nconscious i n l arge measure ousts a nd supplants t he f unction of t he conscious mind. T he unconscious usurps the reality function and substitutes its own reality. Unconscious t houghts be come a udible a s voi ces, or a re pe rceived a s visions or body-hallucina282


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

tions, or they manifest themselves in senseless, unshakable judgments upheld in the face of reality. 47째 In a similar but not quite identical manner the unconscious is pus hed i nto c onsciousness w hen t he p ersona i s di ssolved i n t he collective p syche. T he o ne d ifference b etween t his s tate a nd th at o f mental alienation is that here the unconscious is brought to the surface with the help of conscious analysis-at least, this is how things go at the beginning of a n a nalysis, w hen pow erful c ultural r esistances t o t he unconscious have still to be overcome. Later, when the barriers built up by t he ye ars ha ve be en br oken dow n, the unc onscious i ntrudes spontaneously, a nd s ometimes i rrupts i nto t he c onscious m ind l ike a torrent. In this phase the analogy with mental derangement is very close. [In the same way, the moments of inspiration in a genius often bear a decided resemblance to pathological states.] But it would be real insanity only if the contents of the unconscious became a reality that took the place o f c onscious reality; i n ot her w ords, if th ey w ere b elieved in without r eserve. [ Actually, one c an b elieve i n t he c ontents of t he unconscious w ithout t his a mounting t o i nsanity i n t he proper s ense, even though actions of a n una dapted na ture may be performed on t he basis of s uch c onvictions. P aranoid de lusions, f or i nstance, do not depend on be lief-they appear t o be t rue a priori and ha ve no ne ed of belief in order to lead an effective and valid existence. In the cases we are discussing the question is still open whether belief or criticism will triumph. This alternative is not found in genuine insanity.]

4. A ttempts to Free the Individuality from the Collective Psyche a. THE REGRESSIVE RESTORATION OF THE PERSONA 471

The unbearable state of identity with the collective psyche drives the patient, as we have said, to some radical solution. Two ways are open to him for getting out of the condition of "godlikeness:" The first possibility is to try to re-establish regressively the previous persona by a ttempting to c ontrol the unconscious through the a pplication of a reductive t heory-by de claring, f or i nstance, t hat i t i s "nothing but " repressed and long overdue 28 3


APPENDICES

472

infantile s exuality w hich w ould really b e b est replaced b y t he normal sexual f unction. T his e xplanation is b ased o n the u ndeniably s exual symbolism of t he l anguage of t he unconscious a nd on i ts concretistic interpretation. Alternatively t he p ower t heory may be invoked a nd, relying on the equally undeniable power tendencies of the unconscious, one may interpret the feeling of "godlikeness" as "masculine protest," as the infantile desire for domination and security. Or one may explain the unconscious i n terms of t he a rchaic p sychology of p rimitives, an explanation that would n ot only c over bot h the s exual s ymbolism a nd the "godlike" power strivings t hat come t o light i n t he u nconscious material but would also seem to do justice to its religious, philosophical, and mythological aspects. In each case the conclusion will be the same, for what it amounts to is a repudiation of the unconscious as something everybody knows t o be useless, i nfantile, d evoid of sense, a nd a ltogether impossible a nd ob solete. A fter this de valuation, there is n othing t o be done but shrug one's shoulders resignedly. To the patient there seems to be no alternative, if he is to go on living rationally, but to reconstitute, as best he can, that segment of the collective psyche which we have called the persona, and quietly give up analysis, trying to forget if possible that he possesses an unconscious. He will take Faust's words to heart: This earthly circle I know well enough. Towards the Beyond the view has been cut off; Fool-who directs that way his dazzled eye, Contrives himself a double in the sky! Let h im l ook r ound h im h ere, n ot s tray beyond; To a sound man this world must n eeds r espond. To roam into eternity is vain! What he perceives, he can attain. Thus let him walk along his earthlong day; Though phantoms haunt him, let him go his way, And, moving on, to weal and woe assentHe at each moment ever discontent.1o

[257]

Such a solution would be perfect if a man were really able to shake off the unconscious, drain it of libido and render it inactive. But experience shows t hat i t i s n ot possible t o drain t he 10 Faust, trans. b y

[258] 473

MacNeice, Part II, Act V, p. 283.

284


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

energy from the unconscious: it remains active, for it not only contains but is itself the source of libido from which all the psychic elements flow into us-the thought-feelings or feelingthoughts, the still undifferentiated germs of formal thinking and feeling. It is therefore a delusion to think that by some kind of magical theory or method the unconscious can be finally emptied of libido and thus, as it were, eliminated. One may for a while play with this delusion, but the da y c omes when on e is for ced to say with Faust: But now such spectredom so throngs the air That none knows how to dodge it, none knows where. Though one day greet us with a rational gleam, The night entangles us in webs of dream. We come back happy from the fields of springAnd a bird croaks. Croaks what? Some evil thing. Enmeshed in superstition night and morn, It forms and shows itself and comes to warn. And we, so scared, stand without friend or kin, And the door creaks-and nobody comes in. Anyone here? CARE: The answer should be clear. F AUST: And you, who are you then? CARE: I am just here. F AUST: Take yourself off! CARE: This is where I belong. FAUST: Take care, Faust, speak no magic spell, be strong. CARE: Unheard by the outward ear In the heart I whisper fear; Changing shape from hour to hour I employ my savage power,11 The unconscious cannot be analysed to a finish and brought to a standstill. Nothing can deprive it of its power for any length of t ime. To a ttempt to d o s o b y t he m ethod d escribed i s t o d eceive ourselves, and is nothing but ordinary repression in a new gUIse. 8 [25 ] 475 Mephistopheles leaves an avenue open which should not be overlooked, s ince it is a real p ossibility f or s ome p eople. H e tells Faust, who i s sick of the " madness of m agic" and would gladly escape from the witch's kitchen: [258] 474

11 Ibid., pp. 281ÂŁ. (modified).

285


APPENDICES

Right. There is one way that needs No money, no physician, and no witch. Pack up your things and get back to the land And there begin to dig and ditch; Keep to the narrow round, confine your mind, And live on fodder of the simplest kind, A beast among the beasts; and don't forget To use your own dung on the crops you set.12 [Anyone who finds it possible to live this kind of life will never be in danger of coming to grief in either of the two ways we are discussing, for his nature does not compel him to tackle a problem that is beyond his powers. B ut if e ver the gr eat pr oblem should be thrust upon hi m, this way out will be closed.] b. IDENTIFICATION WITH THE COLLECTIVE PSYCHE The second way leads to identification with the collective psyche. T his a mounts t o a n acceptance of " godlikeness," but now exalted into a system. That is to say, one is the fortunate possessor of the great t ruth w hich w as onl y w aiting to be discovered, of t he eschatological knowledge which spells the healing of the nations. This attitude is not necessarily megalomania in direct form, but in the milder and m ore f amiliar f orm of p rophetic i nspiration a nd de sire f or martyrdom. Fo r weak-minded p ersons, w ho a s o ften as not pos sess more than their fair share of ambition, vanity, and misplaced nai'vete, the da nger of yi elding t o t his t emptation i s v ery g reat. Access t o t he collective psyche means a renewal of life for the individual, no matter whether this renewal is felt as pleasant or unpleasant. Everybody would like t o hol d f ast to t his r enewal: one m an be cause i t enhances hi s life-feeling, a nother because it promises a rich harvest of knowledge. Therefore both of them, not wishing to deprive themselves of the great treasures that lie bur ied in the c ollective psyche, will strive by e very means possible to maintain their newly won connection with the primal source of life.13 Identifi6

[260] 47

Ibid., Part I, p. 67 (modified). I would like to call attention here to an in teresting remark of Kant's. In his lectures on psychology (Vorlesungen ilber Psychologie) he speaks of the "treasure lying within the field of dim representations, that deep abyss of human knowledge forever beyond our reach." This treasure, as I have demonstrated in my

12

13

286


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

cation would seem to be the shortest road to this, for the dissolution of the persona in the collective psyche positively invites one to plunge into that "ocean of divinity" a nd blot out a ll m emory in its e mbrace. This piece o f m ysticism is in nate in a ll b etter m en a s the " longing f or th e mother," the nostalgia for the source from which we came. [261] 477 As I have shown in my book on libido, there lie at the root of t he r egressive l onging, w hich F reud c onceives a s " infantile fixation" or the "incest wish," a specific value and a specific need which are made explicit in myths. It is precisely the strongest and best among men, t he he roes, w ho gi ve w ay t o t heir r egressive l onging a nd purposely e xpose t hemselves t o t he da nger of be ing de voured by t he monster o f t he m aternal ab yss. B ut i f a man i s a h ero, h e i s a h ero because, in the final reckoning, he did not let the monster devour him, but s ubdued i t, not onc e but m any t imes. V ictory ove r t he c ollective psyche a lone yi elds t he t rue va lue-the ca pture o f t he hoa rd, t he invincible weapon, the magic talisman, or whatever it be that the myth deems m ost de sirable. A nyone w ho i dentifies w ith t he c ollective psyche-or, i n m ythological t erms, l ets hi mself be d evoured by t he monsterand va nishes in it, a ttains the treasure that the dragon gua rds, but he does so in spite of himself and to his own greatest harm. 478 [The danger, therefore, of falling victim to the collective psyche by i dentification i s not t o be m inimized. Identification i s a retrograde step, one more stupidity has been committed, and on top of that t he pr inciple of i ndividuation i s de nied a nd repressed unde r t he cloak of the individual de ed a nd in the ne bulous c onceit that one ha s discovered w hat i s t ruly one 's ow n. I n reality one ha s not di scovered one's own at all, but rather the eternal truths and errors of the collective psyche. In the collective psyche one's true individuality is lost.] 479 Identification with the collective psyche is thus a mistake that, in another form, ends as disastrously as the first way, which led to the separation of the persona from the collective psyche. Psychology of the Unconscious, is the a ggregate of a ll those primordial i mages in w hich the libido is invested, or rather, which are self-representations of the libido.

28

7


APPENDICES

5. Fundamental PrinciPles in the Treatment of Collective Identity <l80

<l81

<l82

483

In order to solve the problem presented by the assimilation of the collective psyche, and to find a practical method of treatment, we have first of all to take account of the error of the two procedures we have just described. We have seen that neither the one nor the other can lead to good results. The first, by abandoning the vital values in the collective psyche, simply leads back t o t he p oint of de parture. T he second penetrates directly into the collective psyche, but at the price of losing that separate human existence which alone can render life supportable and s atisfying. Y et e ach of t hese w ays proffers a bsolute va lues t hat should not be lost to the individual. The mischief, then, lies neither with the collective psyche nor with the individual psyche, but in allowing the one to exclude the other. The disposition to do this is encouraged by the monistic tendency) which always and everywhere looks for a unique principle. Monism, as a g eneral p sychological tendency, i s a ch aracteristic of a ll c ivilized thinking a nd f eeling, a nd it proceeds f rom t he de sire t o s et l,lp one function or t he ot her a s t he s upreme ps ychological p rinciple. T he introverted type knows only the principle of thinking) the extraverted type o nly t hat of teeling.14 This ps ychological m onism, or r ather monotheism, ha s t he a dvantage of s implicity bu t t he de fect of one-sidedness. It implies on the one hand exclusion of the diversity and rich reality of lif e a nd the w orld, a nd on the o ther t he practicality of realizing the ideals of the present and the immediate past, but it holds out no real possibility of human development. The disposition to exclusiveness is encouraged no less by rationalism. The essence of this consists in the flat denial of whatever is opposed to one's own way of seeing things either from the logic of the intellect o r f rom the logic o f f eeling. I t is e qually monistic a nd tyrannical i n r egard t o r eason itself. W e ought to be pa rticularly grateful t o B ergson f or ha ving br oken a l ance i n de fence of t he irrational. A lthough it m ay not b e a t a ll to t he ta ste o f the s cientific mind, psychology will nonetheless have to 14 [A view abandoned later. Cf. n. 8 supra.-EDIToRS.]

288


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

4 84

4 85

486

recognize a plurality of principles and accommodate itself to them. It is the o nly w ay t o pr event psychology f rom getting s tranded. I n t his matter we owe a great deal to the pioneer work of William J ames. With regard to individual psychology, however, science must waive i ts c laims. T o s peak of a science of individual psychology i s already a contradiction in terms. It is only the collective element in the psychology of an individual that constitutes an object for science; for the i ndividual i s by de finition s omething uni que t hat c annot be compared w ith a nything e lse. A psychologist w ho pr ofesses a "scientific" i ndividual psychology i s simply de nying i ndividual psychology. H e e xposes hi s i ndividual psychology t o the l egitimate suspicion of be ing m erely his ow n ps ychology. T he p sychology of every individual would need i ts own m anual, f or the general m anual can deal only with collective psychology. These remarks are intended as a prelude to what I have to say about the handling of the aforesaid problem. The fundamental error of both procedures consists in identifying the subject with one side or the other of his psychology. His psychology is a s much individual as collective, bu t not i n t he s ense t hat the individual ought to m erge himself in the collective, nor the collective in the individual. We must rigorously s eparate t he c oncept of t he i ndividual f rom t hat of t he persona, for the persona can be entirely dissolved in the collective. But the i ndividual is pr ecisely t hat w hich c an ne ver be m erged w ith the collective and is never identical with it. That is why identification with the collective and voluntary segregation from it are alike synonymous with disease. It is simply impossible to effect a clear division of the individual from the collective, and even if it were possible it would be quite pointless and valueless for our purpose. It is sufficient to know that the human psyche is both individual and collective, and that its well-being depends o n t he na tural c o-operation of these t wo a pparently contradictory sides. Their union is essentially an irrational life process that can, a t most, be described in individual cases, but c an neither be brought about, nor understood, nor explained rationally.15 15 [This paragraph, though included in the earliest draft of the German MS, was omitted from the earlier French and English translations.-EDITORS.] 28

9


APPENDICES

<le87

<le88 <le8g

490

If I may be forgiven a humorous illustration of the startingpoint f or t he s olution of our pr oblem, I w ould c ite Buridan's a ss between the two bundles of hay. Obviously his question was wrongly put. The important thing was not whether the bundle on the right or the one on the left was the better, or which one he ought to start eating, but what he wanted in t he de pths of hi s be ing-which d id he f eel pushed towards? The ass wanted the object to make up his mind for him. What is it, at this moment and in this individual, that represents the natural urge of life? That is the question. That question neither science, nor worldly wisdom, nor religion, n or t he be st of a dvice c an r esolve f or hi m. T he r esolution c an come s olely f rom a bsolutely i mpartial obs ervation of t hose psychological germs of life which are born of the natural collaboration of t he c onscious a nd t he u nconscious o n t he one ha nd a nd of t he individual a nd t he c ollective on t he o ther. W here do we f ind t hese germs o f l ife? O ne m an s eeks t hem i n t he co nscious, a nother i n t he unconscious. But the conscious is only one side, and the unconscious is only i ts r everse. W e s hould ne ver f orget t hat dr eams a re t he compensators of c onsciousness. I f i t w ere not s o, w e w ould ha ve t o regard them as a source of knowledge ~uperior to consciousness: we should then be de graded to the m ental l evel of f ortune t ellers a nd would be obl iged to a ccept a ll the f utility o f superstition, o r e lse, following vulgar opinion, deny any value at all to dreams. It is in creative fantasies that we find the unifying function we s eek. A ll the f unctions that a re a ctive i n t he p syche c onverge i n fantasy. Fantasy has, it is true, a poor reputation among psychologists, and up to t he pr esent ps ychoanalytic t heories ha ve t reated i t accordingly. F or Freud a s f or Adler i t i s nothing b ut a " symbolic" disguise for the basic drives and intentions presupposed by these two investigators. As against these opinions it must be emphasized-not on theoretical grounds but essentially for practical reasons-that although fantasy can b e cau sally ex plained a nd devalued in this w ay, i t nevertheless remains the creative matrix of everything that has made progress possible for humanity. Fantasy has its own irreducible value, for it i s a psychic function that has its r oots in the conscious and the unconsciousalike, in the individual as much as in the collective.

290


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

491

492

493

494

Whence has fantasy acquired its bad reputation? Above all from t he ci rcumstance t hat i t can not b e taken l iterally. Concretely understood, it is worthless. I f i t i s un derstood semioticallYJ as Fr eud understands it, it is interesting from the scientific point of view; but if it is u nderstood hermeneuticallYJ as an au thentic s ymbol, it a cts a s a signpost, providing the clues we need in order to carry on our lives in harmony with ourselves. The symbol is not a sign that disguises something generally known.I6 Its meaning resides in the fact that it is an attempt to elucidate, by a more or less apt analogy, something that is still entirely unknown or still in the pr ocess of f ormationY I f we r educe this by a nalysis to something t hat i s ge nerally kno wn, w e destroy t he true va lue of t he symbol; b ut t o a ttribute h ermeneutic significance t o it is c onsistent with its value and meaning. The essence of hermeneutics, an art widely practised in former t imes, c onsists i n a dding f urther a nalogies t o t he one a lready supplied by the symbol: in the first place subjective analogies produced at r andom by t he pa tient, t hen o bjective a nalogies pr ovided by t he analyst ou t of hi s ge neral kn owledge. T his pr ocedure w idens a nd enriches t he i nitial symbol, a nd t he f inal ou tcome i s a n i nfinitely complex and variegated picture the elements of which can be reduced to t heir r espective tertia comparationis. Certain l ines of ps ychological development then stand out that are at once individual and collective. There i s no science on e arth by w hich these l ines c ould be pr oved "right"; on the contrary, rationalism could very easily prove that they are wrong. Their validity is proved by their intense value for life. And that is what m atters in practical tr eatment: that human beings s hould get a hold on their own lives, not that the principles by which they live should be proved rationally to be "right." [This view will seem the only acceptable one to the man of our t ime w ho thinks a nd f eels s cientifically, b ut n ot to th e e xtraordinarily l arge num ber of s o-called ed ucated people f or w hom science is not a p rinciple of in tellectual e thics s uperior to their o wn minds, but rather a means of corroborating their inner exA disguise, that is, for the basic drive or elementary intention. Silberer, Problems of Mysticism and Its Symbolism; also my Symbols of Transformation and "The Content of the Psychoses"

16

17 Cf.

291


APPENDICES

195

periences and giving them general validity. No one who is concerned with ps ychology s hould bl ind hi mself t o t he f act t hat be sides th e relatively s mall num ber of t hose w ho pa y hom age t o s cientific principles a nd t echniques, hum anity f airly s warms w ith a dherents of quite a nother principle. I t is e ntirely in keeping with the spirit of our present-day culture that one can read in an encyclopaedia, in an article on astrology, the following remark: "One of its last adherents was 1. W. Pfaff, w hose Astroiogie (Bamberg, 1816) and Der Stern der Drei Weisen (1821) must be c alled s trange a nachronisms. E ven t oday, however, a strology is s till highly r egarded in the East, pa rticularly in Persia, India, and China." One must be smitten with blindness to write such a thing nowadays. The truth is that astrology flourishes as never before. There is a regular library of astrological books and magazines that sell for far better than the best scientific works. The Europeans and Americans who have horoscopes cast for them may be counted not by the hundr ed t housand bu t by t he m illion. A strology i s a flourishing industry. Y et t he e ncyclopaedia c an s ay: " The poe t D ryden ( d. 1701) still had horoscopes cast for his children." Christian Science, too, has swamped Europe and America. Hundreds and thousands of people on both sides of the Atlantic swear by theosophy and anthroposophy, and anyone w ho be lieves t hat t he Rosicrucians are a l egend of t he di m bygone has only to open his eyes to see them as much alive today as they ever were. Folk magic and secret lore have by no means died out. Nor should it be imagined that only the dregs of the populace fall for such s uperstitions. W e ha ve, a s w e know , t o c limb ve ry hi gh o n t he social scale to find the champions of this other principle.] [Anyone who is interested in the real psychology of man must be ar s uch facts i n m ind. F or i f s uch a l arge pe rcentage of t he population has an insatiable need for this counterpole to the scientific spirit, we can be sure that the collective psyche in every individual-be he ne ver s o s cientific-路has t his ps ychological r equirement in e qually high degree. A certain kind of "scientific" scepticism and criticism in our time is nothing but a misplaced compensation of the powerful and deep-rooted superstitious impulses of the c ollective psyche. We ha ve seen f rom e xperience t hat extremely cr itical minds h ave s uccumbed completely to this demand of the collective psyche, either directly, 292


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

496

497

498

or indirectly by making a fetish of their particular scientific theory.] 18 Faithful to the spirit of scientific superstition, someone may now begin to talk about suggestion. But we ought to have realized long ago that a suggestion is not accepted unless it is agreeable to the person concerned. Unless it is acceptable, all suggestion is futile; otherwise the treatment of neurosis would be an extremely simple affair: one would merely have to suggest the state of health. This pseudo-scientific talk about s uggestion i s ba sed on t he unc onscious s uperstition t hat suggestion is possessed of some self-generated magical power. No one succumbs to suggestion unless from the very bottom of his heart he is willing to comply with it. By means of the hermeneutic treatment of fantasies we arrive, in theory, at a synthesis of the individual with the collective psyche; but i n pr actice one i ndispensable c ondition r emains t o be f ulfilled. I t belongs e ssentially to the r egressive na ture of the ne urotic-and this is something he ha s a lso learnt in the c ourse of his illness-never to take himself or the world seriously, but always to rely first on one doctor and then on a nother, by t his or that m ethod, a nd in such a nd s uch circumstances, to cure him, without any serious cooperation on his part. Now, no dog can be washed without getting wet. Without the complete willingness a nd a bsolute s eriousness of t he pa tient, n o r ecovery i s possible. There are no magical cures for neurosis. The moment we begin to m ap out t he l ines of a dvance t hat a re s ymbolically i ndicated, t he patient himself must proceed along them. If he shirks this by h is own deceit, he automatically precludes any cure. He must in very truth take the w ay of t he i ndividual l ifeline he ha s r ecognized as hi s ow n, a nd continue along it until such time as an unmistakable reaction from the unconscious tells him that he is on the wrong track. He who does not possess this moral function, this loyalty to himself, will never get rid of his neurosis. But he who has this capacity will certainly find the way to cure himself. 18 [In Gesammelte Werke, vol. 7. these additions (pars. 494-gS) follow p ar. 477. There i s, however, no indication in the holograph MS that they belong thereor indeed anywhere else, since they were written on a separate slip of paper. We have therefore placed t hem where they seem to have a greater relevance to the context.-EDITORS.]

293


APPENDICES

199

500

501

N either the doctor nor the patient, therefore, should let himself s lip in to the b elief that a nalysis by i tself i s s ufficient t o remove a neurosis. T hat would be a de lusion a nd a de ception. Infallibly, in the last resort, it is the moral factor that decides between health and sickness. The construction of "life-lines" reveals to consciousness the ever-changing direction of the currents of libido. These life-lines are not to be confused with the "guiding fictions" discovered by Adler, for the latter are nothing but arbitrary attempts to cut off the persona from the collective psyche and lend it an independent existence. One might rather say t hat t he guiding f iction i s a n unsuccessful at tempt to construct a l ife-line. M oreoverand this s hows t he u selessness of t he fiction-such a line a s it does produce persists far too long; it has the tenacity of a cramp. The life-line constructed by the hermeneutic method is, on the contrary, temporary, for life does not follow straight lines whose course can be predicted far in advance. "All truth is crooked," says N ietzsche. These life-lines, therefore, are never general principles or universally accepted ideals, but points of view and attitudes that have a provisional value. A decline in vital intensity, a noticeable loss of libido, or, on the contrary, an upsurge of feeling indicate the moment when one line has been quitted and a new line begins, or rather ought to begin. Sometimes it is enough to leave the unconscious to discover the new line, but this attitude is not to be recommended to the neurotic under all circumstances, although there are indeed cases where this is just what the patient needs to learn-how to put his trust in so-called chance. However, it is not advisable to let oneself drift for any length of time; a watchful eye should at least be kept on the reactions of the unconscious, that is, on dreams, which indicate like a barometer the one-sidedness of our attitude.19 Unlike other psychologists, I therefore consider it necessary for the patient to remain in contact with his unconscious, 19 One should n ot look f or a ny moral f unction i n this signification of d reams, a nd I a m not suggesting that there is one. Nor is the function of the dream "teleological" in the philosophic sense o f t he word-that is, of ha ving a f inal e nd, still l ess of projecting a g oal. I ha ve of ten pointed o ut that the f unction of dreams i s above all compensatory, i n t hat t hey represent the subliminal ele路 ments constellated by the actual situation of the conscious mind. There is no moral intention in that, nor anything teleological whatsoever; it is simply a phenomenon that ought, in the first place, to be understood causally. However,

294


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

502

even after analysis, if he wishes to avoid a relapse.2o I am persuaded that the true end of analysis is reached when the patient has gained an adequate knowledge of the methods by which he can maintain contact with the unconscious, and has acquired a psychological understanding sufficient for him to discern the direction of his life-line at the moment. Without this his conscious mind will not be able to follow the currents of libido and consciously sustain the individuality he has achieved. A patient who has had any serious neurosis needs to be equipped in this way if he is to persevere in his cure. Analysis, thus understood, is by no means a therapeutic method of which the medical profession holds a monopoly. It is an art, a technique, a science of psychological life, which the patient, when cured, should continue to practise for his own good and for the good of those amongst whom he lives. If he understands it in this way, he will not set himself up as a prophet, nor as a world reformer; but, with a sound sense of the ge neral good, he will pr ofit by t he k nowledge he has acquired during treatment, and his influence will make itself felt more by t he e xample of h is o wn life t han b y a ny high d iscourse or missionary propaganda. [ADDENDUM] 21

503

[I am well aware that this discussion has landed me on perilous ground. It is virgin territory which psychology has still to conquer, and I am obliged to do pioneer work. I am painfully it would be d oing vi olence t o the p syche t o consider it from t he causal angle alone. O ne not only can, but one must envisage it from the standpoint of finality-causality is itself a point of view-in order to discover to what purpose just these given elements are grouped together. This is not to say that the f inal meaning, in t he sense of a n e nd gi ven a priori, pre-existed i n the preliminary stages of the p henomenon we are di scussing. According t o the theory o f k nowledge it is evidently not possible, from the indubitably final meaning of biological mechanisms, to deduce t he pre-existent fixation of a final end. B ut while thus le gitimately a bandoning a teleological conclusion it would be weak-minded to sacrifice also the point of view of finality. All o ne c an say i s t hat things happen a s i f t here were a f ixed f inal a im. In psychology one ought to be as wary of believing absolutely in causality as of an absolute belief in teleology. 20 This is not to say that he should adapt hi mself simply to the unconscious and not to the world of reali ty. 21 [In the German Urtext, pars. 504-506 followed par. 485, and appeared in that

295


APPENDICES

0

54

conscious of t he i nadequacy of m any of m y f ormulations, though unfortunately th is k nowledge is o f l ittle a vail w hen it c omes to improving on them. I must therefore beg the reader not to be put off by the s hortcomings o f m y p resentation, b ut t o tr y to f eel his w ay in to what I am endeavouring to describe. I would like to say a few words more about the concept of individuality in relation to the personal and the collective in order to clarify this central problem. As I have already pointed out, individuality reveals itself primarily in the particular selection of those elements of the collective psyche which c onstitute the pe rsona. T hese c omponents, a s we ha ve seen, are not individual but collective. It is only their combination, or the s election of a gr oup a lready c ombined i n a pa ttern, t hat i s individual. Thus we have an individual nucleus which is covered by the personal mask. It is in the particular differentiation of the persona that the in dividuality e xhibits it s r esistance to the c ollective p syche. B y analysing t he pe rsona w e c onfer a gr eater va lue on t he i ndividuality and t hus accen tuate its c onflict w ith t he c ollectivity. This c onflict consists, of c ourse, in a p sychological opposition w ithin t he s ubject. The dissolution of the compromise between the two halves of a pair of opposites r enders t heir a ctivity m ore in tense. In purely unconscious, natural lif e th is c onflict d oes n ot e xist, d espite th e f act th at p urely physiological life has to satisfy individual and collective requirements equally. The natural and unconscious attitude is harmonious. The body, its f aculties, a nd its n eeds f urnish of t heir ow n na ture the r ules a nd limitations that prevent any excess or disproportion. But because of its one-sidedness, which is fostered by conscious and rational intention, a differentiated ps ychological f unction a lways tends to disproportion. The bod y a lso f orms the ba sis of w hat w e m ight c all t he m ental individuality, w hich i s, a s i t w ere, a n e xpression of c orporeal individuality a nd c an ne ver c ome i nto be ing un less the r ights of t he body are acknowledged. Conversely, the body cannot thrive unless the position i n the e arlier F rench a nd E nglish tr anslations. At the t ime of th e f irst r evision, however, they were i ncorporated i n t his a ddendum, which was not included i n t he 1928 version. Pars. 507 (sec. 6), 508, and 521 are of particular interest as they contain what appears to be t he f irst f ormulation of t he a nima a nd a nimus i n l ung's writings. F or p urposes of comparison, t he f irst a nd s econd v ersions of the c oncluding s umma ry a re g iven i n full.-EDlTORS.]

296


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

5째5

506

mental individuality is accepted. At the same time, it is in the body that the i ndividual i s in the h ighest degree s imilar t o o ther i ndividuals, although each individual body is distinguishable from all other bodies. Equally, every mental or moral individuality differs from all the others, and yet is so constituted as to render every man equal to all other men. Every living be ing that is a ble to de velop i tself individually, w ithout constraint, will best realize, by the very perfection of its individuality, the i deal t ype o f its s pecies, an d b y t he s ame t oken will ach ieve a collective value. The persona is always identical with a typical attitude dominated by a s ingle ps ychological f unction, f or e xample, by t hinking, feeling, or i ntuition. T his one -sidedness ne cessarily r esults i n the relative repression of the other functions. In consequence, the persona is an obstacle to the individual's development. The dissolution of the persona is therefore an indispensable condition for individuation. It is, however, impossible to achieve individuation by conscious intention, because conscious intention invariably leads to a typical attitude that excludes whatever does n ot f it in w ith it. T he a ssimilation o f unconscious c ontents l eads, o n t he c ontrary, to a c ondition i n which conscious i ntention i s e xcluded a nd i s s upplanted by a pr ocess of development that seems to us irrational. T his pr ocess a lone signifies individuation, and its product is individuality as we have just defined it: particular and universal at once. So long as the persona persists, individuality is r epressed, a nd ha rdly be trays i ts e xistence e xcept i n t he choice o f i ts p ersonal acces sories-by i ts a ctor's w ardrobe, one m ight say. Only when the unconscious is assimilated does the individuality emerge m ore c learly, t ogether w ith the p sychological phe nomenon which links the e go w ith t he no n-ego a nd is designated by the word attitude. But this time it is no longer a typical attitude but an individual one. The paradox in this formulation arises from the same root as the a ncient dispute a bout uni versals. The pr oposition: animal nullumque animal genus est makes the fundamental paradox clear and intelligible. T he realia-these are t he p articular, t he i ndividual; t he universalia exist psychologically, but are based on a real resemblance between particulars. Thus the individual is that particular thing which possesses in greater or lesser degree the qualities upon which we base the general conception of

297


APPENDICES

5掳7

"collectivity"; an d the mo re i ndividual i t is , the more i t d evelops t hose qualities which are fundamental to the collective conception of humanity. In the hope of u nravelling these t angled pr oblems, I would l ike to emphasize the architectonics of the factors to be considered. We have to do with the following fundamental concepts: 1. The world of consciousness and reality. By this is meant those contents of consciousness which consist of perceived images of the world, and of our conscious thoughts and feelings about it. 2. The collective unconscious. By t his is meant that p art o f t he unconscious which consists on the one hand of unconscious perceptions of external reality and, on the other, of all the resi路 dues of the phylogenetic perceptive an d adaptive functions. A reconstruction of the u nconscious view of the world would yield a picture showing how external reality has been p erceived f rom t ime i mmemorial. The co llective u nconscious contains, or is, an historical mirror-image of the world. It too is a world, but a world of images. 3. Since the world of consciousness, like the world of the unconscious, is t o a l arge ex tent co llective, t hese t wo s pheres t ogether f orm t he collective psyche in the individual. 4. The co llective p syche m ust b e co ntrasted w ith a f ourth co ncept, namely, t he c oncept o f individuality. The i ndividual s tands, a s it w ere, between the conscious part of the collective psyche an d the unconscious part. He is the reflecting surface in which the world of consciousness can perceive its own unconscious, historical image, even as Schopenhauer says that the intellect holds up a mirror to the universal Will. Accordingly, the individual w ould be a p oint of i ntersection or a d ividing l ine, ne ither conscious nor unconscious, but a bit of both. 5. T he pa radoxical nature o f t he ps ychological i ndividual m ust b e contrasted with that of the persona. The persona is conscious all round, so to speak, or is at least capable of becoming so. It represents a compromise formation between external reality and the individual. In essence, therefore, it is a function for adapting the individual to the real world. The persona thus occupies a place midway between the real world and individuality. 6. Beyond individuality, which appears to be the innermost core of ego-consciousness and of the unconscious alike, we find 298


THE STRUCTURE OF TIlE UNCONSCIOUS

the co llective u nconscious. T he p lace b etween t he i ndividual an d t he collective unconscious, corresponding to the persona's position between the individual and external reality, appears to be empty. Experience has taught me, however, t hat here too a kind o f p ersona e xists, b ut a p ersona of a compensatory n ature w hich ( in a man) c ould b e c alled the anima. The anima would thus be a compromise for mation between the individual and the unconscious world, that is, the world of historical images, or "primordial images." We f requently m eet the an ima i n d reams, w here i t appears as a feminine being i n a man, a nd a s a m an (animus) in a woman. A good description o f t he an ima f igure can b e f ound in S pitteler's Imago. In h is Prometheus and Epimetheus she appears as the soul of Prometheus, and in his OlymPian Spring as the soul of Zeus. To the degree that the ego identifies with the persona, the anima, like everything unconscious, i s p rojected i nto t he real o bjects o f our 5째8 environment. She is regularly to be found, therefore, in the woman we are in love with. This can be seen easily enough from the expressions we use when in love. The poets, too, have supplied a good deal of evidence in this respect. The more normal a p erson is, t he less will t he daemonic qualities of th e anima a ppear in the o bjects of h is i mmediate e nvironment. They a re projected upon more distant objects, from which no immediate disturbance is to be feared. But the more sensitive a person is, the closer these daemonic projections will come, until in the end they break through the family taboo and produce the typical neurotic complications of a family romance. If the ego identifies with the persona, the subject's centre of gravity lies in t he u nconscious. I t is then p ractically id entical w ith the c ollective unconscious, b ecause t he w hole p ersonality i s co llective. In these ca ses there is a strong pull towards the unconscious and, at the same time, violent resistance t o i t o n t he p art o f c onsciousness b ecause t he d estruction o f 5<>9 conscious ideals is feared. In certain cases, found chiefly among artists or highly emotional people, the ego is localized not in the persona (the func. tion of relationship to the real world) but in the anima (the function of relationship to the collective unconscious). H ere i ndividual a nd pe rsona a re alike u nconscious. T he collective unconscious then intrudes into the conscious world, and a large 510

299


APPENDICES

part of t he real world be comes an un conscious c ontent. S uch p ersons have the same daemonic fear of reality as ordinary people h ave of the unconscious.] 6. Summary [FIRST VERSION]

511

A. We have to divide psychological material into conscious and unconscious contents. I. The conscious contents are in part personal inasmuch as their general validity i s not recognized, a nd i n p art impersonal) that i s, collective) inasmuch as their general validity is recognized. 2. The unconscious contents are in part personal inasmuch as they consist of p ersonal material that was o nce co nscious b ut wa s then repressed, a nd whose general validity i s t herefore n ot recognized when it becomes c onscious again. They are impersonal inasmuch as the material is recognized as having general validity, and of which it is impossible to prove any anterior or even relative consciousness.

512

B. The Composition of the Persona. I. The conscious personal contents constitute the conscious personality, the conscious ego. 2. The unconscious personal contents constitute the self) the unconscious or subconscious ego. 3路 The conscious and unconscious contents of a personal nature constitute the persona.

513

C. The Composition of the Collective Psyche. 1. The conscious a nd un conscious contents of a n impersonal or collective nature constitute the psychological nonego, the object-imago. These contents m ay appear i n a nalysis a s projections of feelings or judgments, but they are a priori collective and are identical with the object-imago; that is, they appear to be qualities of the object, and it is only a posteriori that they are recognized as subjective psychological qualities. 300


THE STRUCTURE Ol" THE UNCONSCIOUS 2. The p ersona is a gr ouping o f c onscious and un conscious contents which i s opposed a s ego t o t he n on-ego. A general comparison of the p ersonal c ontents be longing to different individuals shows t he surprising r esemblance between t hem, which may even a mount t o i dentity, a nd l argely cancels out t he individual nature of t he pe rsonal c ontents a s w ell as o f the persona. To this extent the p ersona m ust b e c onsidered a s egment a nd a lso a constituent of the collective psyche. 3. The collective psyche is thus composed of the objectimago and the persona.

514

D. Individuality. 1. Individuality m anifests itself p artly as the p rinciple w hich selects and sets limits to contents that are recognized as personal. 2. Individuality is the principle which makes possible, and if need be compels, a progressive differentiation from the collective psyche. 3. Individuality manifests itself partly as an obstacle to collective functioning, a nd partly a s r esistance t o collective t hinking a nd feeling. 4. Individuality is that which is peculiar and unique in a given combination of collective psychological elements. 5. Individuality corresponds to the systole, and collective psychology to the diastole, of the movement of libido.

515

E. The conscious and unconscious contents are subdivided into those that are individual and those that are collective. 1. A content whose developmental tendency is towards differentiation from the collective is individual. 2. A content whose developmental tendency is towards a general value is collective. 3. There are insufficient criteria by which to determine whether a given co ntent is p urely individual o r p urely c ollective, for individuality i s v ery d ifficult to d etermine, a lthough al ways and everywhere present. 4路 The life-line of an individual is the resultant of the individual and collective t endencies of t he psychological p rocess at a g iven moment. 301


APPENDICES

[SECOND VERSION]

516

A. We have to divide psychological material into conscious and unconscious contents. 1. The conscious contents are in part personal inasmuch as their general va lidity is n ot r ecognized, a nd i n part impersonal) that is , collective) inasmuch as their general validity is recognized. 2. The unconscious contents are in part personal inasmuch as they consist of personal material that was once c onscious but was then repressed, a nd w hose ge neral validity is therefore n ot recognized when it becomes conscious again. They are impersonal inasmuch as the material is recognized as having general validity, and of which it is impossible to prove any anterior or even relative consciousness.

517

B. The Composition of the Persona. 1. The conscious personal contents constitute the conscious persona[lity], the conscious ego. 2. The unconscious personal c ontents a re c ombined w ith the germs of the still undeveloped individuality and with the collective unconscious. All these e lements a ppear in c ombination with t he repressed personal c ontents ( i.e., t he personal u nconscious), a nd, when a ssimilated b y c onsciousness, dissolve t he pe rsona i nto t he collective material.

518

C. The Composition of the Collective Psyche. 1. The conscious and unconscious contents of an impersonal or collective nature c onstitute the p sychological nonego) the object-imago. These materials, in so far as they are unconscious, are a priori identical w ith t he object-imago; that is, t hey a ppear t o be qualities o f the o bject, a nd it i s only a posteriori that they a re recognized as subjective psychological qualities. 2. The persona is a subject-imago) which, like the objectimago, largely co nsists of co llective m aterial inasmuch as the p ersona represents a c ompromise w ith society, the e go i dentifying m ore with the persona t han with individuality. T he m ore t he e go identifies with the persona, the more the subject

302


THE STRUCTURE OF THE UNCONSCIOUS

becomes what he appears to be, and is de-individualized. 3. The collective psyche is thus compelsed of the objectimago and the pe rsona. W hen t he e go is c ompletely i dentical w ith the persona, individuality is wholly repressed, and the entire conscious psyche becomes collective. This represents the maximum adaptation t o society a nd t he m inimum a daptation to one 's ow n individuality. 519

520

D. Individuality. 1. Individuality i s t hat w hich is u nique i n the c ombination o f collective elements of the persona and its manifestations. 2. Individuality i s t he principle of r esistance t o c ollective functioning. I t m akes possible, a nd if need b e c ompels, d ifferentiation from the collective psyche. 3. Individuality is a developmental tendency constantly aiming at differentiation and separation from the collective. 4. A distinction m ust be m ade be tween individuality and t he individual. The i ndividual is de termined on the o ne h and by t he principle of uniqueness and distinctiveness, and on the other by the society t o w hich he be longs. He is a n indispensable l ink in t he social structure. 5路 Development of i ndividuality i s simultaneously a de velopment of s ociety. S uppression of i ndividuality through the predominance of c ollective ideals a nd or ganizations i s a m oral defeat for society. 6. The de velopment of individuality c an never t ake pl ace through pe rsonal r elationships a lone, b ut r equires a psychic relationship to the collective unconscious. E. The Collective Unconscious. 1. The collective unconscious is the unconscious portion of the collective psyche. It is the unconscious object-imago. 2. The collective unconscious is composed of: a. Subliminal perceptions, thoughts a nd feelings that were not r epressed be cause of their i ncompatibility w ith personal va lues, but w ere s ubliminal from the s tart because of t heir l ow s timulus value or l ow l ibido investment. 0 b. Subliminal vestiges of archaic functions that ~xist a 3 3


APPENDICES

priori and c an be b rought ba ck into fun ction at a ny time through an accumulation of libido. These vestiges are not merely f ormal but have t he d ynamic nature o f instincts. They r epresent th e primitive and th e animal in civilized man. c. Subliminal combinations in symbolic form, not yet capable of becoming conscious. 3. An actual content of the collective unconscious always consists of a n amalgamation o f the e lements e numerated in ac, and i ts expression varies accordingly. 4. The collective unconscious always appears projected on a conscious [external] object. 5. T he c ollective un conscious in individual A be ars a gr eater resemblance t o t he collective unconscious i n i ndividual B th an th e conscious ideas in the minds of A and B do to one another. 6. The m ost important c ontents o f the co llective u nconscious appear t o be " primordial i mages," t hat i s, unconscious c ollective ideas (mythical thinking) and vital instincts. 7. So long as the ego is identical with the persona, individuality forms a n essential c ontent o f the c ollective u nconscious. In t he dreams a nd f antasies of m en it b egins by a ppearing a s a ma sculine figure, and in t hose of women as a fe minine fi gure. L ater it s hows hermaphroditic t raits which c haracterize its in termediate p osition. (Good examples in Meyrink's Golem and in the WalPurgisnacht.) 521

F. The Anima. 1. The a nima i s a n unconscious subject-imago analogous t o the persona. Just as the persona is the image of himself which the subject presents to the world, and which is seen by the world, so the anima is the image of the subject in his relation to the collective unconscious, or a n expression of un conscious c ollective c ontents un consciously constellated by him. One could also say: the anima is the face of the subject as seen by the collective unconscious. 2. If t he ego a dopts t he standpoint of t he anima, a daptation t o reality i s severely compromised. The subject is fully adapted t o the collective unconscious but has n o adaptation t o r eality. In this case too he is de-individualized. 304


BIBLIOGRAPHY


BIBLIOGRAPHY


BIBLIOGRAPHY ADLER, ALFRED. The Neurotic Constitution. Translated by B. Glueck and J. E. Lind. London, 1921. (Original: Ober den nervosen Charahter. Wiesbaden, 1912.) AIGREMONT, DR., pseud. (Siegmar Baron von Schultze-Gallera). Fussund Schuhsymbolih und -Erotih. Leipzig, 1909. BENNET, E. A. What jung Really Said. London, 1966. BENOlT, PIERRE. Atlantida. Translated by Mary C. Tongue and Mary Ross. New York, 1920. (Original: L'Atlantide. Paris, 1920.) BERNHEIM, HIPPOLYTE. De la suggestion et de ses aPPlications cl la therapeutique. Paris, 1886. (Translated by Sigmund Freud as Die Suggestion und ihre Heilwirhung, 1888.) BLEULER, EUGEN. "Dementia praecox oder die Gruppe der Schizophrenien," in Handbuch der Psychiatrie, ed. G . A schaffenburg (Leipzig, 1911 ). (Translated by J. Zinkin as Dementia Praecox or the Group of Schizophrenias, New York, 1950') --. "D ie Psychoanalyse F reuds," jahrbuch fur psychoanalytische und psychopathologische Forschungen (Leipzig and Vienna), II (1910),623-73째. BREUER, JOSEF, and FREUD, SIGMUND. Studies on Hysteria. Translated by James and Alix Strachey. Standard Edition of the ComPlete Psychological Worhs of Sigmund Freud, vo!. 2. London, 1955. DAUDET, LEoN. L'Heredo. Paris, 1916. FECHNER, G. T. Elemente der Psychophysih. Leipzig, 1860. FERRERO, GUGLIELMO. Les Lois psychologiques du symbolisme. Paris, 1895. (Original: I simboli in rapporto alla storia e filosofia del diritto alla psicologia e alla sociologia. Turin, 1893.) FLOURNOY, THEoDoRE. "Automatisme teIeologique antisuicide: un cas de suicide empeche par une hallucination," Archives de psychologie (Geneva), VII (1907), 113-37.

--. Des Indes cl la Planete Mars: Etude sur un cas de somnambulisme avec glossolalie. Paris and Geneva, 1900. (Translation: From India to the Planet Mars. Trans. by D. B. Vermilye. New York, 1900.) FOREL, AUGUST. The Sexual Question. Translated from the second 3째7


BIBLIOGRAPHY

German edition by C. F. Marshal!. New York, Ig25. (Original: Die sexuelle Frage. Munich, Ig05; 2nd edn., Ig06.) FREUD, SIGMUND. "Beyond the Pleasure Principle." Translated by James Strachey. Standard Edition, vo!. 18 (lg55), pp. 3-64. --. The Interpretation of Dreams. Translated by James Strachey. Standard Edition, vols. 4 and 5 (lg53)路 --. "Leonardo da Vinci and a Memory of His Childhood." Translated by Alan Tyson. Standard Edition, vo!. 11 (1957), pp. 63137路 --. "An Outline of Psycho-Analysis." Translated by James Strachey. Standard Edition, vo!. 23 (lg46), pp. 141-2掳7. --. The Standard Edition of the ComPlete Psychological Works. Translated f rom t he G erman unde r t he ge neral e ditorship of James Strachey, in collaboration with Anna Freud, assisted by Alix Strachey and Alan Tyson. London, Ig53.24 vols. --. Early Psycho-Analytic Publications. Translated by James Strachey and others. Standard Edition, vo!. 3 (lg62). --. "Three Essays on the Theory of Sexuality." Translated by James Strachey. Standard Edition, vo!. 7 (lg53), pp. 125-243. --. Totem and Taboo. Translated by James Strachey. Standard Edition, vo!. 13 (lg55), pp. 1-161. --. See also BREUER. FRoBENlUs, LEo. Das Zeitalter des Sonnengottes. Vo!. I (no more published). Berlin, Ig04. GANZ, HANs. Das Unbewusste bei Leibniz in Beziehung zu modernen Theorien. Zurich, Ig17. [GOETHE, JOHANN WOLF GANG VON.] Geothe's Faust, Parts I and n. An abridged version translated by Louis MacNeice. London and New York, Ig51. --. "Die Geheimnisse." In Werke (Gedenkausgabe), edited by Ernst Beutler. Zurich, Ig48-54. 24 vols. (Vo!. Ill, pp. 273-83.) HAGGARD, SIR HENRY RIDER. She. London, 1887. HELM, GEORG. Die Energetik nach ihrer geschichtlichen Entwickelung. Leipzig, 18g8. HOFFMANN, ERNST THEODORE WILHELM (Amadeus). The Devil's Elixir. (Trans. anon.) Edinburgh, 1824. 2 vols. HUBERT, HENRI, and MAuss, MARCEL. Melanges d'histoire des religions. Paris, Ig0g. I Ching, or the Book of Changes. The German translation by Richard Wilhelm rendered into English by Cary F. Baynes. New

308


BIBLIOGRAPHY

York (Bollingen Series XIX) and London, Ig50. 2 vols. (1 vo!. edn., Ig61.) JAMES, WILLIAM. Pragmatism. London and Cambridge, Mass., Ig07. --. The Varieties of Religious Experience. London and Cambridge, Mass., Ig02. JANET, PIERRE. L' Automatisme psychologique. Paris, 188g. --. Nevroses et idees fixes. Paris, 18g8. 2 vols. --. Les Nevroses. (Bibliotheque de philosophie scientifique.) Paris, Ig0g. JUNG, CARL GUSTAV. The Archetypes and the Collective Unconscious. In: Collected Works,'" vo!. g, i. --. 'The Archetypes of the Collective Unconscious." In: Collected Works, '" vo!. g, i. --. "Brother Klaus." In: Collected Works,'" vo!. 11. --. Collected papers on Analytical Psychology. Edited by Constance E. Long; translated by various persons. London, Ig16. 2nd edn., London, Ig17; New York, Ig20. --. Commentary on The Secret of the Golden Flower. In: Collected Works,'" vo!. 13. ( Alternative s ource: W ilhelm a nd J ung, The Secret of the Golden Flower, q.v.) --. "The Concept of the Collective Unconscious." In: Collected Works, '" vo!. g, i. --. "Concerning the Archetypes, with Special Reference to the Anima Concept." In: Collected Works, * vo!. g, i. --. "The Content of the Psychoses." In: Collected Works,* vo!. 3. --. Freud and Psychoanalysis. Collected Works, vo!. 4. --. "General Aspects of Dream Psychology." In: Collected Works>," vo!. 8. --. "Instinct and the Unconscious." In: Collected Works,* vo!. 8. --. Mysterium Coniunctionis. Collected Works,* vo!. 14. --. "On Psychic Energy." In: Collected Works,* vo!. 8. --. "On the Psychology and Pathology of So-Called Occult Phenomena." In: Collected Works,* vo!. 1. --. "Paracelsus as a Spiritual Phenomenon." In: Collected Works,* vo!. 13. --. The Practice of Psychotherapy. Collected Works,* vo!. 16. (2nd edn., Ig66.) • For details of the Collected Works of C. G. Jung, see list at end of tnis volume, 3°9


BIBLIOGRAPHY

--. "Preface to the Second Edition of Collected Papers on Analytical Psychology." In: Collected Works, * vol. 4. --. "The Psychological Aspects of the Kore." In: Collective Works,* vol. 9, i. --. "The Psychological Foundations of Belief in Spirits." In: ~Collected Works, * vol. 8. --. Psychological Types. Collected Works, * vol. 6 . ( Alternative s ource: Translation by H. Godwin Baynes. London and New York, 1923.) --. Psychology and Alchemy. Collected Works,* vol. 12. --. "The Psychology of Dementia Praecox." In: Collected Works,* vol. 3. --. "On Psychological Understanding." In: Collected Works,* vol. 3· --. "Psychology and Religion." In: Collected Works, * vol. I!. --. "The Realities of Practical Psychotherapy." In: Collected Works,* vol. 16, 2nd edn. --. "A Review of the Complex Theory." In: Collected Works, * vol. 8. --. "The Role of the Unconscious." In: Collected Works,* vol. 10. --. "Sigmund Freud in His Historical Setting." In: Collected Works, * vol. 15. --. "The Stages of Life." In: Collected Works,* vol. 8. --. "The Structure of the Psyche." In: Collected Works,* vol. 8. --. Studies in Word Association. Collected Works,* vol. 2. (Alternative source: Translation by M. D. Eder, London, 1918; New York, 1919.) --. "A Study in the Process of Individuation." In: Collected Works, * vol. 9, i. --. Symbols of Transformation. Collected Works, * vol. 5. --. "The Theory of Psychoanalysis." In: Collected Works,* vol. 4. --. "The Transcendent Function." In: Collected Works, * vol. 8. --. Wandlungen und Symbole der Libido. Ein Beitrag zur Entwicklungsgeschichte de s D enkens. L eipzig a nd V ienna, 1 912. F or translation, see: Psychology of the Unconscious. Translated by Beatrice M. Hinkle. N ew Y ork, 19 16; L ondon, 1917. ( Subsequently r eplaced b y Symbols of Transforma.tion, q.v.) JUNG, EMMA. "On the Nature of the Animus." Translated by Cary • For details of the Collected Works of C. G. Jung, see list at end of this volume,

310


BmLIOGRAPHY

F. Baynes, in: Animus and Anima. New York (Analytical Psychology Club), 1957. KANT, IMMANUEL. Vorlesungen ilber Psychologie. Leipzig, 1889. KUBIN, ALFRED. Die andere Seite. Munich, 1908. LEHMANN, FRIEDRICH RUDOLF. Mana. Leipzig, 1922. LIEBEAULT, AM BROIsE AUG USTE. Du sommeil et des etats analogues consideres au point de vue de ['action du moral sur le physique. Paris, 1866. LONGFELLOW, HENRY WADSWORTH. The Song of Hiawatha. Boston, 1855. LovEJoy, ARTHuR O. "The Fundamental Concept of the Primitive Philosophy." The Monist (Chicago), XVI (1906), 357-82. MAEDER, ALFRED. "La Langue d'un aliene." Archives de psychologie (Geneva), IX (1910),208-216. --. "Psychologische Untersuchungen an Dementia-PraecoxKranken," ] ahrbuch filr psychoanalytische und psychopathologische Forschungen (Leipzig and Vienna), II (1910), 185-245. MAYER, ROBERT. Kleinere Schriften und Briefe. Stuttgart, 1893. MEYRINK, GUSTAV. Der Golem. Leipzig, 1915. For translation, see: The Golem. Translated by Madge Pemberton. London, 1928. --. Fledermause: 7 Geschichten. Leipzig, 1916. NELKEN, J AN. " Analytische B eobachtungen i iber P hantasien e ines Schizophrenen," ]ahrbuch filr psychoanalytische und psychopathologische Forschungen (Leipzig and Vienna), IV (1912), 504-62. NERvAL, GERARD DE (LABRUNIE DE). "Aurelia." In: Le Reve et la vie. Paris, 1855. (Pp.I-129.) For translation, see: Aurelia. Translated by Richard Aldington. London, 1932. OSTWALD, WILHELM. Grosse Manner. Leipzig, 1910. --. Die PhilosoPhie der Werte. Leipzig, 1913. PFAFF, JOHANN WILHELM ANDREAS. Astrologie. Nurnberg, 1816. ---. Der Stern der Drei Weisen. 1821. RousSEAU, J EAN-JACQUES. Emile, ou L'Education. Amsterdam a nd T he Hague, 1762. 4 v ols. F or t ranslation, see: Emile. Translated by Barbara Foxley. London and New York (Everyman's Library),19Il. SEMON, R ICHARD W OLFGANG. Die Mneme alserhaltendes Prinzip im Wechsel des organischen Geschehens. Leipzig, 1904. For translation, see: The Mneme. Translated by Louis Simon. London and New York, 1921.

3Il


BIBLIOGRAPHY

SILBERER, HERBERT. Problems of Mysticism and Its Symbolism. Translated by Smith Ely Jelliffe. New York, 1917. SODERBLOM, NATHAN. Das Werden des Gottesglaubens. Leipzig, 1916. (Original: Gudstrons uppkomst. Stockholm, 1914.) SPIELREIN, SAVINA. "Die Destruktion als Ursache des Werdens," .lahrbuch fiir psychoanalytische und psychopathologische Forschungen (Leipzig and Vienna), IV (1912), 465-503. --. SPiritual DisciPlines. Translated by R alph Manheim and R. F . C . H ull. (Papers f rom t he E ranos Y earbooKs, 4.) N ew York ( Bollingen S eries XXX:4) and London, 1960. SPITTELER, CARL. Imago. Jena, 1919. --. OlymPischer Frilhling: Epos. Leipzig, 1900-19째5.4 parts. --. Prometheus und EPimetheus. Jena, 1920. For translation, see: Prometheus and EPimetheus. Translated by James Fullarton Muirhead. London, 193L T ACITUS, PUBLIUS CORNELIUS. Dialogus: Agricola: Germania. Translated b y S ir W illiam P eterson a nd M aurice H utton. ( Loeb Classical Library.) London and New York, 1920. WARNECKE, JOHANNES. Die Religion der Batak. (Religions-Urkunden der Volker, ed. Julius Boehmer, Part IV, vol. L) Leipzig, 1909. WEBSTER, HUTroN. Primitive Secret Societies. New York, 1908. WELLS, HERBERT GEORGE. Christina Alberta's Father. London and New York, 1925. WILI-IELM, RICHARD, a nd J UNG, C ARL GUSTAV. The Secret of the Golden Flower. Translated by Cary F. Baynes. New edition, London and New York, 1962. WOLFF, TON!. "Einfiihrung in die Grundlagen der komplexen Psychologie." In: Die kulturelle Bedeutung der komPlexen Psychologie. Berlin, 1935. WUNDT, WILHELM. Grundzilge der physiologischen Psychologie. Leipzig, 1893. 2 v ols. For translation (from 5th German edn., 1902) see: PrinciPles of Physiological Psychology. Translated by E . B. Titchener. London, 1904.

312


BIBLIOGRAPHY


INDEX


INDEX

Page nu mber;s i n t he a ppendices a re pr inted i n i talic nu merals. T o f acili路 t ate comparison" i.dentical or similar references in the appendices and in the main TW0 Essays a re printed as f ollows: "absentmindedness, II /249." A n umbered list of Jung's cases is given under his name.

A

40, 53, 140/274, 28I; reductive method, 59; theory of compensaabaissement du niveau mental, 215 tion, 104n; theory of fantasy, 290; Abelard, Peter, 54 theory of neurosis contrasted with absentmindedness, II /249 Freud's, 35, 40ff, 61, 28I; and "absolute," meaning of, 235n transference, 165; The Neurotic absoluteness, 235 Constitution, 35n, 165n abyss, maternal, 170/287 adolescence, 107ff; see also young accidents, 115 people Achomawi (Californian tribe), 96n adulthood: entry into, 106; special activity of unconscious: autonomous, problems of, 60 128/27I; instinctive, 162; mytho- aestheticism, 102 aether,95 logical, loon adaptation, 55, 56, 149, 154n, 204f, affect, 176, 178, 194; release of, 68; 20 state of, 202; world of, 203 9, 278n, 279n; collective, 58; to collective unconscious, 161; diffi- affectivity, 94, 202 cuI ties of, 161; faulty, 199; maxi- Africa, 205; see also Elgon; Kavironmum, to society, 30); minimum, to dos individuality, 303; to reality, 304 age, and youth, 76; see also life, adjustment, 154n afternoon of; young people; youth Adler, Alfred, 3, 117f; Adlerian the- agoraphobia, 217 ory, 165; "arrangement," see ar- Aigremont, Dr. (Baron Siegmar von rangement(s); and "godlikeness," Schultze-Gallera), Fuss- und Schuh路 symbolik und -Erotik, 83n I40 / 274; and "guiding fictions," 294; "masculine protest," see mas- aim: cultural, 74; final, 295n; natculine/masculinity; "power drive," ural, of man, 74 16 5; and power principle, 35, 38, alchemy, 219f, 223; secret of, 220

315


INDEX

alienation from the world, 224 All-Merciful, the, 228 Also sprach Zarathustra, see Nietzsche, Friedrich altar, 106 America, 292 American: businessman, Jung's case [3], 5o t, 72, 7 6; students, 106 American Indians, myths of, 98; see also Achomawi amnesia, 10 amplification, 81 anaesthesia, 10, 12/250f, 176 analogies, 147/275; fantastic, 216; lunar, 160; objective, 29I; solar, 160; subjective, 29I; telluric, 160; see also thinking, analogical mode of analysis, 78,136,141, 156fl280f, 278; aim of, 212 , 2 19, 295 (see also goals); dangers o f, 114tf, 152/ 277 , 282; effect of, 140, 148, 28Itf, 294; Freud's theory of, 127/27째; of infantile transference fantasies, 64; o f J ung's c ase [ 4], 83; o bjective, see interpretations, o bjective; personal, 14 9; s ubjective, see interpretations, subjective; sublimation through, 47f, 267; t echnique, 24f; of unconscious, 128/27I, 232; see also dreams; psychoanalysis; reduction analytical psychology, v, 7, 112, 186n, 247, 26I; Zurich school, see Zurich anamnesis, 108 ancestor cult, 188 ancestral: ex periences, 1 90, 2 09; l ife, 77,79; s oul, 14 7n; s pirits, 18 6; see also archetype(s) angels, 66 Angelus Silesius (Johannes SchefHer), 237 anima, 9on, 110,187,212, 228tf, 233, 235, 296n, 299, 304; and a nimus, 206; anything but ideal, 195; a s autonomous pe rsonality, 201 , 224 , 227; a utonomous valency of, 228; compensates masculine conscious-

316

ness, 205; compensatory r elationship with persona, 192; concept of, 197; as counterpart o f pe rsona, 195; daemonic qualities of, 299; dark, 198; definition of, 304; dialectics with, 201 differentiation f rom pe rsona, 198; differentiation of o neself f rom, 195; dissolution of, 234; education of, 203; no E astern co ncept o f, 1 92; as f eminine w eakness of s trong m an, 194; figure, 299; f igures, hi storical a spect of, 190; as function, 210; as function of r elationship, 2 27, 2 99; a s i nner persona, 299; as invisible partner, 201 jealous m istress, 200; i n J ung's c ase [15], 218f; a s m other-imago, 197; objectivation of , 2 00; a nd pe rsona, 304; as a personality, 197 , 200; positive activity of, 224; pr oblem, 199; produces moods, 206; projected to w ife/woman, 195 , 1 97; r eactions, 205; supra-individual, 189; tyrannical power of, 229; and unconscious, 232; as u nconscious s ubject-imago, 304; uni-personality of, 209; see also animus animal(s): and a nima, 227; and archetypes, 69 , 9 8, 110; and c ivilization, 28; c onservative a nd pr ogressive, 1 16; d egrees o f differentiation, 116f; as doctor, 96n; in Jung's case [2], 35f; soul of, 105; as symbol, 35f, 64, 85f; unconsciousness, 59; see also list under symbol(s) animal ancestry, man's, 98 animal elements 1 instincts Inature, man's, 191258,20,28, 31tf, 86,231, 260,304; repressed, 26/ 266f animism, 68f animus, 9on, 110, 205tf, 212, 23 0, 296n, 299; a s a ssociative f unction, 209; deposit of woman's a ncestral experiences o f m an, 2 09; ex traversion o f, 2 08; f unction of , 208; "hound," 209; a jealous lover,


IND1<:X

208; a neologist, 208; opinions, 206-8 personification of , 20 7; pl ays up anima, 208; pl urality of , 2 07, 209; positive activity of , 22 4; p ossession, 209; p rojected, 207; p sychology of , 205; t echnique of c oming to t erms with, 209; a nd unconscious, 232; see also anima; hero(es); lover Anna, see Breuer's case of hysteria anthroposophy, 77, 29 2 Antinea, 189 anti-Semitism, 152n anxiety, 13/25I, 24, 83; dr eams, 26 4; Jung's case [ 2], 35tf, 47; l ung's c ase [3], 5 1; "seat o f," 42; -states, hysterical,47 aphasia, systematic, 11/249; see also voice, loss of apostasies, 75 apotropaic euphemism, 238 apparitions, 187; see also hallucinations; vision (s) apprehension, 109 aptitude(s): psychic, 190; subjective, 190; unconscIOUS, 190 archaic: c ollective contents, 94; f unctions, 303f; god-image, 135; i dea o f God, 1 37; mentality, 135; m odes of functioning, 9 8; ps ychology, 284; smile, 265 archaism of unconscious fantasies, l!ll archangels, 66 archetype(s), v, 65tf, 77tf, 84, 95tf, 108tf, 116, 138; in a nimals, 69; a s autonomous entity, 109; and hi storical f actor, 1 92; karma and, 77n; mana-personality a s, 228f, 233tf; parental, 186n; possession by , 234; reality of, 98; of situations, 110; sun, 69; a nd t ransference, 101; transubjective, 9 8; see also symbol(s) where list is given archons, see Gnosticism arrangement(s): Adler's term, 40, 42; in Jung's case [3], 52; teleological,

35

31 7

arrogance, 141f, 180 art, 189; analysis a s, 2 95; p sychoanalysis a nd, 1 41; s ublimation a nd, 48 artist(s), 299; and experience of unconsious, 213; vision of, 183 artistic: capacity, unconscious, in Jung's case [4] 87, 89; temperament, 228 ascent, 74 asceticism: and Christianity, 31f; Stoic ideal of, 19/258 Aschaffenburg, Gustav, 246 Asia, 204 assimilation: of anima and animus, 230; of collective psyche, 288; of contents of m ana-personality, 23 7; o f t he unconscious, 1361273, 139/ 273,1491276, 22of, 297

association(s), 3 5, 6 5: " astrological," 160; i n l ung's c ase [4], 84 , 88; i n lung's case [5], 104; method, 21/ 262; symbolical, 212; thought-, 131 assumptions: hi storical, 19 5; unconscious, of a nimus, 2 07 (see also animus) asthma, nervous, 35tf, 47 astrology, 292; see also association(s), "astrological" Atlantic Ocean, 204 atman, 191

atom, 240 attitude(s): a ntithetical, 5 9; c hange of , 161f; c ollective, 152 ,277; c omplementary, 57f; conscious, 44, 53, 60, 99, 215 , 219, 2 24, 23 4; of e xtraversion a nd i ntroversion, 56; general, to c ollective u nconscious, 236; i nfantile, 59 , 1 63; n atural and unconscious, 29 6; ne gative, 1I5; neurotic, 1 39; o bjective, 202; personal, 15 8; pe rsonalistic, o f medical p sychology, 81; ps ychological, 2 77; p uffed-up, 71; r ationalistic, o f c onscious mind, 124; scientific, 134; social, 5 8; s tiffening of, 76; t ypical, and pe rsona, 297; t o unconscious activity, 214


lNDi<:X 1

attitude-types, 4 , 43 author, and public, 240 authority(-ies), 233; parental, 64 "autofecondation interieure," 147n automatic writing, 196 autonomous: activity, 128/27I; complex, see complex(es); en tity, a rchetypes as, 109; personality, a nima as, 201 , 224, 227; valency of anima, 228 autonomy, 58, 191; of anima and animus, 224; of collective unconscious contents, 147 auto-suggestion, 173,214

B ba, 187 balance: centre of, 196; loss of, 161t; of power, 229 baptism(s), 105fJ, 23 1, 235 Basel, 31; Cathedral, 265 Bataks (of Sumatra), 186; see also Warnecke "battle of the faculties," 190f Baynes, H. G. and C. F., v, 6n, 124n Beelzebub, 73 "belly," 71f benedictio fontis, 105 Benoit, Pierre, 189f; L' Atlantide, 189n Bergson, Henri, 288 Bernheim, H ippolyte: De la suggestion et de ses aPPlications a la therapeutique,9n "Beyond," the, 166/284, 186 Bible, see New Testament; Old Testament Binet, Alfred, 246 bird, "little," 227 birth, 190; see also rebirth Bismarck, P rince O tto von, 1 79, 193 Bleuler, Eugen: and "depth psychology," 247; Dementia Praecox or the Group of Schizophrenias, 147n blindness: hysterical, II /249; systematic, II /249

318

blindworm, 93 "blond beast," Nietzsche's, 32 body, 30f, 52, 247; -hallucinations, 282f; illness of, 115; in Jung's case [3], 51f; proportions, 160; and ps yche, 115; rights o f, 296; s ensations, 282; -stimulus, 22 Bolshevism, 204 boundary(-ies), 81, 85, 98f; individual, 142; see also river brain, 69,138,147/275,214 breath, 95, 135 Breuer, J oseph, 1I /249, 12/25I, 250; his case o f hysteria (Anna), IIf / 249f, 118; t rauma theory, 15/ 253; Studies on Hysteria (with Freud), 10/247 bridge, 14/252,81; intellectual function as, 129 British Museum, 235n brother, 179f; sinister, see Medardus Buddhism, 69, 78, 19 1 bulls, as dream symbol, 35 Burckhardt, Jacob, 65 Buridan's ass, 290 bush, burning, 68

C Caesar: Julius, 179, 217; "render unto," 236 Calypso, 210 "Canadians who know not ... ," 198 cance~ 82, 84, 86, 98 carcinoma, see cancer cardinal points, four, 223 Carnal Pleasure, statue of, 265 castle, 112, 179 cat(s),13/ 25If category(-ies): a priori, 190; inherited, 138 (see aslo archetypes) catharsis, 265 cathedral, 103fJ; Gothic, 106; see also Basel; Cologne; Lourdes Catholicism, 77, 97 Caucasus, 141, 157n


INDEX

causal: point of view, 59; -reductive interpretations, 831 causality: Freud and, 35, 42; limits of, 215; objective, 131; and physics, 49n; in psychology, 295n Cellini, Benvenuto, 65 censor, Freud's theory of, 21 centre, 2 38; cr eative, 2 21; o f gravity, 299; virtual, 237; see also midpoint ceremonies, cleansing, 181; see also initiation; rites chance, 13/25I, 17/255,49,294 chaos: feeling of, 163; polytheistic, 20/258 characterology, unconscious, 140 Charcot, Jean Martin, 10/249, 13/ 25I chemistry and alchemy, 220 child(ren): as archetype, 110; fear of unknown, 203 "of light," 236; neurotic has soul of, 25; and parental imago, 186, 188 childhood, 127/27째, 239, 278n; fantasies, 60, 65; i n J ung's c ase [5], 10 4; memory, 135; psychotic elements in, 175f; separation from, 197; s piritual, 235; terrors of, 203f "chimney-sweeping," 1I/250 China, 188,292; see also philosophy; Tao(ism) choking-fits in Jung's case [2], 36f, 39 cholera, 231 Christ, 20/258,221, 233n, 237; "case of," 45 Christian: ideal, 226; love, 5; Science, 292 Christianity, 3 3,64, 77f, 99, 23 1, 23 5; and as ceticism, 31t; and M ithraism, 20/258 Christification, 35 church, 72 , 105, 107; a m agical instrument, 235n; as m other, 10 5; Mother Church, 224; womb of, 105; see also priest Circe, 210 circle, 110, 223

circumcision, 105, 107, 230 civilization, 72, 97; and animal nature, 28; conflict with instincts, 20; and morality, 27; and neurosis, 19; and war, 50; see also culture clan, 151 classical, 54; see also culture climacteric, 109; see also menopause code, moral, 27 cognition, 98 collaboration of conscious and unconscious, 290 collective, 173; a ttitude, 152, 277; a nd collectivistic, 278n; compensation, 180!; c ompromise, 15 0; c onsciousness, 144f; dreams, 160n, 178; element, 140; -, i n p sychology, 289; factors, 143, 15 3, 1 55/ 279, 196; figure, 234; -, m asculine, 228; identity, 288; images, 190; a nd individual, 290, 296; melting o f individual in, 152; mentality, 277; opinions, 20 8 (see also animus); psyche, see psyche, collective; a nd self-alienation, 173; truth, 151; unconscious, see unconscious, collective; see also feeling; functioning; thinking collectivity, 174, 227, 296, 29 8 collectivization, 148 collision: with the shadow, 34; with the unconscious, 33 Cologne Cathedral, 104, 106 combinations, 1I6 common sense, 130, 131, 133, 183, 2째7 communion: Christian, 231; ritual, 99 community, 73, 151fJ, 15 8, 179; primitive, 106 compensation, 171 , 2 92; Adler a nd, lo4n; animus as, 205; of basic t ype, 44; be tween c onscious and unconscious, 177; collective, 180f; in dreams, 102 , 104 , lo9fJ, 1I2, 290, 294n; humility a nd pr ide, 14 2; f or latent p sychoses, 1 14; mythological, 180; of neurotic conscious at-

319


INDEX

compensation (cont.) 25, 129ff, 257; of relationship, 178f; titude, 110; office as, 145; optiof repression, 150/277; of types, mism as unsuccessful, 139/2 74; 55f; unconscious, 257, 262 persona and anima, 192; persona conscience, 196, 207f, 239; "Court and feminine weakness, 194; perof," 207; intellectual, 99; sciensonal, 178, 182; of relationships, tific, 222 179 (see also relationships, com- conscious psyche, see psyche pensatory); of religious problem, consciousness, 33, 148/276, 15 6 f / 181; self as, 239; of self-confidence 280f, 175, 222, 233, 29째,294,298; by inferiority, 276; unconscious, absolute, 184; beyond, 191; collec180 tive, 144[; and complexes, 18 7; completeness, 110 daytime, 177; defective, 162; divicomplex(es), 21ff, 88f, 262ff; anima sion of, 193; ego-, see ego; empty, as autonomous, 227; and associa219; enlargement/extension off tion method, 21/262; autonomous, widened, 156n, 157n, 178, 18 4; 25/266,187,196,232; -, of anima extraverted, 195; flooded, 175; four and animus, 210, 232; -, identifiorienting functions of, 44n; higher cation with, 205; -, tendency to degree, 59, 116, 184; individual, personification, 197; -, transfor94; masculine, compensated by mation and dissolution of, 212; anima, 205; moral, 136; penumbra of, 206; restricted states of, 12/ father-, 186 (see also lung's case 250; seeks unconscious opposite, [8]); lung's theory of, 262n; mem54; threshold of, 127/27째; Westory-, 84; mother-, 106, 186 (see also mother); neurotic, 40; personified, ern, 198; woman's different from man's, 206 210; soul as psyche, 190f; subjective, 90; unconscious, 186f consensus gentium, 71 compromise, 158; collective, 150 conservatives, 116 compulsion, 225; neurosis, in lung's contamination, 91,225 contents: autonomous, 238, 239; psycase [13], 181; see also neurosis conceptualism, 54 chic, division of, 300, 302; of unconcretization(s): of God, 236, 239; conscious, see unconscious of images, 233; of intellect, 220; contrasexual demands, 18 9 as primitive superstition, 217 conversing with oneself, art of, 202 confession, 136, 179; of weakness, controversies, spiritual, 54 234 conversion: into opposite, 75f; reliconfirmation,231 gious, 70,175; sudden, 147 conflict, 19ff / 262ff, 25/266, 38, 63, convulsions, religious, 75 76, 136/273, 16 2, 166, 219, 2 30; c o-operation: of individual and c olwith collectivity, 296; of c onscious l ective, 289; i n individuation, 174 and unconscious, 20, 25; in dreams, Corinthians, 156n 22ff; of ego and instinct, 34; erotic, correspondence of unconscious procsee erotic conflict; Faustian, 34; esses, 147/275 of good and evil, 183; with high- cosmic element, 160 est values, 236; ideal solution of, counter-function, inferior, 58 13 0,134; individual, 267; of inner "Court of Conscience," 20 7 and outer world, 205, 239; insol- coyotes, "doctor," 96n uble, 93f, 183; moral, 141f; neu- crab, 81-8 9, 9 1, 9 8, 100f rotic, 130, 258; pathogenic, 19, 21, craving, infantile, 86

320


INDEX

creative thought-process, 185 crimes, 153 criminal(s), 9 4, 1 4 8 criminality, 24, 27I cross, 35 crossing, 81f, 85, 89, 9 1, 99, 101f; "Crossing of the Great Water," 85 crucifixion, 141; of soul, 31 cryptomnesia, 137 crystals, 237 cultural aim, 74f culture: c lassical, 19/ 258; g rowth of , 19/258; i ntroverted s ide of spiritual, 191; irrational devastation of, 72; and nature, 19 , 34; ne groid, 97; present-day, 25/265, 16 8, 29 2 ; self-culture, 205; and war, 49f, 72 cure, 149, 295; magical, 293; "talking cure," 11/250 curiosity, intellectual, 182

D daemon(ism), 28, 68, 72n, 239 danger: "at the ford," see ford; psychic, 228 "dangerous age," 75 Daudet, Leon: L'Heredo, 147 n, 175 day-world of exploded ideals, 203 deadlock: neurotic, 101; in transference, 131 deafness, hysterical, 11/249 death, 185f, 190, 191; instinct, Freud's theory of, 28f, 54; see also immortality; instinct, destructive death's-heads, 12/25째 deceit, 293 defence: homosexuality as, 87; mechanlsm, 91 deification: of d octor, 70, 133; of man, 238; of master by disciple, 170; self, 70 delusion(s), 71, 229; paranoid, 283 demand(s): contrasexual, 189; infantile sexual, 165; outer and inner, 196

321

dementia: paranoid, 144 (Maeder's case); praecox, see schizophrenia demigod, 130, 229; see also superman demiurge: Gnostic, 132 demon(s), 67, 91f, 94; doc tor as, 6 4; magic, 96; m an's need of , 71; masculine, 224; mother as pursuing, 179; see also devil(s) demoralization, 163 denial, mechanism of, 202 dependence, infantile, on parents, 59f, 105 deprecation, mechanism of, 202 depression, 215, 218; in lung's case [3], 52; psychogenic, 214; see also lung's case [15] "depth psychology," 247 derangement, mental, see mental derangement descent, 74 destiny, individual, 224 destructive instinct, 53n; see also death instinct devaluation of religious function, 94 development, 173; abnormal, 176; conscious, 183; human, 288; ontogenetic, 148/276; pace of, 99; of person, 150; personal, 155n, 158, 221, 278f, 297; of personality, 150/ 277, 151f, 155n, 278; progressive, 225; psychic, 116; psychological, 116f, 174, 240; retarded, in lung's case [5], 102; spiritual, 105; unconscious, 134f devil(s), 27, 70, 73, 78, 94, 96, 102, 181, 200; pact with, 237; as psychological counterbalance, 236; s even, 236; The Devil's Elixir, see Hoffmann; see also demon(s) diabetic: sugar in blood of, 101 dialectical process, 210 diastole, 59, 30I difference(s): individual, 152, 206; of race, 152 differentiation, 56, 149, 225, 29 6 ; f rom collective p syche, 1 52, 3or, 303; of ego and non-ego, 73; of


INDEX

differentiation (cont.) ego and unc onscious, 212tf; of functions, 174, 22 0; hi gher, 116; o f human b rain, 147/275; non-, 2 06; of persona, see persona; pe rsonal, 15째1277, 155/280, 276; of pe rsonality, 151; process of, 155n; racial, 152n Dionysian l icentiousness 19f 1258, 32{; see also orgies, Dionysian; Zagreus Dionysius the Areopagite, 66 Dionysus, see Dionysian Diotima,28 disciple, 170{; -fantasy, 171 discontent, sources of, 259, 260 disequilibrium, psychic, 161, 170 disharmony with oneself, 225 disintegration, pathological, 144; of persona, 161, 169; of personality, 147 disorientation, 1601282, 163 displacement, 100 disposition: hereditary, 219; inherited or acquired pathological, 175; inherited and u niversal p sychic, 1 47; ps ychic, 14; unconscious, 87{ disproportion, 296 dissociation, 97; of pe rsonality, 44 dissolution: of compromise, 296; of infantile ties, 61; of mana-personality, 237; of persona, 1601282, 169/287,297; of p ersonality, 28If; -, i n c ollective psyche, 151; -, into paired opposites, 149/276; of prestige, 151; regressive, 151 disturbance: in erotic sphere, 181 256; psychotic, 161 disunity, inner, 19, 25/266, 129 divinity: idea of, 239; "ocean of," 28

7

divorce, 75, 200 doctor, 22 3, 2 94; a nd c orrect i nterpretations, 112{ ; a s demon, 64; "doctors" a mong animals, 96; as father Ilover, 129; and Freud's theory, 248; as G od, 70 , 130 , 133 , 13 5; a s image, 92; as mana-personality,

233; has maternal significance, 64; as object o f co nflict, 1 29; p atient's behaviour to, 139/274; person of, 132tf; personality o f, 70; pe rsonification o f goodness, 64; ps ychological tr aining of, 9/246, 45; and reductive t heories, 168; r elation t o pa tient, 42f, 62f, 70f, 91tf, 129tf 164f (see also transference); as s aviour, 64; technique of, 21 5; transference o f f antasies t o, 6 2, 6 4; of father-imago to, 129; and treatment of unconscious, 212f dog, 293 dogma, 77, 97 dogmatism, 282 dominant(s): o f m ana-personality, 23 4; of unconscious, see archetype(s) domination, infantile desire for, 284 doves, 236 dragon, 37,84, 17째1287 dreams, 6 4, 7 8, 8 6, 11Otf, 131f, 138, 1601282,214,294; analysis of, 21/ 262tf, 133, 263n; anima and a nimus personifications, 210, 299 , 304; archetypes i n, 70; banal, 182; "big," 178; c ollective, 17 8; -, e lements i n, 160n; compensatory function of, 290, 294n (see also compensation); fa<;ade, 22/263, 100; o f flying, 1601282; as harbinger of fate, 21/262; -image, 183; as i nstrument o f education, 106; interpretation of, 10/248, 114, 117, 136; language of, 85; manifest a nd latent contents, 21f1263; mechanism, 10 0; moral f unction o f, 294n; as n atural product of psyche, 131; and personal unconscious, 66 , 128, 176tf; psychology o f, 10/248; purpose of , 102; r evealing a ccident-proneness, 115; a s s elf-representations of unconscious de velopments, 13 4; -sequences, 231; a nd shadow, 6 6; symbols, 8 1, 155/279; teleological function of, 294n; -thoughts, 100; two 22 kinds of, 178;

3


INDEX

waking, 12/250; whole, and dreamer, 84 INSTANCES O F D REAMS

(in order of occurrence in text; numbers in brackets refer to lung's cases): black s nake

comes t o bite f ather [ Breuer's ca se (Anna)], 12/25°; mother i s de ad [hypothetic,al case], 22f; wild animals and e vil m en a ttack [ 2], 35tf; crab hidden a t river f ord [ 4], 81tf, 97-102; Lourdes Cathedral and dark w ell [5], 103- 6, 108f; baptism s cene i n Gothic ca thedral [ 5], 106-9; w oman in castle tower [Jung's in r elation to [6]], 112f, 179; f athergiant in w heat fields [8 ], 132f, 160; mother a s w itch [12], 179; devil is pursuing [13], 181f; white m agician a nd b lack magician [14], 182; f iancee jumps i nto f rozen river [15], 213-9, 230, 232; vision of four gods [16], 221f, 230 Drummond, Henry, 193 Dryden, John, 292 duty: to life, 73; social, 173 dynamism, 68{

ego, 3 4, 4 0, 72tf, 148/276, 196, 2 02, 227, 232f, 238, 28I; and arche· types, 97f; conscious, 3 9, 17 7, 221 , 300, 302; -consciousness, 12 4, 15 8. 299; -consciousness, i dentical w ith t he persona, 158; di vestment o f, 149; former, 7 5; -function, 73; identification w ith anima, 299; identification with persona, 193, 299, 3°2, 304; individuated, 240; a nd instinct, 3 4; in tegrity o f, 279n; and mana-personality, 228tf, 233tf; and non-ego, 73 , 297 , 300; and pe rsona, 194; personal w orld of , 17 8; a nd personality, 196{ ; pow er o f, 3 4; a nd power-instinct, 38; powerlessness of, 139/274; and self, 240; and soul, 19,1; subconscious, 300; unconscious, 300 ego-instinct: Adler's theory of, 42; Freud's theory of, 34, 42 egotism, 174 Egyptians, concept of souls among, 18

7

electricity, 9/246 element(s): cosmic, 160; psychic, 1671 28

E earth, 222, 238, 240, 259; flat, 10/ 247; Mother, 258{ Eastern mind, 192 "Ecce Homo," 31, 35 eccentric, 163 Eckermann, see Goethe Eckhart, Meister, 237 ecphoration, 137 ecstasy 1 ecstatic, 33, 69 Eder, M.D., 2Inl262n education, 74, 257; and homosexuality, 106; p rimitive s ystem of, 1 97; psychic, 25/265; and r epression, 127/270; travesty of, 207 effect, numinous, 70 effeminacy, 209 Eglise gnostique de la France, 231

5

Eleusis, mysteries of, 231 Elgon, Mount, 18sn Elgonyi, 178 enantiodromia, 72{ energetics, 67; of life-process, 196 energy, 29, 47f, 50tf, 61{, 72, 75, 80, 98, 13 4, 1 62, 16 6, 2 59, 26 9; c onservation, 67tf; contained in neurosis, 114, 215; creative, 51, 216; cycle of, 99; di sposable, 5 0, 52 ,62; g radient, 52f, 62{; instinctual, 116; law of, 215; as magical p ower, 95; in old age, 61; psychic, 47, 52, 53n, 72, 77, 129, 162; release b y a nalysis, 61; s urplus, 26o; of t ransference, 1 33; unc onscious, 167/285, 184; world, 68 engrams,9 8 enlightenment, age of, 94 environment, 141, 299; adaptation to, 154; bondage to, 155; moral

323


INDEX

220, 29of; archaic, 1 65; a rchaism o f

environment (cont.) influence of, 127/27째,' patient's influence on, 152/278 epilepsy, 233n Epimethean extravert, 57 equilibrium, psychic, 72, 104, 136/ 273, 161, 221 Eranos-Jahrbuch,7 Eras, 28f, 34> 4 0, 4 6, 53f, 258

erotic: conflict, 16/254, 18/256, 19f/ 257f, 25/266, 26I,' sphere, di sturbance i n, 18/256,' w ishes, 2 64; see also sexuality ethical problem, 183 ethnology, 123,137 euphemism, apotropaic, 238 euphoria, 148 Europe, 292,' see also Western evasion, 168 evil, 236, 238; pact with, 181; principle, 153; q ualities, 4 ; see also good a nd evil exaltation, 223 exclusiveness, 288 exhaustion, 214 experience(s), 117,211,221; destructive, 164: of fantasy, 213, 216, 219; psychic, 218; of unconscious, 1841 experimental psychology, 9, 245ff extension of personality, 143 extra-human, 98 extraversion / e xtravert, 4 4, 54ff, 218, 225, 279n; of a nimus, 2 08; E pimethean,. 57; i nferior, 5 8; i ntroversion of, 57t and object, 58f,' Western, 191

unconscious, 1 70; c hildhood, 60 , 65; childish, 104; collective, 15 8; o f collective unc onscious, 232; c reative, unifying function of, 290; disciple-, 171; experience of , 21 3, 2 19; f igure of , 91; hermeneutic t reatment o f, 293; i n h ysteria, 11 /250,' -image, 214ff; infantile, 63, 170, 27I; infantilism of unconscious, 170; interpretation o f, 213; i n l ung's c ase [1],16; l aws g overning, 201; l ife, 100; -material, symbolical, 81; and myth, 69f; night-world of , 20 3; -occurrences, 80f; phobia o f, 217; pow ers o f, 10 0; i n psychoanalysis, 21/ 262, 1 14; r elation t o symptom, 37; r epressed pe rsonal, 160; -sequences, 231f; sexual, 3 4, 8 3, 91 ; a s specific a ctivity o f co llective p syche, 160f /282,' s pontaneous, 21; o f "strong man," 194: a nd transference t o d octor, 62ff, 133; u nconscious, 271; un derstanding of , 2 13, 21 7; us eless, 267,' wish-, 27I; world of, 16/254 fascination, 87f, 91; of unconscious, 21

4

fate, 2 1/262, 3 5, 43 , 48ff, 13 1, 139/ 274 , 149, 164, 16 8, 266; e ternal i mages a s, 109; pow er of, 6 9; r eligious a ttitude to, 102 father, 23, 233f; in B reuer's ca se ( Anna), 11f / 25of; child's r elation to, 4 2, 6 0; complex, 128, 186, see also lung's case [8] below; doctor as, 64, 129, 133; -fixation, 158; in lung's case [2], 36ff; in lung's case [8], 128ff, 158f,' liberation f rom, 235; -lover, 129, 130, 13 2, 134, 159, fa\ade, of dream, 22/263, 100

factor(s): aetiological, 175: collec234; as model F persona, 197; pritive, see collective; historical, 191: mordial, 135; see also imago, fatherindividual, 153; karmic, 77n; social, 143; universal, 174 "Father in Heaven," 235; see also family, 147f/275, 179, 200, 209f, 299 God/god(s) fantasy(-ies), 52, 75, 86, 128f, 143f, Father Sun, 25 8 6 155/279, 176, 179, 213, 218, 223f, Faust (Goethe), v,. 34, 35, 80, 9 ,

324

164; -, sem


INDEX 6

140/274, 166ff/ 84f, 19 , 229, 237; 2

Faustian problem, 168 fear, 202 , 2 24, 16 7/285,' o f collective unconscious, 97; of concretization, 217; of inner side, 203; in lung's case [13], 1 81; o f ne w relationship, 108; of r eality, 300,' of un conscious, 198; of unk nown, 203; w orld-, 203; see also anxiety Fechner, Gustav Theodor: Elemente der Psychophysik, 245f

feeling(s), 119, 129f, 134,

18

3, 1 94, 215, 279n, 285, 288, 294, 297, 298; civilized, 288; collective, 151, 154f / 278f, 277, 30I;

logic of , 2 88,' o f moral r esentment, 136/273; mythological, 282; negative, 214; pr ojection o f, 300; subjective, 203: s ubliminal, 303,' -thoughts, 285; in woman, 188 feminine, 189, Igl f, 194; nature, man's, 209; psychology, 20 5; traits i n m an, 18g; see also anima; woman femininity, unconscious, 189 femme inspiratrice, 20g Ferrero, Guglielmo: Les Lois psychologiques du symbolisme, 118 fertility, 68 fiancee, 213fJ, 218 "fictions, guiding," Adler's theory of,294 finality, 295n finance, morality of, 27f fire, 221ff; -boring, 185; ever-living, 68f fish, 84 fixation, 295n; father-, 158; infantile, 169: see also complex flame: blue, 222f; ring of, 222 mi-divine, 133; -mask, Fledermiiuse (Meyrink), 96 Flournoy, Theodore: "Automatisme teleologique a ntisuicide: un c as de suicide e mpeche p ar u ne hallucination," 162n,' From India to the Planet Mars, 137n

flying, dreams of, 160/282 "Flying Dutchman," 210

325

Folies Bergeres, 36 font, baptismal, 105; see also baptism(s) foot, 81, 83, 88, 102; phallic symbolism of, 83 ford, 81, 82, 84, 99f,' "danger at the," 100 Forel, Auguste Henri: The Sexual Question, 257 F6rster, Friedrich Wilhelm, 248 fortune tellers, 290 four, see functions; quaternity France, Anatole, 10/247 fraternity(-ies): ring, 107; student,

5

10

Frazer, J. G., 68 freedom, 278; a nd m orality, 153, 26I; and nationalism, 166; spiritual,17 1 Freemasonry, 231 free will, 33,59,71, 167 French Revolution, 94 Freud, S igmund, 3, 8ff / 247f, 123, 127f / 27of; and d eath-instinct, 28f, 54; a nd dream a nalysis, 21fJ/262fJ, 100; a nd ego-instincts, 3 4, 42; a nd f antasy, 290f,' and i ncest, 23f; and l ung's c ase of anxiety [2], 35ff; and libido, 28, 52n, 53n; and m orality, 26fJ; and ne urotic symptoms, 25; o rigins o f psychoanalysis, 13/2JI, 15/253,' a s product o f m aterialism, 2 8; a nd reductive method, 59 (see also reduction); o n repression, 2 6; s exual theory of, 10/ 248, 27f, 32, 3 8, 117f, 165, 269; t heory of n eurosis contrasted w ith Adler's, 35 , 61 , 28I; and t ransference, 4 2, 62n, 129f, 165; and t rauma t heory, 13/25I, 15/ 253, 186; and unconscious, 132, 158; and wish-fulfilment, 22; see also infantile / infantilism WORKS: "Beyond t he P leasure Principle," 28n; The Interpretation of Dreams, lon/248n; "Leonardo d a V inci and a M emory of H is C hildhood," 65n,' "An Out-


INDEX

Freud, Sigmund (cont.) line of P sycho-Analysis," 29n; Early Psycho-Analytic Publications, 247n; (with B reuer) Studies on Hysteria, lOn/247n, 12f/2JI,' "Three E ssays o n the Theory of S exuality," lOn / 248n, 53n; Totem and Taboo, 152n Freudian school, see psychoanalysis friendship, platonic, 108 fright, sudden, 13/252 Frobenius, Leo: Das Zeitalter des SonnengotteS,99n frogs, 13/25I function(s), 2 25,277, 2 97; a daptive, 298; of anima and animus, 208fJ, 224, 227 (see also of relationship below); archaic, 303f; associative, of animus, 209; c ollective ps ychological, 275n; conscious, 4 4; di fferentiated, 220; four, i dentification w ith, 223; f our orienting, 44n; guiding, 134; inferior, 58f, 219f; inside a nd o utside, 209; intellectual, 1 29; o f th e ir rational, 94f,' mental, 7 1, 2 7 6; m oral, 2 93, 294n,' official, 192; perceptive, 298; personal, mental, 275f; -, psychic, 137, 147f, 149; p sychological, 71; reality, 282; o f r elationship, a nima and a nimus a s, 232; r eligious, 94; sexual, 284; social, 147; subliminal, 303; thinking, 44; t ranscendent, see transcendent f unction; a nd unconscious, 99; unifying, of fantasy, 290,' universal, 174; see also feeling; intuition; sensation; thinking functioning: c ollective, 151, 278n, 30I, 303; individual, 151; mental, 147/275 futurity, premonition of, 192

Leibniz in Beziehung zu modernen Theorien, 98n Genesis, 156n genius, 148, 154, 283 Gentiles, 171 Germanic women, Tacitus on, 188 Germany, 267 ghost, mother as, 179 giant, 132 Gnosticism, 66, 77, 132; archons, 66; l' Eglise gnostique de la France, 231 goal(s): o f a nalysis, 2 32; c onquest of anima a s, 2 27; c onscious, 215; o f developmental pr ocess, 11 0; of dreams, 294n; of f antasies, 230; higher consciousness a s, 59; of individual's development, 279; o f individuation, 155n, 240; midpoint of personality as, 221; psychic, 215; self as life's, 239f; of unconscious, 134 God/god(s), 21/262, 67fJ, 70, 94fJ, 101f, 135, 1 37, 156n, 157n, 228, 236, 2 58, 28I; as a bsolute, 235n,' as autonomous p sychic c ontent, 239; becomes do ubtful, 20 4; C hristian idea o f, 235n; concept o f, 238; concretized, 2 39; a nd de mon, 73; dethronement of, 238; doctor as, 130, 133, 13 5; e xistence o f, 7 1; as Father in H eaven, 235n,' four, 223; i dea of , 135; -image, 135; -, primitive, 137; -, reactivation of archaic, 160; in Jung's case [16], 222f; kinship w ith, 237; moral problem, 239; p rojection and, 207; pr oof of , 71; ps ychological, 235n; as psychological function of an irrational nature, 71; r elativity of , 235n; rhyme w ith -ism, 204; ritual communion with, 99; is spirit, 135; statues of, 222; tin, 233; vision of , 1 35; w ager w ith, 196; i s wind, 135; wrathful, 260 bei godlikeness, 73, 140f / 274f, 15 2/ 27 8,

G Ganz, Hans: Das Unbewusste

326


INDEX

169/286,233,280, 28m, 282fJ; see also inflation; man, godlike Goethe, J . W. von, 34 , 59, 2 37; and Eckermann, 193; "Die Geheimnisse: Ein Fragment," 229n; Faust, see s.v. Golem, The (Meyrink), 94,3째4 good and bad/evil, 15/253, 32f, 71, 102, 14of, 148, 149f/276f; conflict between, 183; relativity of, 182 goodness, doctor as personification of,64 Gospels, 68 Gottesminne, 133 grace, divine, 69 gradient, 52fJ,' of libido, 62n, 66f; see also energy Greece: homosexuality in, 106; mysteries in, 231 Griesinger, Wilhelm, 67 "guardians of the threshold," 210 "guiding fictions," Adler's theory of, 294 guilt, 149; moral, 258; Promethean, 156n

H Haggard, H. Rider, 189, 227; She, 189n, 191 hallucinations, 12/25째, 197; bodyhallucinations, 282f halo, 69 haoma,69 happiness, 260 hate/hatred, 75, 247 headache(s), 129 health,68 hearing, hy sterical l oss o f, 1 1/249 heat: a lchemical, 2 23; o riginal, 69 Hecht, Dora, 3n Heidelberg school, 246 Helm, G . F ., 67f; Die Energetik nach ihrer geschichtlichen Entwicklung,67n Heraclitus, 68, 72 Hercules, 141

herd, 27, 31, 32, 26I; "soul" in individual,27 8n hermeneutic(s), 29I,' method, 85, 293, 294 hero(es), 65, 99f, 159, 169f/287, 180, 195, 228, 233, 259; figure, masculine, 212; lapses of, 193; struggle with monster, 99, 170/287; sun-, 69 heroism, 33,48; heroic type, 48 heuristic: principle, 88; value, 134 Hiawatha (Longfellow), 99 Hinduism, 78 Hinkle, Beatrice M., 123n history, racial, 99 hoard, capture of, 170/287 Hoche, Alfred Erich, 248 Hoffmann, E. T. W.: The Devil's Elixir, 39 Holy Ghost, 68 homosexuality, 82f, 87; of a dolescence, 106, 1 08; and e ducation, 106; unconscious m eaning of , 107; see also Jung's cases [4], [5] honesty, 203 horoscopes, 292 horses, 14f/252f, 51 Hubert, Henry: Melanges d'histoire des religions, 138n human: brain, see brain; nature, 30, 141; see also animal, man's nature; nature humanity: a nd archetypes, 69; c ollective conception of, 298; consists of individuals, 50; g eneral characteristics of, 156/280, 157/ 28I humility, 142 humour, 170; sense of, 154 husband, as father substitute, 60 hypermnesia, 12/25째 hypnagogic sensations, 282; cf. 160/ 282 hypnotism, 2 1/262 hypochondria,5 1f hypocrisy, 260f, 264; a nd s elf-knowledge, 26/267; in various disguises, 5

327


INDEX

hysteria, 11-17/249; Breuer's case, llt!249f; and " nervous s hock," 13/25I; psychic 9f! 246f, 249; origin of , symptomatology of, 10 / 24 7; t rauma theory, 13/25I, 18; see also asthma; Jung's cases [2], [8], laughter

I ice, 213f I Ching, 85 idea(s), 69, 14 8, 20 4, 22 4: a bstract, 144/272; "big," 182; collective, 81, 304; conscious, 304; depressive, 2 14; feeling-toned, 21; i nheritance of , 65: inherited, 138; intuitively apprehended, 67f, 95; o f mastery, 2 37; m orbid, 16 3; mythical, 6 9; obs essive, 1 94; primordial, 135/ 272; universal, 225 ideal(ism), 4 5, 5 4, 9 4, 16 3, 278n , 288; collective, 1 54, 303; delusive, 6 2; destruction of, 299; exploded, 2°3: of individuation, 226; moral, 20/26I; opposite o f former, 7 5; p rimitive Christian, 226; shattering of, 195; social, 173; superhuman, 59; type, 297 identification, 86f!, 91, 145, 169f! / 286f, 194, 289; w ith: a rchetype, 2 33; th e collective, 2 89; co llective psyche, 152/278, 2 87; m ana-personality, 23 5; office or t itle, 143, 14 5; p ersona, see persona; the shadow, 33 identity, 30I; collective, 288; with collective psyche, 283; original, 206; unconscious, 105 idiosyncrasy, 174 idol(s), repression of, 75 Ignatius Loyola, St., 78 illness, mental, see mental derangement illusion(s), 25/265, 60f, ll2, 203, 225, 238; hypochondriacal, 52 ; i nfantile, 59, 6 1; of youth, 60f, 73f

image(s), 77f, 92f, 95f, 98, 1 45, 148 , 1 83, 19°,202,232,24°,298; archetypal, 95; at climacteric, 109; c ollective, 137, 147, 160, 1 80, 1 82; of collective unconscious,. 10 9; divine, 94, 135 (see also God-image): d ream-, 183; in dreams, 131; eternal, 109, 146; fantasy-, 214f!; ideal, 157, 232; infantile, 135; primordial, 65f, 68f!, 106f, 138 , 171 , 173f, 181, 209, 2 34, 2 99, 304; -, concretization of, 233; -, of parent, 186n; -, self-representations of libido, 169n/287n; projected, 1 86; repetition o f, 6 5; universal, 225; virtual, 190 imagination: a ctive, 222n; inherited possibilities of, 65; powers of, 177 imago, 60f, 187f; father-imago, 60, 73, 129f, 229; mother-imago, 60, 73, 197; object-, 300f!; and object, 1 40; pa rent(al), 1 86, 188; subject, 3°2,3°4; of woman, 188f imitation, 155/279f, 168; in Jung's case [2J, 39 immorality, 153 immortality, 69, 191f, 235; personal, 186 imperialism, 50 impersonal unconscious, see unconscious, impersonal impotence, 194; sense of, 139/274 incarnations, former, 191 incest, 23f; fear of, 106; taboo, 152; wish,169/287 incubus, 224 independence of unconscious, 123 India, 292; see also psychology, Indian individual(s), 1 4 7f / 27 5f, 152 , 1 55/ 279f, 240, 278, 289, 299; and collective, 151, 289f, 30I; differences, 152, 206; differentiation f rom p ersona, 2 89; and disposable en ergies, 5 0; e gocentric interests o f, 2 75; f actors, 1 53; functioning, 151; idiosyncrasy of, 174; and individuation, 173; life of, 196; and

328


INDEX

mass, 30 ; a nd nation, 4, 94; needs of, 182; ou tstanding, 15of; and p ersona, 157f / 28I; psychology of, 4; and society, 147/275, 158; specially gifted, 117 individualism, 173; and individuation, 173 individuality, 158, 160, 173, 193, 295, 297; concept o f, 2 96, 2 98; c orporeal, 2 96; definition of , 30I, 303; destruction o f, 154; disregard for, 152; f eigned, 1 57/ 28I; independence of, 1 71; a nd i ndividual, 303; as masculine, feminine and hermaphroditic figure, 304; mental, 296, 297; moral, 297; perfection of, 297; and s ociety, 303; true, 2 35, 2 87; undeveloped, 3째2 individuation, 125, 155/279, 195, 223, 225, 297; goa l o f, 173f, 240; and individualism, 1 73; na tural pr ocess o f, llO; principle of, 287 Indonesians, see Bataks industrialization, 259 inertia, o f u nconscious id entity, 1 05 infancy /infant, 77; see also child, childhood infantile/infantilism: a ttitude, 5 9, 1 63; bond, u nconscious, 10 4; c raving, 8 6; demands, 112; -, s exual, 165; desires, 148; d issolution o f in fantile tie s, 61; fantasies, 63, 170, 27I; fixation, 1 69; in Freud's t heory, 127/270, 169f/287; illusions, 5 9, 6 1; i mage, 1 35; i nstinctual impulses, 23/263f, 25; in Jung's case [4], 86, [5], lo4f, 109, [8J, 159f, [12], 180; in neurosis, 59f!; relationship, 8 7; reminiscences, 2 3/264, 52; s exuality, 38, 46, 284; transference, 66, 165f; wish, 23/263, 83; world, 180 infection, psychic, 96 inferior function, 58, 219, 220 inferiority, 48, 58, 136/273; Jung's feeling of, 194; moral, 136/273; sense of, 142, 149/276

329

infinite/infinity, 160, 182 inflation, 71, 156, 160, 168, 169, 171, 228; psychic, 143f!, 147; see also godlikeness information, "supernatural," 187 inheritance, of ideas, 65 inhibition, 60, 177 initiation, 23of, 235; into manhood, 105, 10 7; rites, 105f!, 197, 23of; symbolism, 231 initiative, lacking in unconscious, 18

4

injury, psychic, 165 inquisitiveness, holy, 203 insanity, 283; see also mental derangemen t / illness inside and outside, 196 insight(s), 102, 141, 159, 224, 234, 26 7 inspiration, 67, 283; creative, 175; prophetic,169/286 instinct(s), 8 6, 1 04, 129, 1 33, 148, 304; basic, 155/279; and body, 3of; collective, 154/278f; conflict with c ivilization, 20; destructive, 53n (see also death instinct); egoinstinct, 34; feeble, 152n; gregarious, 277; l oss of, l l6; a nd neurosis, 2 6, 6 1; for pr eservation o f s pecies, 32; primordial, 165: psychoanalysis and, 26; self-preservation, 32; social, 147/275; and s pirit, 2 8; v ital, 304; weakness o f, 129; see also animal instincts, man's instinctual: impulses, and sublimation, 47f; impulses, i n t he u nconscious, 2 3; processes, 81 integrity of personality, 38, 154, 166 intellect, 214, 288, 298; cannot grasp psyche, ll9; concretizations of, 220; in women, 158f intellectualism, 216 in telligence, 117 intensities, psychic, 53n intention, conscious, 111,297 interpretation(s): anthropomorphic, 101; at beginning of treatment, 83;


INDEX

interpretation(s) (cont.) causal-reductive, 831; of dreams, see dream(s); hermeneutic, 29I; objective, 84, 88, 90, 98; semiotic, 29I; and settlement with the unconscious, 213; subjective, 84f, 88, 90; synthetic (constructive), 85; of transference, 63 interpretive principle, 269 introjection, 70 introversion, 44, 54ff; anima in, 218f; in extravert, 56f; inferior, 58; neglected, of Western c ulture, 191; rhythm of, 59 introvert: c haracteristics, 5 5; e xtraversion of , 57f; illustration o f, 56f; and integrity of e go, 278n; meaning of persona for, 278n; Promethean, 57; subject and o bject in, 56ff; and thinking, 278n, 288; unc onscious contents in, 225 intuition, 44n, 297; creative, 175; in woman, 188 inversion, 100; of types, 57 irrational, the, 71f, 94f, 288f; see also rational irrationalitY,49f irreality, 217 isolation, 200 ivory figure, Japanese, 107

J James, William, 2 89; Pragmatism, 54; The Varieties of Religious Experience, 175 Janet, P ierre, 9f, 148/276, 215; L'Automatisme psychologique, 9n; Les Nevroses, 148; Nevroses et idees fixes, 9n jealousy, infantile, 23 Jew(s), 107; see also circumcision; psycholog y Job, 196 Jonah,gg

judgment(s): of animus, 207; intui-

33 掳

tive, 93; projections of, 300; senseless, 283 Jung, Carl Gustav: CASES I N S UMMARY (in order of presentation, numbered for reference): [1] Y oung woman, whose h ysterical neurosis arose following a trauma. Case l eads t o pr oblem of predisposition a s a c ause of t he neurosis.-13-18/252f [2] Young married w oman w ith anxiety a ttacks a nd h ysterical asthma, a nd ba ckground of f ather fixation; case us ed t o i llustrate Adlerian system.-35-40 [3] American business man, aged 45, who be came h ypochondriacal upon retiring from business; case illustrates f actors o f d isposable energy i n r elation to energy gradients路-50f, 72, 76 [4] Woman, w ith hom osexual a ttachment, w hose d ream o f crossing a ford and encountering crab is analysed to show critical nature of transition from the personal to the collective u nconscious.-81-88, 97-102 [5] Homosexual youth; religious dreams compensate the negative view of his condition.-102-109 [6] Woman, treatment of whom does not succeed until doctor's dream of her.-112f [7] Y oung gi rl, a s omnambulistic medium; h ere only r eferred t o (Jung's f irst publ ished c ase).118, 12 3 [8] Young woman p hilosophy s tudent with father fixation, in which the father image deepened into the image of God, t hrough it t he transference b eing resolved.-128-35' 156, 158ff, 164ff [g) Y outh with s entimenal lovefantasy, who intends suicide,


INDEX

has hallucination of stars, commits crime'-146, 162 [10] Insane patient, in whom refusal of f ood i ndicated a s uicidal attempt; i llustrates im portance o f previous history.-176f [11] B usiness m an, i n c onflict w ith his brother, his dreams illustrating the compensatory f unction of t he unconscious.179,180 [12] Y oung woman, w ith m other fixation, w hose d reams i llustrate the compensatory f unction of t he unconscious.-179, 180 [13] Y outh, a ged 16, with s evere compulsion neurosis, who dr eams of seeing devil behind him.-181 [14] Young theological student, with religious pr oblem, who dr eams of black and white magicians.-181 ff [15] Young man, with a psychogenic depression; a dr eam d emonstrates the l imits o f in tellectual in sight and the ne ed f or i naugurating the fantasy method.- 213-9, 230, 232 [16] Woman, whose "vision" leads to her m erging i n unc onscious processes.-22 1ff, 230 WORKS: The Archetypes and the Collective Unconscious, 7n, 66n, 97n, lOon, 181n; Die Beziehungen zwischen dem [ch und dem Unbewussten, 123f, 26gn; "Brother Klaus," 78n; Collected Papers on Analytical Psychology, 3n, 6n, 4gn, 123, 245n, 269n,' Commentary o n The Secret of the Golden Flower, 66n; "The Concept of the C ollective U nconscious," 65n; "The C onception o f the Unconscious," 123, 269n; "Concerning t he Archetypes, w ith Special R eference t o t he Anima Concept," 189n; "The Content of the Psychoses," 123,

331

29 ; "Dream Symbols of the InIn

dividuation Process," 7n; Freud and Psychoanalysis, 49n; "General Aspects of Dreams Psychology," lOon; "Instinct and the Unconscious," 116n,' Mysterium Coniunctionis, loon, 222n; "Neue Bahnen der Psychologie," 3 (see also "New Paths in Psychology"); "New Paths in Psychology," v, vii, 3n; "On Psychic Energy," 47n, 53n; "On the Psychology and Pathology of So-called Occult Phenomena," 118n, 123, 137n; "Paracelsus as a Spiritual Phenomenon," 78n; The Practice of Psychotherapy, 112n; "The Psychological Aspects of the Kore," 18gn; "The Psychological Foundations of Belief in Spirits," 186n; Psychological Types, 5n, 6, 44n, 54n, 57n, 58n, loon, 134n, 138, 147n, 154n, 155n, 18gn, 196n, 279n,' Die Psychologie der unbewussten Prozesse, 3n, 245n (see also "The Psychology of the Unconscious Processes"); Ueber die Psychologie des Unbewussten, 7n; Psychology and Alchemy, 78n, 80n, 110 "The Psychology of Dementia Praecox," 162n, 262n; "On Psychological Understanding," 85n; "Psychology and Religion," 110; Psychology of the Unconscious, 123n, 169/275, 272n, 287, 29In; "The Psychology of the Unconscious Processes," 3n, 245n; "The Realities of Practical Psychotherapy," 112n; "A Review of the Complex Theory," 2W; "The Role of the Unconscious," 32n; The Secret of the Golden Flower, 110, 124; "Sigmund Freud in His Historical Settings," 28n; "The Stages of Life," 74n; "La Structure de l'inconscient," 123, 269n; "The Structure of the Psyche," 6gn, 95n; "The Structure of the Unconscious," v, vii, 123n; "Studies in


INDEX

Jung, Carl Gustav (cont.) laughter/laughing, in Jung's case Word A ssociation," 21n/262n; "A [2],3 6-39 Study in the Process of lndividuation," law(s), 5 , 155/280,200,231,236,259; 7n; Symbole der Wandlung, 123n; dominant, archetypes as images of, 95; n Symbols of Transformation, 53 , 65, 66n, eternal, 2 33; g eneral 4; g overning 7on, loon, !23n, 135, 21 2n; "The structure o f d reams, 263n; moral, Theory of P sychoanalysis," 13n, 81n; 136/273; moral validity of, 27; natural, "The T ranscendent F unction," 80n, 59; P auline ov ercoming o f, 239; 222n; Das Unbewusste im normalen plenitude o f l ife gov erned by, 49; und kranken Seelenleben, 6n; "The psychic, 222; ps ychological, 72,233; Unconscious i n the N ormal a nd social, 275n; unconscious, 160 Pathological M ind," 6n; Wandlungen laziness, 170 und Symbole der Libido, 123n, 264n Lehmann, F: Mana, 233n Jung, Emma: "On the Nature of the Leibniz, Gottfried Wilhelm, 98n Animus," 90n Leonardo da Vinci, 65 "let sleeping dogs lie," 203 level: objective, 901, 98, 140; subjective, 90, 92, 97; see also interpretations Levy-Bruhl, Lucien, 206 libido, 521, 62f, 86, 88, 167/285, 169// 287, K 27 2, 27 5, 28 4; accumulation o f, 2151,3째4; conversion of , 21 6; c urrents 2n ka,187 of, 2941; definition, 5 ; and Eros, 28; Kant, lmmanuel: Vorlesungen iiber and f antasyimages, 215, 219; gradient Psychologie, 169n / 286n of, 62n; Jung's book on, see Psychology karma,77n of the Unconscious; movement of , 30r; Kavirondos (of E. Africa), 228, 230 object of, 66 , 70 ; and r eligion, 94; see Kingdom of Heaven, 226 knowledge: also love dangerous, 202; enthuLiebault, A . A .: Du Sommeil et des etats siast's f und of , 14 2; e schatological, analogues consideres au point de vue 169/286; e soteric, 235; o f go od a nd de l'action du moral sur le physique, 9n evil, 14 0; i nflation through, 14 3; life: afternoon of, 741 (see also second n magical, 227; new, 156n, 157 ; theory half of below); demands of, 100,13 1; of, 295n; and t ranscendent f unction, double, 217; duty to, 73; fantasy, see 224.; t ree of, 156n; see also fantasy; -feeling, 15 2/ 277, 169/286; self-knowledge -force, 54; -line, 2931; -, of individual, Kraepelin, Emil, 246 3or; meaning of, 74, 205; natural, 296; Kubin, Alfred: Die andere Seite, 213 opposite types in, 48, 54; "ordinary" Kundry, 227 and "heroic," 4B; physiological, 296; plan of, 128/27r; private, 193f!, 19 8; -process, 131, 196,289; psychic, 238; -relationship, 218; renewal of, L 169/286; second half language: of dr eams, 85; m ythological, of i nfancy, 2 27; pi cture, 27 2; o f unconscious, 22 / 2 63; o f uni versal validity, 144/272 Lao-tzu, 194, 221, 233

33 2


INDEX

of, 61; "simple," 16B; stasis of, 129; not t ransitory, 192; -urge, 6 0, 290; widening of, 74 lion(s): as dream symbol, 35; Nietzsche's Zarathustrian, 31 lizard,93 locksmith, apprentice, see Maeder's case >'6-yos U1rEpp.a.TLx6s, 209 loneliness, 157n, 16B, 200 Longfellow, H. W.: The Song of Hiawatha,99 . longing, regressive: "for the mother," 169/ / 287 loss: of soul, 151; of voice, in Jung's case [2], 36, see also aphasia Lourdes Cathedral, 103f! love, 23, 2 7, 1011, 1 49, 22B , 299; Christian, 5; -choice, IB9; demand for, 86; de preciation of , 38; " disinterested," 3B1; as factor in neurosis, 15//2531, 18/256, 247; -fantasy, 146; and hatred, 75; in Jung's case [9], 14 6; means t o power, 381, 40; r elation to object, 42; s lighted, 37; a s transference, 133; a nd will t o pow er, 53; see also erotic conflict Lovejoy, A rthur 0.: "The F undamental Concept of the Primitive Philosophy," f)Bn lover, 1 46; anima a nd a nimus a s, 208; doctor as, 64, 130/; father-, see father loyalty to oneself, 293 Lutheranism, 237

M MacNeice, Louis: translation of Faust, v, 166n/284n, 229n madness "of magic," 167/285 Maeder, A: M aeder's ca se o f m egalomania, 143f!/27rf!, 162; " La L angue d'un a liene," 27In; "Psychologische Untersuchungen an

Dementia Praecox-Kranken," 143 n

magic, 96f, 145, 15 0/, I B5, 2 301,29 "madness o f," 1 67/285; po we images o f, 6 81 (see also power talisman, 1 70/287; see also med cine-man magical: c ure, 293; influence, 18! role of mother, 198; substance, 1~ magician, 92f, 98, 187, 204, 2281 black and w hite, in J ung's c a~ [14], 182; hero in Faust, 96, 23~ in Jung's case [4], 91; in tran ference, 641 maieutics, 265; see also Socrates Mairet, Philip, 269n maladjustment, 149 male organ, 107 mammon of unrighteousness, 236 man: average, 193; compared an, contrasted w ith w oman, 206fl femininity o f, 189, 2 09; godlik( 73; of ho nour, 1991; a nd m am personality, 235; presuppose woman, 190; relations to womar 18Bf!; strong, see "strong m an" w ise o ld, 97 , 110; see also anima m anhood; "men's house" mana, 68n, 227f!; definition of, 23. mana-personality, 227f!, 233f!; di! solution of, 237; identificatiOl with, 235 manhood, initiation into, see initia tion manikin, 107 marriage, 2 3/263, 6 0, 7 4, loB, 259 game of illusion, 195; ideal of 19B; in Jung's case [2], 37; type: in,55 Marsen, M., 269n martyrdom, desire for, 169/286 masculine /masculinity: conscious ness, 20 6; f oot, 8 3, 88; m ind, 2 06 prestige of, 197; protest, 38, 42 284; psychology, 2 05; r ole, 83, 88; s tep towards, 10 8; traits i t! w oman, 90 , 189, :W9, see alsG animus; type, 88

333


INDEX

mask(s), 150, 157/28I, 192ff, 234, 296; see also persona mass, 151ff; -murder, 94; organizations, 280; -suggestion, 204 material, subliminal, 127/27° materialism, 54; and Freud, 28 mathematics, 80n maturation, retarded, 184 maturity, 59ff Mauss, Marcel: Melanges d'histoire des

Hamitic, 152n; Mongolian, 152n; neurotic, 165; Semitic, 152n Mephistopheles, 14°/274, 167/285, 253n

Messenger of the Grail, 227 metempsychosis, 69 Meumann, Ernst, 246 Meyrink, Gustav, 96; Fledermiiuse, 96; The Golem, 96, 304 mice, 13/25I religions, 138n Michaelis, Karin, 257 Mayer, Robert, 67ff; Kleinere Schriften Middle Ages, 27f, 69, 77t, 134t und Brie[e, 67n meaning, mediatory, 196 middle way, 76, 221 mechanism: defence, 91; dream, 100; mid-point of personality, 221, 223, 230; instinctive, 105; psychological, 10 see also personality Mechtild of Magdeburg, 134 Medardus: mind: collective, 275; conscious, 25, 71, Brother, 39; brother of, Ill; -, attitude of, 214; -, r epressive 76 attitude o f, 202; -, w hims o f, 156n; medical psychology, 8, 117; and perEastern, 192; human, 275; masculine, sonalistic attitude, 81 206; pe rsonal d evelopment of , 2 77; medicine-man, 96f, 150, 178, 228 scientific, 288; "splitting of," 147 (see mediocrity, 153 also schizophrenia), W estern, 19 1, meditation, 191 202, 205 megalomania, 144, 149/276, 1691 mirror: -image of world, 298,' -world, 286; Maeder's ca se o f, see Maeder psychic, 185 Megarian school of phi losophy, 54 Mithraism, 201258 melancholia, 214 mneme, phylogenetic, 98n memory(-ies), 23/26}, 641, 80, 13 6; M6bius, Paul Julius, 45 money blotting o ut o f, 169/287; childhood, and psychoanalysis, 131 monism, 135; -complexes, 8 4; o f f ormer psychological, 288 monomania, incarnations, 19 1; i mages, 7 7; -, 72 inheritance o f, 19 0; o f i nfancy, 77; monotheism, psychological, 288 intensification of pow ers o f, 12/250; monster, 99; mass as, 30; of maternal in J ung's c ase [2], 38; l ost, 66; abyss, 17°1287 overvalued, 129; person a i, 65 , 93; mood(s), 177, 194, 218t, 224, 227; anima race, 264, see also archetypes; a nd and, 206; dream as expression of, 103; repression, 127/ 270; slip o f, 1 77; hysterical, 2 6, 266; o f man, 20 7; waking, 12/25° succumbing t o, 216; v enomous, i n menopause, 74; see also climacteric Jung's case [2], 36 "men's house," 105 moon, 69 mental: c ontagion, 155/280; corrective, morales): a uthority, 2 07; c onflict, 141t; 104; functioning, 147/ 275 consciousness, 1 36; f actor, 29 4; mental disease, 9, 162, 175f, 282t; see also function, 293, 294n; guilt, 258; history neurosis; psychosis mentality: Aryan, of, 35; ideal, 20126I; law, 27, 136/273; 152n; collective, 277 (see also psyche, opposites, 149t,· principles, 26/266; collective); problem a s c ompensation, 180[; 334 progress, 153;


INDEX

qualities, 117, 136/273; resentment, 136/273; views, 260 morality: ascetic, 31; and freedom, 153; intellectual, 99; m ass, 27; and neurosis, 20126I, 25ffl266f, 136; public 194; a nd r epression, 127/27掳,264; sexual, 27, 258 , 26I, 265; of s ocial organization, 154; of society, 153; see also ascetism; Christianity morals, history of, 35 mortality, child and female, 260 Moses, 68 mother, 204; a s a rchetype, 11 0; i n Breuer's case ( Anna), 12/250; child's relation to, 42, 52, 60; clings to child, 74f; -complex, 106 , 18 6; d ark, 23 7; -daughter-beloved, 159; da ughter's relation t o, 22f 1 26},0 first bearer of soul-image, 197; -friend, 84; in Jung's cases [2], 37f, [4], 82ff, [5], I04ff, 108, [8], 1 59, [1 2], 179f; liberation f rom, 235 (see also separation below); longing for, 169f 1287; magical role of taken over by wife, 198; s eparation from, 19 7; -substitute, lo4f; tie w ith, 104; i n t ransference, 641; see also abyss, maternal; imago, motherMother: C hurch, 10 5 (see also church); Earth, 258f; of G od, 144; Great, 228; Nature, 259 motif(s): archetypal, 84; mythological, 65, 160; religious, 160; see also archetype(s); symbol(s) motive(s): conscious, 178; unconscious, 39, 62n, 17/256 mountain, 222 mulungu,68f music, organ, 107t mysteries, 231; Eleusinian, 231; religious, 105; transformation, 231 mysterium magnum, 224 mystic(-ism): 138n, 146, 169/287, 203; participation, 146, 206, see also Levy-Bruhl myth(s), 65, 99, 169f 1287, 157n;

autochthonous, 147/275; formations, 95; i ncest w ish i n, 169t / 287; mythical ideas, 69 mythology, 93, 98, 100, 180; in dream, 160

N name, secret, 235 Nancy school, 9, 10/249; see also Bernheirn Napoleon 1,179,232 nasal feeding, 176 nation(s), c omity of , 151; and in路 dividual, 4 , 94; as man's w orld, 210; psychology of, 4 nature, 28, 3 8, 63, 74 , 10 0, 1 24, 129 , 13 1[, 166, 177, 259f; aristocratic, 116, 149; and conscious values, 215; and culture, 19 ,34; -daemon, 135; a nd differentiation, 116; h u路 m an, 30 , 141; m an's i nstinctual, 27, 133 (see also animal na ture m an's); Mother, 259; other s ide oj our, 251266; signs of, 101 Naumburg,3 1 necessity, 26/267, 55, 153, 155/ 279, 167f, 260, 266; inner, 223, 239; therapeutic, 226 needs, aesthetic and emotional, 102 negative: aspect of parental imagos 188 attitude, 115; side, necessit) of, 30 (see also shadow (-side)); values, 47, 49, 50 Negro, 201 Nelken, J an: " Analytische Beobach tungen i iber P hantasien ei ne~ Schizophrenen," 70n Nerval, Gerard de: Aurelia, 80 nervous: breakdown, 257; diseases 9; shock, theory of, 13/2JI nervousness, psychic origin of, 91 246, 16/254, 129; see also symp toms; shock neurosis, 20/26I, 33, 46f, 114, 117f 129ff, 26 136/27), 165, 21 6,237,262 5, 294f; Adler's theory of, 35ff

335


INDEX

neurosis (cont.) 45,61, 28I; causes of, 15/253, lSt/ 256t, 24t, 4S (see also source o f, below); compulsion, i n J ung's c ase [ 13], I SI; contrived by t he unconscious, IS4; Freudian t heory o f, 10/247, 45 , 61 , 165, 28I; history of, 24; hysterical, see Jung's c ase [S]; a nd i nner disunity, 129; in Jung's case [2], 36fj, [ll], 179; love and, ISn; in maturity, 59t, 75; and politics, 2 0; p sychology o f, 9t/247t, 161; as s elf-division, 20/26I; sexual theory o f, 2S , 256; s ource of , 194; teleologically or iented, 4 0; t reatment of, 14S, 293; value and m eaning of , 46t, 61; in young people, 59t neurotic, 19 , 20 , 2 5/ 266, 4 4, 231t, 237, 28I, 294; attitude, 139; conflict, 130, 258; c ondition, 2 25; deadlock, 101; elderly, 77; e nergy, 47; mentality, 165; r egressive nature o f, 293; sickliness, 1 6S; s ymptoms, see symptom(s) New Testament, 137; Corinthians, 156n; Gospels, 6S; see also St. Paul; Peter Newton, Sir Isaac: theory of gravitation,175 Nicholas of FlUe, 7S Nietzsche, Friedrich, 26, 35, 45t, 73, 75, lIS, 193, 225, 237, 294; Also Sprach Zarathustra, 31, 96, 237; and instinct, 31fj; pathological personality, 32 night, terrors of, 204 nightmare, in Jung's case [2], 35 "night sea journey," 99 night-world of fantasy, 203 nirdvandva, 223 nominalism, 54 non-differentiation, 206, 225; see also mystic participation non-ego, 73, 7 S, 97, 297, 30I; psychological, 300, 302 non-resistance, 236 non-values, 236

336

normal(-ity), 149, 224, 28m; definition of, 55t; and l atent psychosis, 114; man, 60; pe rson/people, 129 , 143,299 "nothing but," 45, 23S, 283 numbers, real and imaginary, Son nursing, 13/25I

o object(s), 42fj, 62t, 84, 90, 104, 216, 300, 302, 304; in e xtravert a nd in trovert, 56t; -imago, 300fj; and i mago, 140; overvaluation o f, 192; rational, 53; relation t o, 140; o f ( unconscious) libido, 62, 66, 70; world of, 17S objective: c ausality, 13 1; i nterpretations, 84, 88, 90, 98; level, 90t, 98, 140; -, of analysis, see interpretations above; psyche, 66n, 109; tendencies, 131 objectivity, 202, 216; psychic, lS5 observatory, 146 obstacle, 81t, 89, 91, 101, 161, 162; and neurosis, 39 "ocean of divinity," 287 occult wisdom, 248 octopus, 84 office, in society, 143, 145, 195t old(er): age, 60t; person, 74; see also maturity Old Testament, 6S; Genesis, 156n; Job, 19 6; Jonah,99 one-sided truths, 41 one-sidedness, 72, 75, 288, 294, 297; of conscious m ind, 7 8, 11 0; o f differentiated psychological function, 296; of Freudian sexual theory, 117; neurotic, 32 ontogenesis, 148 ontogenetic development, 147/275 opinions, 206; animus, 207fj opposite(s), 53fj, 61, 72fj, 102, 149t / 276t, 296; c ompensation by , 53t; conflict of, 75; c onversion into, 75t; free from, 223; irreconcilable,


INDEX

150/277; in old age, 61, 109; pairs of, 73, 109, 150/277; -, moral, 149/2761; problem of, 6 1, 7 6, lOon, 102, I S2; regulative function of, 72 ; tension of, 29, 53t, 79t; union of, 1 09, 129t, 140t, 223, 23 0; -, t hrough t he m iddle path, 205 EXAMPLES: analysis/synthesis, SI; ascent/descent, 74; chaos/order, 7 2 ; classic/romantic, 54; conscious/unconscious, 19/53t; culture /nature, 33t; diastole/systole, 59; ego/non-ego, 97 (see also ego); Eros/death instinct, 2S; Eros/Phobos, 53; good/evil, see good and evil; heaven/hell, 15; high/low, 15/253, 54, 75, 194; homosexual/ heterosexual, lOS; hot/cold, 54, 75; idealism/materialism, 54; inside/outside, 196; introvert/extravert, 54fj, 57; love/hate, 53, 75; love /will to power, 53; megalomania/inferiority, 149/276; moral/immoral, 21/ 26I; nominalism/ realism, 54; organization / disorganization, 73; Promethean/Epimethean, 57; rational/irrational, 49, 5 1,7 1, So; real/imaginary, So; reflection / action, 55; subject / object, 42fj, 58t; truth/untruth, 75; unconscious progressiveness / conscious regressiveness, 109; value/ non-value, 75; virtue/vice, 149/ 276; youth/age, 74, 76 opposition, 196; principle of, 61; of two types, 541; unconscious, 110 optimism, 139/274, 142; extraverted, 56; of judgment, 149 organic disorder, II /249 organization(s), 153fj, 155/280, 303 orgies, Dionysian, 19/258 Ostwald, W ilhelm, 49t, 54; Die Philosophie der Werte, 5on; Grosse Manner,54n other: principle, 292; "self," 35; "side," see shadow (-side); side outside and inside, 196

337

over-valuation, 134 p

paganism, 64, 77; relapse into, 33 panic, 162 paradise, 150/277; keys of, 182 paralysis, spastic, 1 ofj / 249fj paranoia, 163; see also delusions; dementia, paranoid parasite(-ism), 226; psychic, III parent(s), 42, 190; animal, 235; "carnal," 235; -complex, 186; -imagos, 60, lS6, 188; infan tile dependence on, 59t, 105; in Jung's case [12], 180; spirits, lS8; tie to, 105; see also father; mother parental: authorities, 64; transference,73 paresia, lOt /2 50t Paris, 36, 248 Parsital (Wagner), 35 participation: a ctive, 2 23; a ctive, in fantasy, 2 16, 21 9; particiPation mystique, 146, 206 parties: interieures, 148/276; superieures, 148/276 part-soul(s), 66, 90, 177 pathogenic: agen t, IS / 256; conflict, see conflict; fa ctor, 4 7; s ignificance, 14/252 Paul, St., 35, 66, 71, 156n, 221, 237, 239 peasant, 259 pedagogy, experimental, 246 penis, see male organ perceptions: sense-, 66, 128/270; subliminal, see subliminal perfection, 1 10, 19 1, 278n Persia, 292; Persian, 69 person: be comes c ollective t ruth, 151; and c ollective unc onscious, 70; development o f, 15 0; of doc tor, 132-5; meaning f or i ntrovert a nd extravert, 278n, 279n persona, 157t/28I, 160t/282t, 174t, 177, 201, 289; and anima, 195;


INDEX

persona (cont.) analysis of, 158/28I; as barricade, 175; and c ollective ps yche, 294 , 296f; compensatory r elationship with anima, 192; c omposition of, ]00, ]02; as compromise with s ociety, ]02; contents of , 157/28I; dazzling, 198; definition of, 192; de veloped, 198 , 199; differentiation from anima, 198; differentiation of, 296; o f di sciple, 171; disintegration of, 161, 169; dissolution of , see dissolution; n o Eastern concept of, 192; and ego, 194; effect o n e go, 197; e go's i dentification with, 193 , 195; f eminine, 209; f unction of , 298f; ideal, 195; identical with t ypical a ttitude, 297; identification with, 150, 192; in lung's case [8], 159; as mask of c ollective ps yche, 158; ne glected, 199; o bstacle to i ndividual development, 297; a nd personality, 196f; psychology of, 174; r egressive restoration of , 163 , 166 , 168, 28]f; as segment of collective psyche, 287; as subject-imago, ]02; variety of, 210 personal, 196, 234; a ttitude, 158; a nd collective, 2 96 (see also individual and collective); definition of, 157; tie, 134; unc onscious, see unconscious, personal personality(-ies), 26/267, 58, l lO, 151,232, 238f; anima as, 197, 210; animus a s, 210; a rtificial, 193f (see also persona); birth of, 230; change of, 175f, 219, 221 (see also transformation below); -, pathological, 175; c leavage of, 24; c ollective, 299; c omponents of, 136/ 27]; and compulsion neurosis, 181; c onscious, 83 , 124, 154/278, 161, 228 , ]00, ]02; -, a s egment of collective p syche, 1 57/ 28I; dark h alf of, 96; developing, 104; development, see development; differentiation, 151; diminished, 168;

disintegration, 147; di ssociation o f, 44; di ssolution, see dissolution; distortion of, 154/ 279; e nlargement/ extension / widening, 136/ 27] , 143, 148/276, 156/280, 164; in F reud's theory, 127/270; integrity of, 38, 154, 166; and internal parent-imagos, 60; limited, 164; mana-, see mana; mid-point o f, 221, 230; modern notion of, 196f; negative side of, 66n; partial, I ll; pa thological, 32; a nd personal un conscious, 136/ 27]; renewed, 105; retarded maturation of, 184; and shadow, 53; total, 221, 223; transformations, 146f, 220, 223; "true," 197; weakness of, 147 personification: o f an ima an d an imus, 207, 2 10, 224; o f a utonomous complex, 196; of pa rt-soul, 90; negative, 224 perversion, 209; sexual, 27I pessimism(-ist), 130, 139/274, 14 2 Peter, St., denial, 151 Pfaff, 1. W.: Astrologie, 292; Der Stern der Drei Weisen, 292 phallic symbolism: of figurine, 107; of foot, 83, 87 philosopher, 144f /272; neurotic, 237 philosophy, 54, 129, 145, 190, 26 7; causal, 49; Chinese, 183; Gnostic, 66; Indian, 77n, 152n; medieval alchemical, 219f; Oriental, 124f; Platonic, 54; in psychoanalysis, ll9; student, case of, see jung's case [8]; Taoist, 78, 182; see also Stoics phobias, 194 Phobos,53 physics, 67; and causality, 49n physiology, 67, 246 picture-book, world as, 144/27If platonic friendship, 108 Platonic school of philosophy, 54 pleasure: Carnal, statue of, 265; principle, 42 plurality: of animus, 209; of persons, 207; of principles, 289

338


INDEX 7rveuJJ.u, 135,

137

7rvevJJ.unxr, if;vxr" 73

poet(s), 166, 193, 228,299 point of view: causal, 59; teleological, 59, 152 "poison" of understanding, 84 poisoning, 214 polarity: inner, 75; pre-existing, 75 political institutions, 151 politics, 193, 206; and neurosis, 20 Polynesians, 68 polytheism, 20/258 positive values, 47, 49, 50 possession, 72, 230, 232; by archetype, 234; power of, 227; states of, 224 power, 68, 72f, 151, 227; -aim, infantile, 165 (see also Adler, "p ower d rive"); balance of, 229; concept, of p rimitives, 68; of e go, 3 4; of fantasy, 100; -instinct, 32 , 34, 38; -, in l ung's c ase [ 2], 38; m agical universal, 68, 95, 96 (see also magic); of mana, 233; personal, 5; principle, 35, 284; psychology, ne urotic, 40, 140/274; of unc onscious, 167/ 285; over unconscious, 234; see also will to power pre-conscious and unconscious, 135/ 27 2 predestination, individual, 190 predisposition, 13t/25If, 137 Preemby, see H. G. W ells: Christina Alberta's Father

pre-infantile period, 77, 79 prejudice, 153 prestige, 68, 118 , 234; dissolution o f, 15 1; magical, 150, 151; personal, 151 pride, 142 priest, 104, 106, 107,2째4,233 primitive(s), 68f, 96f, 15째/277, 153, 18 5/, 197, 201, 2 04, 2 27, 230, 235; i n civilized man, 304; communities, 106; energetics, 68; fear of unkno wn, 203; and im mortality, 191; a nd in itiation rites, see initiation; language, 85; and mana-

33 9

personality, 233; m ode of t hinking, 138; psychology, 284; symbolism, 85; vision, 144 primordial: idea, 135/272; image, see image "principalities and powers," 66 principles: of animus, 207; moral, 26/266 "probability, statistical," 49n processes: instinctual, 81; subliminal, 175 productivity of unconscious, see unconscious progression and regression, 108 progressiveness: and differentiation, ll6 ; unconscious, 109 projection, 90ff, 189, 225 , 22 7, ]00; of anima, 197; of a nima a nd a nimus, 207f; -, daemonic, 299; archetypes in, 94f; fantasy, 641; in transference, 62n, 70f

Prometheus (Promethean), 141, 299; guilt, 156n; introvert, 57 prophecy /prophet(s), 163, 169ff /286, 295 "Proserpine's threshold," 146 prostitution, 26In Protestant(-ism), 77, 204, 237 vX'l, 187

psyche, 25/266, 45f, 13 1, 134, 224, 288, 295n; animal, 32f; and bo dy, 115; broken-off bi ts o f, 186; collective, see psyche, co llective, below; conscious, 25/ 266, 147 , 17 7; a s go d and demon, 71ff; hinterland of , 210; impersonal, 148/276 (see also psyche, below); individual, collective, 148/276; i nherited, 148/ 276; irrationality o f, 1 24; multiplicity o f complexes, 201; objective, 66n, 109; personal, 93f, 971, 145, 147, 152/277; -, and collective contents of, 154/279; -, development o f, 150; a s selfregulating s ystem, 61, 178; s hadowside of, see shadow (-side); subjective, 8 6 66n; supra pe rsonal, 14 / 2 7 ; to tal nature of, llg; trans-


INDEX

152n; individual, 4, 289; -, and psyche (cont.) collective, 155/279, 277; Jewish, 152n; formation of, 123; unconscious, 215; lung's t heory o f types, v , 44n, 278n, not a unity, 201 279n; masculine, 205; medical, 8, 117; psyche, collective, 93f, 97, 147fJ/ 275fJ, -, and pe rsonalistic a ttitude, 81; 157/28I, 160f/282, 169fJ/ 286fJ, 283, 2 88, national, 4; of neurosis, see neurosis; 294, 296, 298, 302; composition of , philosophical, 245; power, 40, 300, 302; contents o f, 154/279; 140/274; of ps ychosis, 9; religious, historical, 93; outside t he pe rsonal 133; of s exuality, see sexuality; o f psyche, 145 (see also unconscious, unconscious, 3 (see also unconscious) collective); r epression o f, 150/277; of woman, 188 segment o f, 284; superstitious impulses o f, 292; unconscious psychopathology, 8 heritage of , 148/276; unconscious psychophysiology, 245 psychosis, 175f, 224; development of , identity w ith, 277; universality of , 162f; latent, 114; psychology o f, 9 , 152 see also psychotic disturbance psychiatry: and aetiology of psychosis, 175; and l atent ps ychosis, 114; and psychotherapy, o rigins, 9 psychoanalysis, 10, 117f; and psychotic disturbance, 161 puberty, 16/254, 75, 102, 105, 197; see psychology, 246 psychic: contents, division of, 300, 302; also initiation rites punishment, 155/280, 194; divine, 73; Draconian, 151; self-, disposition, un iversal, 147; energy, 87 purity, 181 see energy; e quilibrium, see purposiveness, 232; of neurosis, 47; in equilibrium; f unction, see function; psychic loss of balance, 162 infection, 96 ; i nflation, 143fJ, 147; intensities, 53n; systems, 98; transformations, 107 psychoanalysis, 24fJ /26 5fJ, 131; differing theories in , v , 269, 290; Freudian, 186; origin of, 10/247, 20; technique of, 21/262; unconscious of Q its l imitations, 141; unpopularity of , 8; see also dreams, interpretation of quadrangle, 222 psychogenic: disorder, 11/250; sympquaternity, 110; also cf. 222f toms, 10 / 24 9 psychology, 114, 119, 146, 168, 288f, 292; R Adlerian, see Adler; and alchemy, 220; and analysis, 295f; race, 147f / 275; differences of, 152; analytical, see analytical psychol- memories, 264, see also archetypes ogy; anima and animus 224; racial history, activated residues of, archaic/primitive, 284; Chinese, 99 152n; collective, 155/279f, 30I; "railway spine," 18n collectivistic, 278n; conscious, 206; Rascher Yearbook, 3, 245 of consciousness, 241; depth, 247; rational: and irrational, 80; tied to of dreams, 10/248; experimental, conscious mind, 71 26 9, 245fJ; feminine, 205 (see also rationalism, 24/ 4, 94, 166, 288, anima; woman); Freudian, see 29I Freud and psychoanalysis; Indian, rationality, 49f, 124

34째


INDEX

rationalization(s), 200, 216 rattlesnake, 93

religion(s), 97fJ, 101, 137 , 190f; 193 comparative hi story o f, 204; ir realia, 297 dreams, 160; history of , 277; mys realism, 54, 117 tery, 231, 235; oriental, 78; primi tive reality(-ies), 110, 201, 298f; absolute, 68f, 105f; relapse into pagar form of, 218; adaptation to , 161, 278n, 304; of 33, see also Christianiq archetypes, 98; c onscious a nd religious: a spects o f unc onscious 28 4; unconscious, 79,218,283; and fantasy, convulsions, 75; e xperience 23 8; 216; fantasy-substitute f or, 109; function, repression of, 94; problem flight fr om, 182; function, 282; inner as compensation, 180fJ, and ou ter, 199; and pe rsona, 158; psychology, 133 opposing, 218; psychic, 95, 98; reminiscence(s), 11f/250; infantile, scientific, 217; of the s elf, 173; of 23/264, 52; in lung's 16/254, case [1], unconscious, 185, 218, 282f; of t he personal, [2], 36, [3], 52; 81 world, 237, 295n Renaissance, and licentiousness, 20/ realization, 140; conscious, 235; of 258 personality, 110; process o f, 59, 64; renewal in second half of life, 61 self-, see self-realization; o f u nrepresentations collectives, 145 repression, conscious fantasy, 219, 28In 6 23/263f, 53, 92f, 97, 13 / reason, 71f, 124, 150, 224, 288; see also 273, 15 3, 200, 2 85; of c ollective rationality psyche, 150/277; conflict of, 150/ 277; rebirth, 105, 235; ceremonies of, 197 of former idols, 75; Freudian theory reduction, 45fJ, 80f; Freud's and Adler's of, 26, 127f / 27of; of fu nctions, 297; methods, 45f, 52, 59, 74, 283f; and of instinct, 26, 32; lifting of personal, transference, 63, 168, 212, see also 148; moral, 199; personal, 128/27I, analysis 158, 160; of re ligious f unction, 94 ; reflection, 155/280; and introversion, 55; removal o f, 127/27째; will to p ower and will, 49 and, 34 regression, 76, 95, 99, 15 1; into childhood, 77; to pre-infantile period, resentment, moral, 136/273 resistance, 79; and p rogression, 108; to th e 60, 83, 140, 184, 299; to analysis of unconscious, 25/266, 283; to dream mother, 108 regressive: d issolution, 151; longing, analysis, 24f/ 264; to Freud's work, 248; 169/287; restoration o f persona, see in lung's case [5], 109; to object, 42, 57; in persona psychotherapy, 43; s ecret, 22; and regressiveness, conscious, 1째9 shadow-side, 53f; and t ransference, relapse, 131, 295 63, 92f; to wrong interpretations, 112; relation(s) /relationships: compensee also unconscious opposition sated, 179; compensatory, 128/27I, responsibility, 139/274, 153, 225, 227; of 177; conflict o f, 178; conscious a nd prophet, 170; social, 5; subjective, unconscious, 208f; functions of , 232; 201; for unconscious, 139/274 heterosexual, 108; homosexual, see homosexuality; i mpersonal, 18of; restoration of persona, see persona infantile, 87; to object, 140; personal, results of treatment, 116 revenants, 186, 188 206, 225; psychic, 303 rigidity in old age, 76 relativity of God, 235n "religio," 101 341


INDEX

ring, 16t/ 255; of flame, 222; fraternity, 107; wedding, 107 risk, 164 rites/ritual, 97, 150, 197; initiation, see initiation river, 14/252, 81-84, 89, 101, 146,

3

21

role(s), 157/28I, 170; external, 173; identification with, in Jung's case [8], 159; m asculine, 8 3, 8 8; s ocial, 146, 150, 174, 194 romantic,54 Rome, 231 rope-dancer, in Zarathustra, 31 Rosicrucianism, 231, 292 Rousseau, Jean-Jacques: Emile, 275n ruah/ruh, 135

S sacrifice, 130/; involuntary, 131 saint(s), 69, 148, 194, 228 St. Petersburg, 14/252 Salpetriere,9 Sargon, 18o Saul of Tarsus, 35; see also Paul, St. saviour(s), 94; doctor as, 64, 130 scepticism, "scientific," 292 schisms, 277 I schizophrenia, 70, 80, 147, 163, 27 , 282 scholasticism, 54, 245 Schopenhauer, Arthur, 132, 1441/ 27 2, 154, 259f, 298 Schultze-Gallera, Siegmar, Baron von: see Aigremont, Dr. science, 1O/247n, 190, 206, 24째,289, 29If, 295; Christian Science, 29 2 scientific: attitude, 134; investigation, 245; mind, 288; superstition, 293 Scylla and Charybdis, 70, 73, 141 secrecy, 151 secret love, 292 secrets, ritual, 150 sects, ecstatic, 247; see also ecstasy

security, 204, 284; "security measure," 165 Self (atman), 191 self, 1 92, 300; -alienation, 1 73; -belittlement/depreciation, 168, 2 82; -conceit, 15 6, 28 2; -confidence, 139/274, 14 8/27 6; -criticism, 33, 1 70; -culture, 205; definition of, 177, 238fj; -deification, 7 0; di vesting of , 173f; -division, 20/26I, 76; individual, 159; as individuality, 240; -injury, 115; -knowledge, 26, 136f, 140, 178, 229; -, projection o f unc onscious, 227; -laceration, m oral, 7 0; as lif e's g oal, 240; -mastery, 229; on e's ow n, 136/273;-, becoming, 173; "other," 35; -preservation, of analyst, 2 78; -, in stinct of, 32; -realization, 13 6/ 27 3, 173, 184, 195 (see also individuation); -reflection, 4f; -regulation, 61, 17 8, 192, 1 96; -, unc onscious, 166; -sacrifice, 4 8, 193, 265; a nd s elfish, 173; is totality, 177; a transcendental postulate, 240; true, 225; unconscious, 136/273, 158, see also subject selfhood,173 selfish, 174; and self, 173 Semon, R. W., 98, 137; The Mneme,

98n sensation, 44n sense-perceptions, subliminal, 66, 128/270 sensitiveness, 58 separation, 200; from mother, 197 serpents, 236, 265; with death'sheads, 12/250; see also snake(s) sex: psychic change of, 209'; terminology of, 28 sexual: desires, repressed, 83; factor, 34; fantasies, 34, 83, 91 ; f unction, 284; infantile, demands, 165; morality, 27, 258, 26I, 265; perversion, 27I; problem, 259; question, 20/258, 260, 265, 266; symbolism, 2 84; t heory of n eurosis, 248, 256fj

342


INDEX

sexuality, 42 ; a nd e nergy, 47f; Freud's psychology of, 10/ 248, 27f, 32, 3 8, 117f, 165, 269, 28I; infaNile, 38 , 46, 284; l imp, 1 94; a nd l ove, 18n, 256n; and m orality, 27, 26I; see also erotic conflict shadow ( -side), 25f /266, 3 of, 331, 4 7, 66n, 142, 233 , 23 81; a rchetype, 96, 110; d angerous aspect o f, 97; o f father i n J ung's c ase [ 8], 15 9; i n Jung's case [2], 37; and opposites, 5 3, 56; and personal unconscious, 66n; of psyche, 25/266 She, see Haggard, H. Rider; "Shewho-must-be-obeyed," 189, 227 shell-shock, 18n shock, 14/ 252, 56, 1 10; E nglish theory of nervous, 13/2 5I; in Jung's case [2], 37; neuroses, 18n side: negative, necessity of, 30; other, 81, 89, 104, 141, 197f; 202, 204; -, truths of, 202; -, W estern fe ar o f, 203; see also nature, ot her s ide of ou r; one-sidedness; shadow (-side) sign, definition of, 29I,' significance, 178f; pathogenic, 14/ 25 2 Silberer, H erbert: Problems of Mysticism and Its Symbolism, 83n, 219f,29In Simon, L., 98n sin, 156n, 181; original, 30 slip: of memory, 177; of the tongue, 177 snake(s), 13/25I, 84, 2 27; black, i n Breuer's ca se, 12/250; in Faust, 140/274; Negro's, 201; in St. Ignatius' vision, 78 social: factors, 143; order, 155/280 sociality, 153 society, 4, 27, 1 19, 1 43, 144n, 145, 147, 15 1, 163, 179, 193, 19 6, 199, 260, 265, 278n, 303; and im itation, 155/280; influence o n i ndividual, 1 54; m oral degeneration of, 15 3; outside t he individual, 145; and persona, 158, 192, 302; see also office; organization(s)

Socrates, 28, 265; Socratic me

25/265 S6derblom, Nathan: Das We des Gottesglaubens, 68n somnambulism, in Jung's case 118, 123 sorcerer, tribal, 96 Song of H iawatha, The (LOll low),99 soul, 24/264,27,31,45, 68f, 95, 168, 190fj, 237, 239, 266; ance1 147n; as autonomous co m) 190; beast's, 30; Christian con of, 225; collective, 275; com) 189; -, autonomy of, 191; cept of, 224; crucifixion of, after death, 185; feminine quo of, 188, 190; "herd soul" in i vidual, 278n; historical aspeCl 191; idea of, 187; -image, 189, immortality of, 191; "inspir, 73; loss of, 151; as "mistn 227; philosophical concept 190; plurality of, 185; projecl of man's, 189; religious con< of, 190; respectable, 26I; ; spirit, 185; -substance, 95; see I part-souls spastic paralysis, IOfj / 24 9fj species: ideal type, 297; instinct preservation of, 32 speech disturbance, 12/25I; see t aphasia Spielrein, Sabina: " Die Destrukt als Ursache des Werdens," 281 spirit(s), 68, 96n, 135, 137, 185, 2 227f; ancestral, 186; d angerc 1 86; a nd instinct, 2 8; n atUl 1 83; p arental, 186, 188; a s F sonality, 19 7; "subtle," 223; -WO! 185, 201 spiritual: development, ,105; sub tute, 105 SPiritual Disciplines, 7n spiritualism, 196; spiritualistic ( perience, 186 Spitteler, Carl, 1 96; Imago, 25 Olympian Spring, 299; Pron

343


INDEX

Spitteler, Carl (cont.) theus and Epimetheus, 57n, 299 "splitting of the mind," 147; see also schizophrenia spontaneity, 185 standstill, 129 star(s), 146,160/282,162,237 stasis, 129 State, 153, 155/280, 210 "statistical probability," 49n sterility, mental, 149, 155 Stock Exchange, 247 Stoics, 19/258,69 stomach and intestines, nervous disorders of, 129 "storm and stress," 75 "strong man": private life of, 194; weakness of, 195 structure, psychic, 190 student(s): fraternities, 105; initiation of, lOst; of p hilosophy, see lung's case [8]; t heological, 1 81182, see also lung's case [14] subconscious and unconscious, 135/

272

subject, 84 , 14 0, 216, 289 , 296; 302; de-individualized, 3째3, 304; -imago, 3째2, 304; and introversion, 56, 58; in relation t o o bject, 42ff; supraordinate, 240 subjective: c omplexes, 90; i nterpretations, 84t, 88, 90; level, 90, 92, 97; -, of a nalysis, see interpretations above; psyche, 66n subjectivity, 57t sublimation: through analysis, 47t, 267; and civilization, 50; obstacles to, 62 subliminal: c ombinations, 304; elements, 127/270, 294; m aterial, 127/270; perceptions, 66t, 127t / 270, 303; processes, 175; psychic contents, ll6 substitute: for father, 129t; figures, 60; for mother, 104t; spiritual, 105 succubus, 224 suffering, 141, 162 suggestibility, 155/280, 246

suggestion, 10/249,70,155/280,175, 293; a s t reatment method, 9 suicide, l l4, 146 , 214 , 218 ,232 Sumatra, 186 Summum bonum, 236 sun, 69, 74, 99, 112, 160/282, 18 9, 20 3, 238; archetype, 69; Father, 258; -hero, 69 superhuman, 59 superiority, 42, 141; in lung's case

[2],40

superman, 31, 71, 141, 229, 232 supernatural, 132, 187 superstition, 167/285,217,29째,292; scientific, 293 Surabaya,67 symbiosis of types, 55ff symbol(s), 201; animal, 98; a rrangement of, I ll; c hoice of , 84 , 8 8; collective, 230; of Cologne Cathedral, 104; de finition of, 29r; dream, 81; explanation o f, 212; r eligious, 20 4; and s ubjective c ontents, 8 4; T aoist, 182; of wholeness, 110; see also altar; animal(s); a rchetype(s); b aptism(s); bridge; b ull; c athedral; c hild; c ircle; crab; d ragon; e arth; f ire; f ish; f lame; foot; f ord; giant; God/god(s); ho ard; horses; i vory f igure; l ion; m agician; mountain; m usic; oc topus; pr iest; quadrangle; q uaternity; r ing; r iver; snake; t alisman; t iger; t oad; t ower; treasure; trees; w ater; w ater-nymph; weapon; wheatfields; wind; woman symbolism: a lchemical, 219t; archaic, 155/279; C atholic, 77; i n dr eams, 107/263n, 264 (see also dreams); o f initiation, 231; pagan, 77t; phallic, of foot, 83; psychology of primitive and historical, 85; i n r eligion, 97; r itual, 77t; sexual, 284; see also fantasy sympathetic system, innervations of, 12

9

symptom(s), 25, 64, 139, 176t, 202; and collective unconscious, 160/

344


INDEX

282; genesis of, 12t/25r, Ill; in lu ng's case [ 2], 35t, [3], 52; ne rvous, 26/266,46; ne urotic, 10/249, 25/ 266, 40, 46, 1 14, 212; of ol d a ge, 76; pathological, 46; ps ychogenic, 10/249, 39; a nd unc onscious en ergy, 61t; see also under specific symptoms, e.g., amnesia; hysteria symptomatic manifestations, 202 syncretism, 78 Synesius, 73 synthesis, 97; i n a nalysis, 81; o f i ndividual a nd c ollective ps yche, 293; and s ubjective interpretations, 84t; symptoms and, 46 synthetic: interpretations, 85; procedure,81 syphilis, 26m system(s), 169/286; of man, 190; psychic, 98; rationalistic, 166 systole, 59, 30r T taboo: incest, 152; infringement, 151, 156n Tacitus: Germania, 188 talisman, magic, 170/287 "talking cure," 11/25째 Tao(-ism), 78, 182,205,221 technique: analysis as, 295; of concentration, 222; o f e ducating a nima, 203; of psychoanalysis, 21/ 262 teleology(-ical), 152, 294t; and neurosis, 40; plan, 184; point of view, 59, 15 2 ; and psychic process, 131 temperament: artistic, 228; differences of, 43, 141 tendencies, opposing, in neurosis, 19 tender-minded, 54 tension of op posites, see opposites terminology, lung's choice of , 211 tertium non datur, 76 theological student, lung's case [14]: religious problem of, 181t

34 5

theory(-ies): building of, 211; of complexes, lung's, 262n theosophy, 77, 78, 210, 231, 292 therapist, see doctor therapy, 21/262; analytical, 149 (see also analysis; psychoanalysis; treatment); real beginning of, 60 thinker, medieval, 220 thinking, 97, 183 , 226 ,285,288,297; analogical m ode o f, 138; c ivilized, 288; c ollective, 151, 154t/278t, 275n, 277t, 3or; mythical, 304; mythological, 282 thought(s), 298; -associations, 1 31; creative, 185; dream-, 100; -feelings, 285; -forms, uni versal, 66; identification with, 201; as objective occurrences, 202; -patterns, 138; "saving," 163; subliminal, }03 Tibet, 205 tie, personal, 134 tigers, as dream symbol, 35 Till Eulenspiegel, 37 toad(s), 31, 265 tolerance, 140 tongue(s): fiery, 68; slip of, 177; swallowing of, 176 tortures, 105 totem ceremonies, 150 tough-minded, 54 tower, 112, 179 tradition,26r transcendent function, 80, 99, 109ff, 116, 134n, 219t, 223t transference, 7ot, 91ff, 164, 166; compulsive, 212; de finition of , 62n; and doctor, 64t, 101, 133 (see also doctor); of f antasies t o d octor, 62t; of father-imago to doc tor, 129; F reud's theory of , 42, 62n, 129t, 165; a s healing factor, 130; in lung's case [8], 159t; of ol d i magos, 61; over-valuation o ccasioned by , 132; parental, 73; personal, 66; resolution of, 63, 131 , 161; r upture o f, 165; undermining of, 134


INDEX

transformation, 5 3, 192; o f a nima a nd animus, 210, 212; of attitude, 219; of autonomous c omplex, 212; i nner, 175; mysteries, 23 1; of pe rsonality, 164t, 220, 22 3; ps ychic, 107; stages of, 1I6; of unconscious psyche, 123 transmigration, of souls, 69 transpersonal, 98; control-point, 134t; contents, 93, 145; unconscious, see unconscious, collective trauma, 18; theory of, as origin of neurosis, 13t/25Ifj, 18/256, 186; see also Breuer treasure, 146, 169n/286n, 170/287, 171, 227; hidden, 67 treatment, 1 64; aim o f, 1I 0fj, 1I 7; dreams in, 25; individuation and, 110; lung's method, 223, 288; as m ystical fount of h ealing, 10 3; pr actical necessities o f, 76; a nd problem o f opposites, 59; results of, 1I6; risks of, 1I5, 154/279; of young p eople, 10 9; see also analysis; " talking c ure"; therapy; transference trees, 187, 222 tribe, 147t/275 Trinity vision, 78 truth, 33, 7 5, 7 6, 169t/286, 204, 2 20, 228, 29 4; c ollective, 151; e ternal, 236; i nsidious, 202; o bjective, 2 31; one-sided, 41; o f o ther side, 2 02; temporal relativity of, 203 twilight states, lIt / 249t Tylor, E. B., 68 type(s), 42fj, 48, 54fj: attitude-, 4 1, 43; "classic" an d " romantic," 5 4; different p sychological, 43t, 278; heroic, 48; i deal, 29 7; i nversion o f, 57; lung's t ype-psychology, 44n (see also psychology); m asculine, 8 8; opposition be tween, 54t; psychological, 115; -, o f p atient, 62; symbiosis o f, 56; " tenderminded" and "tough-minded," 54 , see also extraversion, introversion typhus, 101

346

u unconscious, passim; analysis of, 1 I4fj, 212, 283; artistic experience of, 213; assimilation o f, 139t, 221; autonomous a ctivity of , 128/27I; as barrier, 89; borderline with collective unconscious, 81; cannot b e em ptied, 128/27I, 167/285; c ompensatory, criticism, 1 79; -, r elationship t o conscious, 128/27I; conflict, see conflict(s); co unterposition, 78; depreciation o f, 2 17; directness o f, 232; disordered, 235; dreams and, 21 fj / 262fJ (see also dreams); dynamics of, 1 16; fa ntasies, 2I4 (see also fantasy); fa vourable s ide, 102, 1I 6; and f uture c onscious c ontents, 128/ 270; given leadership, 215; hierarchy of, 228; impersonal, 66, 138, 157/ 28I, 230, 280 (see also unconscious, collective, below); infi uence of, 124, 212; i nstinctive a ctivity o f, 162; invasion by , 101; i rrational standpoint o f, 216; i rreality of, 2 17; layers of, 77; loses ascendancy, 230; and m ana-personality, 234; mythological activity of, loon; nature of, 3, 124, 127fj/27ofj, 182fJ; negative: attitude to, 115; -, movement of, 219; -, r ole of, 1 02; opposition, lIot; and persona, 19 4; pe rsonal, 66, 135fJ/272fJ, 148/276, 156/280, 178, 232, 302; -, analysis o f, 158f; processes, 176t, 184, 21 3, 223; productivity of, 128/27ot; prospective r ole o f subliminal co mbinations, 1I6; a nd r epression, 127/270; -, removal o f, 127/27째; repudiation of, 2 84; s ettlement with, 213; splitting off o f, 1 16; subliminal material in , 127/27째; tendencies, 8 8, 134; t herapeutic approach to, 114fJ; transpersonal, 66; unconcern of, 215; unfavor-


INDEX

able s ide, 115; u rges t o po wer, 5; view of the world, 298; and wish, 132, 134; of woman, 206 unconscious, collective, v, 7, 66fj, 73, 81, 95fj, 13 8, 145t, 15 6, 163, 178, 227, 23 6, 298t, 302, 304; adaptation to, 161; and ancestral life, 77; composition of, 303; dominants o f, 228, 233; f antasies o f, 232; historical mirror-image of world, 298; images of, play positive role, 109; influence o n i ndividual psyche, 1 54, 174t; in lung's case [8], 160, [16], 225; and m anapersonality, 228, 233; understanding of , 162; see also unconscious, impersonal, above unconscious, contents of, 3oofj; acquired, 128/27 I; assimilation o f, 128/27I; autonomy of c ollective, 147; collective, 96t, 138, 147 ,232; impersonal, 1 28; i nfantile, 23 , I 25, 127/2 70; personal, 66t, 77t, 128/ 27 , 230, 232; pr ojected in t ransference, 62n; repressed wishes, 12

7/27°

unconsciousness, 24, 184; original state of, 206 understanding, 109, 240, 278; bourn of, 238; o f c ollective unc onscious, 162; of f antasies, 2 13, 21 7; i ntellectual, 213, 21 4; " poison" of , 84; psychological, 295; reductive, 212 unifying function, of fantasy, 290 union, 97; of opposites, see opposites universalia, 297 universality, of collective psyche, 152 universals, 155/279, 297 urge to power, 46; see also will to power

v

validity: ge neral, o f ps yche c ontents, 300,302; of hypothesis, 134; rela· tive, 78; universal, 144/272, 15 2/ 278 valuation(s): abnormal, 130, 13 2, 134; personal over-, 134 values, 55, 58, 75t, 200, 235; abso· lute, 288; a ccumulation of, 215 (see also libido); collective, 27 7, 297; conscious, 215; discredited, 203; and display of energy, 47; of fantasy, 290; general, 30I; heuristic, of h ypothesis, 134; hi ghest, 23 6; i n ne urosis, 61; personal, 303; -, and i mpersonal, 144/272; po sitive and ne gative, 47, 49t; reality, 216; r eal p ersonal, 62n; relativity of , 75; revaluation of , 75; true, 170/287 vampire, 224 variability, 174 Vatican, 179 Vermilye, D. B., 137n vertigo, 282 via regia, dream as, to the unconscious, 24/264 vice, 1 48, 149t/276t, 194, 2 38; col· l ective, 149/276t, 150; " of t he virtuous," 193 Vienna, 12/250, :347 Viennese s chool, 26 9; see also Freud view: causal point of, 59; teleological point of, 59, 152 Virchow, Rudol£, 180 virtue(s), 39t, 75, 148, 149t! 276t, 173; collective, 149t / 276t virtuousness, 38 vision(s), 78, 80, 135, 144t/272, 146, 163, 222, 282; artists', 183, 213; "big," 178; in lung's case [16], 222t, 230; primary, 145; p rimitive, 144; o f r ope-dancer, 31; of saints, 69; of stars, 162; Trinity, 78 visualizations, 221 voice(s), 282; " inner," 163; l oss o f, i n lung's case [2], 36, see also aphasia

vagus, 129

347


INDEX

W Wagner, Richard, 34f, 193 WalPurgisnacht, 304; see also Faust war, 260; World War I, 4, 5, 6, 49f, 72n, 94, 204; World War II, 72n, 94n Warnecke, J.: Di/! Religion der Batak, 186n water, 82, 89, 98f, 103, 146, 190; signifies the unconscious, 89 water-nymph, 84 weapon, invincible, 170/287 Webster, Hutton: Primitive Secret Societies, 230n weeping fits, hysterical, 193 well, 103f Wells, H. G.: Christina Alberta's Father, 174, 180fj, 207 Weltanschauung, rational, 203 werewolf, 93f Western: m ind, 205, 202; -, extraverted attitude of, 191; fear of other side, 203 wheat-fields, 132 wholeness, 11Of, 223 wife: man's relation with, 190, 195, 199, 208, 210; as mother-substitute, 60, 197f; neurosis of, 194 Wilhelm, Richard: The Secret of the Golden Flower, 110, 124 will, 12!r32, 162, 199, 238; contests o f, 50; conscious e xertion of , 53; free, 167; good, 212; limitations o f, 49; man of, 237; of manapersonality, 237; superior, 237; universal, 298; world as, and idea, 144/272 will to power, 32fj, 38, 40f, 4 6, 53, 139/274, 15of; of ego, 28I; pathological, 148/276; see also instinct wind, 132, 133, 135, 137 wisdom, 228; occult, 248 wise old man, 97, 110 wish(es), 22/263, 23/263, 136, 264; erotic, 264; -fantasies, 27I; infantile, 23/263, 83; personal, 178;

repressed, 127/270, 273; unconscious, 22, 25; and unconscious, 132, 134, 166 wish-fulfilment, 22/263 wish-conflicts, egoistic, 178 witch, 179, 180, 187 wizard, Tibetan, 96 Wolff, T oni: " Einfiihrung i n di e Grundlagen de r kom plexen P sychologie," 66n woman ( women), 188fj, 194, 20 6, 2 28; and a nimus, 208f (see also animus); biological d estiny of , 16 / 254; conscious a ttitude of , 209; dissimilar psychology of, 188; feminine persona of, 209; Germanic, T acitus o n, 188; hysterical, 232; imago of , 188, 1 89; inherited c ollective i mage o f, 190; inner m asculine s ide o f, 209; inspiration of m an, 188; intellectual, 159, 20 8; intuitive c apacity of , 188; and m ana-personality, 235; masculinity of, 189; see also wife womb, of Church, 105 word(s): addicts, 208; and experience, 211; spermatic, 209 work, symbolical content of, 259 world, 148, 190, 199, 226, 236; of adult man, 106; of conscious, 218; day- and night-, 203; end of, 163; external/outer, 193f, 197, 204f, 209 (see also society); of fantasy, 16/254, 203; -fear, 203; of historical images, 299; infantile, 180; inner, 198, 203fj, 209; intellectual, 216; mirror-image of, 298; of objects, 178; as picture-book, 144/ 27If; -pictures, two, 237; psychic mirror-, 185; reality of, 237, 295n; reformer, 295; of spirits, 185, 201;_ of unconscious, 218, 298; as will and idea, 144/272 World War, see war Wotan, 135 Wundt, Wilhelm: PrinciPles of Physiological Psychology, 9/246

348


INDEX

Y

Z

Yildiz Kiosk, 179 Yin and Yang, 182 young people, 59fj; analysis of, 73, 109; homosexuality in, 106f; opposites in, 61; treatment of, 109 youth: and age, 76; illusions in, 60f,

Zagreus, 73; see also Dionysian Zarathustra (Nietzsche), 31, 96, 237 Zeus, 299 Zurich, 123, 144n; school of a nalytical psychology, 21/262, 264, 269n

731

349


Issuu converts static files into: digital portfolios, online yearbooks, online catalogs, digital photo albums and more. Sign up and create your flipbook.